tyhare062367's Avatar
tyhare062367 Member Since October 23, 2009

Cousin Cumming Of Age Pt 1

hrnytoad on Incest Stories

Well I got the call the other day that my uncle had died. It was expected, as he had been in the hospital for some odd weeks now. Everything went as expected, just about all my relatives were present for the services. I had been out of the family loop for a few years, as I had been traveling around the country, trying to find my niche. So it was understandable that there would be some new family members that I had not made aquaintance with yet. A cousin of mine had remarried for a second time, so I got a chance to meet her new husband. Another one of my normally absent cousins was there with his family. I was not really introduced to the children, just the wife.

I noticed around the funera

Read More
l parlor that there was this one girl, beautiful blonde with legs that seemed to go on forever. Her straight hair and slender frame was to say the least, breath taking. She was dressed in the traditional black, a sport coat and one of the shortest matching skirts I had ever seen. I knew that I mustn't stare at the poor girl, she hardly looked of age, and she was most likely a relative, no less. But I could not help myself. I would look away from her, and a few moments later, would catch myself scanning the room, and stealing a glimpse of her. I tried to just pay attention to the other relatives that were coming up to me and talking, but it was getting continually more difficult to focus on anything else. At this point, I started questioning my sanity. What was going on with me? I never thought myself to have thoughts of pedephilia, or incest, much less both! But here I was, at a place of mourning, lusting over this underage bombshell, who had to be related to me in some fashion. Somehow I managed to get through the day. Either no one cared to comment on my insane behavior, or I must have done a pretty good job at hiding it.

The next day's viewing, was a different story. As I mingled around into the parlor, fashionably late as usual; one of the first sites I had the pleasure of seeing was the girl again. She looked even more radiant today. It was even harder to not focus on this picture of perfection. She was wearing another oh so short skirt ensamble today. The difference with today was the top. There was no sport coat hiding her from view today. She had on a fairly tight fitting top, that exposed that this girl may be young, but she was not prepubescent. She had budding breasts that could be made out quite nicely, do to the fit of her chosen top. My first site of her was her bending over the coffin, paying her respects to the deceased. I got a perfect view right up the back of her skirt. I felt my glans start to stiffen immediately. It was everything I could do to contain myself. I looked around hurriedly, and noticed that quite a few of my other male relatives had witnessed this site. After that, I noticed that she was pretty much in a flurry of motion today. I did my best to keep attention on my oh so honored relatives, but she kept walking back and forth, back and forth. I know she must have been bored to death, there were hardly any other kids her age around at all.

After a little while my throat was getting dry from all the family small-talk, so I went out to find myself a refreshment. The funeral parol had a nice little niche off to the side that families could take refuge in for a few minutes to help recharge. As I entered the little refugee-dining area, what should happen to appear in my narrowed field of vision? You guessed it, there she was. Just sitting there all alone at the table, fumbling with her fingers trying to pass the time. I lost my nerve, and passed right next to her, not stopping until I got to the water dispenser. I did however; happen to look back over my shoulder when I passed by the table. She had caught my eye. I winced inside, thinking of what my wolfish expression must have looked like. As I turned to pour my cup, I noticed that she had her nose up, eyes closed and was inhaling my scent as I had walked by. "That's Tommy you're wearing, isn't it?" were the first words I had ever heard her say. Such a sweet and innocent voice. "Um, yes" I stammered, "Did I overdo it, huh?" I felt my face starting to flush. "Mmm no, it's just fine. That's my favorite." And I could see that her face was also rosey. "It's a little hot in here, don't you think?" I couldn't believe I was actually trying this tired old line on anyone. "Yeah, actually I've been roasting in here all night." she said. "Well let's go outside and get some air, wanna?" I thought I was sounding pretty corny, but she complied. I happened to luck out and no one from my family was around to see us steal away to the outside.

To Be Continued...

Summer Lovin'

Winters on Incest Stories

Frankie and I were always close growing up and at 13 I was very sexually curious. Frankie did the best he could to verbally try and explain sex, and the physical pleasure it offered, to me. I was satisfied for the time being but over the next two years whenever I masturbated, late at night, it was Frankie’s face that I saw in my mind.

When I was 15 our parents went away for two weeks to a tropical island, part business and part pleasure, and since Frankie was old enough to be left alone with me, my parents waved goodbye and boarded the privet jet. The Airport was roughly a 2 hour drive from our home in Eastern Montana so I stretched out on the front seat and fell asleep with my head on Frankie’s lap. When I woke up we were pulling on to the lo

Read More
ng paved driveway from the dirt road that led to our 3 story home. “We’re home?” I asked as I yawned and looked up at my brother. “yeah, you slept the whole way.” It was only 2:30 in the afternoon and after a nice nap I had plenty of energy to burn off. I decided to hit the gym that was on the very bottom floor of the house. After my work out I knew a nice hot shower was exactly what I needed. I climbed the stairs to the second floor, that Frankie and I shared, and walked into my bedroom to remove my clothes and grab a towel. I walked down the hallway to the nearest bathroom and walked in. To my surprise my brother was sitting naked on the edge of the garden Jacuzzi bathtub, pulling on his dick with one hand and massaging his balls with the other. “Oh my GOD! Frankie, what are you doing?” I screamed turning around hanging on to my falling towel. “Sorry, Renee. When you fell asleep on my lap this afternoon my cock just throbbed to be touched and then I watched you working out and just couldn’t take it. I had to come in here to relieve myself.” I turning to face him, not believing my ears. “You got horny watching me work out?” “Yeah” he said starring at me not stopping. I could feel my nipples getting hard as I watched my big brother jerk off right it front of me. When I dropped my towel and walked toward him I heard him take a sharp breath. I knelt down and sat in front of him on the bathroom floor and began to play with my sloppy wet pussy.

We sat there in the bathroom and watched each other masturbate and get ourselves off until the sun went down. “I’m hungry. You up for Chinese take out?” “Sounds good” I said as I grabbed my towel “you go order while I shower” He smacked my ass as he walked passed me to leave. “Thanks for the show, sis.” I smiled while I showered knowing that tonight I wouldn’t have to masturbate with only Frankie’s image.

I heard the door bell chime and Frankie call my name. I slipped on my silk t-back panties and pulled on a t-shirt that belonged to my father, it came just above the knees. Frankie pulled out the dishes and served me as I seated myself at the table. He sat across from me as we ate and after we finished we both walked to the family room. I sat on the couch with one leg resting on the arm of the couch so that he had perfect view of my wet panties from the chair he was lounging in. “Renee?” “Yeah Frankie?” “Come here so I can take those panties off of you.” I did as I was told and when I stepped out of my panties I pulled the bottom of my shirt up to my waist and sat down on my brothers lap, my back facing him. I leaned back and took both hands in mine, placing one up under my shirt to my chest and placed the other down between my legs. I laid my head back as he began to stroke my wet lips, clit and hole with his fingers. He kissed my neck and I moaned with naughty forbidden pleasure. “You like you big brothers fingers in your pussy, don’t you?” I nodded and inhaled sharply as he plunged a finger into my hot cunt and began to finger fuck me. I felt his cock surging against my lower back as he did this. I reached behind me and took hold of his thick pole and began to jerk him off. I could feel my body stiffen as I neared my climax. “Frankie. Harder, faster. I’m almost there.” I breathed as I bucked my hips to meet his hand. “Cum on my fingers, Renee. I want to have my little sisters cum on my hands. Come on.” I had momentarily stopped jacking him off as my body went into spasms and I thrashed around on top of him, cumming all over my brothers hand. Once he brought me down from my amazing orgasm I flipped over and wrapped my fingers around the swollen rod and stroked until his dick sprayed streams of hot cum over our bellies. I squeezed the last drop of sperm from Frankie’s convulsing body and licked my fingers clean. “mmm! That’s yummy” I said to him as I felt his hands wrap around my body and pull me forward. “I love you baby sister!” “I love you too, Frankie”. We fell asleep just like that.

Over the next two weeks Frankie and I spent every minute together exploring each others bodies and riding every wave of pleasure that the forbidden ocean we swam in gave us.

The Lessons Part 2

tanks on Incest Stories

Part 2 – Girl Time

 

Debra and her daughter had a very close relationship, some would say closer than normal. Ever since Lisa had started puberty Debra had been preparing her for her introduction to sex and love making. She and her husband had been planning this for their children for many years and the fact that they were so close to realizing their dream had had her excited for some time. Her husband Ken and son Mike would be having thei

Read More
r little conversation while her and Lisa were shopping. Hopefully, if everything went according to plan, the years of planning would come to a halt. God she was already hot just thinking about it. She good feel the heat between her legs and know she would start feeling the moisture pretty soon.

 

“Honey,” she said to her beautiful young daughter Lisa, “I thought we would go to a specialty lingerie shop today. You’re boobs are bigger again and it’s going be harder and harder for you to by decent bras off the shelf. I know a place that will fix us up.”

 

“God mom, you don’t have to do that, I can get by with what I have right now. Besides, half the time I don’t even wear a bra so what does it matter,” Lisa responded. She knew her tits were big, but she wondered why her mom always seemed so interested in them. Somethimes she liked the way her boobs looked when they were packed into a bra that was too small. The way the flesh squeezed out of the cups and pushed her tits up was cool, especially if she was wearing one of her nice lacy bras. She loved going braless too, the way her tits bounced and swayed under her top was cool too. What she liked most about her tits though was the way everyone paid attention when she entered the room, especially if she had a good bounce going. When her nipples got hard they would show right through the fabric, even if she was wearing a bra.

 

“Going braless won’t be an option for much longer Lisa, although I know why you like to,” her mom responded, remembering when she was young and how she like to feel her tits bouncing around free. “Besides, there is no reason why you should not be comfortable when you do wear one, and I know you will find lots of nice lingerie in the store we are going to.” Just as she said that she pulled into a small parking lot in a part of town Lisa had never been in before. They got out of the car and went down as narrow alley between two buildings to an entrance of a store you could bnot even see from the sidewalk.

 

A bell tinkled as the opened and Lisa followed her mother in. There were two ladies behind the counter and they both seemed to know her mother. “Good day Mrs. White one of them said as she came from behind the counter and walked towards them, “it is so good to see you again.” The women walking towards them was older than her mom, probably in her forties, thought Lisa. She was stunningly beautiful and walked with an elegance you seldom seen. The other came out from behind the counter also and although she was considerably younger, she too was beautiful and it was obvious she was related to the older lady. The older lady hugged her mom and kissed her on both cheeks in a European fashion.

 

“Sophia, please call me Debra, I don’t know how many times I’ve told you that over the years. This is my daughter Lisa, she is in desperate need of some new items. I just know you will have what she needs.”

 

“Of course we will,” Sophia replied, “this is my niece Grace she will be helping us today. I find that she is very good at helping out the younger ladies. It is very nice to meet you Lisa.” She said holding out her hand for Lisa to shake. “What about yourself Debra, will you be needing anything today also?” Sophia asked.

 

“Yes, I am looking for something for a special occasion I have planned, but lets get Lisa going first. She will need some bras, with matching panties of course, and anything else you can think of.” Debra was talking while she walked into the store proper and looked around at some of the displays.

 

“First we will need to size properly,” Sophia said, “Grace why don’t you take Lisa into the back and get the necessary measurements.” Grace was as beautiful as her aunt, but seemed a little less formal. She was dressed in a white blouse, open at the front showing a great deal of cleavage. She had on a short black skirt that went to mid thigh. It appeared like she had no stocking on, and a simple pair of  loafers which made sense for someone working in a store. Although the outfit was simple, the girl looked stunning in it, like she would if she was wearing flannel pyjamas and had just gotten out of bed.

 

“Come with me,” Grace said grabbing Lisa by the hand and directing her towards a current on one of the walls. If a lot of the girls her own age at school had grabbed her by the hand like this she would have felt weird. But Grace was different for some reason and Lisa immediately liked her. She figured she was in her early twenties, definitely a lot older than she was. It was nice that she just didn’t treat me like a little girl. They went through the current and found several dressing rooms for trying on things. The went through a door into a larger room with several plush chairs and softer lighting. There were several full length mirrors on the walls.

 

“What size of bra are you wearing now?” Grace asked as she went over to a table and picked up a clipboard and pen.

 

“I’m not sure, I think it’s a 36, C or D, but it’s too small so I think I probably need a bigger cup or something.” Lisa responded.

 

Grace wrote the size on the paper and smiling up at Lisa relied, “believe me, by the time you leave here today you will know exactly what size you are and be feeling significantly more comfortable, and more sexy too. Now take your top and bra off so I can measure you.” Grace walked back over to the table and turned her back and reached down to pick up a tape measure.

 

Although Lisa was surprised at Grace asking her this so nonchalantly she accepted the fact that if she needed to be measured there was no sense doing it with your clothes on. Lisa looked at Grace and saw her back towards her and figured she was just being polite. She took her jacket of and laid it on a chair and started to pull her tee shirt top over her head. When she pulled her head through and shook her hair out she threw it on the chair and when she looked back up Grace had turned around and was standing there smiling at her. Almost instinctively Lisa put her arms up to hide her bra covered melons. She was always a little shy about undressing in front of others because they did stare and in high school this often meant some of the girls making snotty comments about her over-sized breasts. It definitely wasn’t the same sexy feeling she got when the people, mostly boys and men, stared at her because they couldn’t see her tits and they wanted to. Funny how that worked.

 

“Don’t be shy Lisa, I’ve seen lots of breasts since I started working for my aunt. You shouldn’t be ashamed of what you have anyway.” Grace said. She walked closer to Lisa and instructed her to turn around so she could unclasp her bra for her. “Geez Lisa, this is way to tight,” she commented while trying to pull it a bit tighter so she could get the hooks separated. “You really do need something that fits better, now turn around so I can get some measurements.” Lisa turned slowly but her arms were still holding her bra on. Grace took a hold of her hands and lowered them causing the bra to pull away from the young breasts. She took the old bra and threw it towards a trash can in the corner commenting about how her aunt would never let Lisa put it back down.

 

Lisa stood there while Grace looked her up and down. “You have beautiful breasts Lisa, no need to be embarrassed. Now I need you to put your arms straight over your head so I can measure.” Lisa did as she was instructed and Grace started taking measurements and noting them on the clipboard. First her waist, then around her torso just beneath her boobs, then around and across her boobs, right at the nipple. Grace’s hands lightly brushed across her nipples as she brought the tape around. They immediately reacted by puckering a bit and pushing out. Lisa turned red a little from embarrassment but Grace didn’t even seem to noticed. “Okay, that’s good for the basics, you can lower your arms now and turn around.” Again Lisa did as she was told and Grace took even more measurements. Across the back of her shoulders, down her spine from the base of her neck to her tailbone, her outstretched arms from the middle of her back to her wrists. Grace moved back to the front and measured across her shoulders there also, then from her shoulder to her nipple on each side. This again made her nipples harden, even more this time and it seemed that Grace lingered just a bit longer. Finally she measured around her breasts right at her chest and then out from the chest to her nipples.

 

Grace had made notes as she went and after the last measurement Lisa asked “I’ve never had anyone take so many measurements before, I just figured I needed a bigger cup size that’s all. What size am I now anyway” she asked?” Grace looked up smiling and said that she was now officially a D-cup, and should have a 37 inch band size which would have to be made specially. “Now could you take your jeans off for a minute we need your hips measured also.” Lisa had not expected this but was feeling more comfortable now with Grace so she quickly undid her belt and pants and slid them down to the floor. She wasn’t sure if grace had meant for her to lower her panties also and had decided she would leave them on until Grace glanced at her and she knew they had to come off too.

 

Grace measured her hips at three different spots, and her legs from hip to ankle. She then asked Lisa to spread her legs a bit so she could measure her inseam. Lisa, again trying to act natural did as she was told. She was nervous and jumped a little as Grace’s hand came up into her crotch and next to her pussy. Grace loved the feeling of someone’s hand there, no one had ever been this close. She could feel herself reacting and wanted to pull her legs tightly together so she could feel Grace’s hand there, unable to escape. Grace must have noticed something because she didn’t remove her hand after she measured. She just rotated it to the opposite thigh. Lisa was certain that the hand, which was kind of balled up in a fist, pressed up even more than before and she reacted by opening her legs alittle allowing better access. Grace did linger for a moment but was soon on her feet again.

 

She walked back over to the table and turned towards Lisa, openly staring at her perfect young body. “You should get dressed now Lisa, I have all the measurements and my aunt will be wondering where we are. I have to tell you though that you have one of the most beautiful bodies I have ever measured. I wish we had more time.” Grace was almost whispering when she said this, and although Lisa was used to getting complements and attention over her looks, she was not sure she had clearly heard what Grace was saying, especially the last part. She was about to ask Grace to repeat it but she was already headed towards the door and Lisa kind of knew the moment was now lost. She could not however get the incredible feeling Grace had caused when she rubbed her hand on the inside of her thigh, That memory would stay with her for a long time.

 

When she was dressed again she walked back out into the store. Grace was helping another customer and her mother and Grace’s aunt Sophia were talking at the counter. She walked towards them and when she got there she noticed they had picked out a number of items, way more than she had expected. Not only were there new bras, they all had matching panties or thongs, plus several camisoles, some stockings and some very revealing night wear. What really caught her attention was the type of lingerie that they had picked out. Up to now most of her undergarments had been much the same as other girls her age, somewhat juvenile, and cute as opposed to sexy. This batch was definitely more on the sexy side, and as she picked up one of the bras, she looked at her mother, and wondering if these were for her or for her mother.

 

“These are all yours darling,” her mother said before the question was asked. “Sophia will be making up some custom fitted ones also, but until then, and until you stop growing, we will be coming back here to make sure what you are wearing not only feels comfortable, but also makes you feel like a woman, not a child. Now go and try that one on and we will be going, we have lots to do still.”

 

Lisa did as she was told and took the pink bra that was in her hand and went into the fitting room to try it on. Both Sophia and her mother came in to check on the fit, and she had to admit, she did feel different wearing something so blatantly sexy. She noticed a big difference when she put her tee-shirt top back on and saw how different her form was, and how her breasts seemed to fill out her shirt even more than before. When she walked out into the store she could feel the now bounce in her tits as she walked back and noticed her reflection in one of the mirrors. When her and her mother left she also noticed that people seemed to pay a little bit more attention to her, and her new look.

 

Once they were in the car and driving her mother asked if she was hungry as it was near lunch time. They agreed to go to the club for lunch, mainly because they knew they would be seated immediately, and could enjoy a little more privacy. The club was somewhat exclusive, and the whole family was known to the staff and management. Besides the golf and tennis, there were a ton of other activities that the family had taken advantage of over the years. Her mother asked for a little privacy for lunch and they were seated in one of the many tables set aside in an alcove off the main dining area. The room was not crowded either as they were a bit early for the main lunch crowd.

 

“I can’t believe you bought me all that sexy stuff mom, I thought you and dad wanted to keep young and innocent for the rest of my life.” Lisa told her mom openly. They had always enjoyed the ability to talk openly and Lisa was somewhat confused over her mother’s sudden change in attitude.

 

Debra paused for a minute, wanting to be very careful in her approach. “It’s just time for this dear,” she started, “you are growing up even faster than either you father and I had ever thought possible. We’ve have worked very hard at making sure you didn’t grow up too fast though. Remember how we had many discussions about your body and the changes it was going through when you first had you period and you breast started to grow? And we’ve discussed the things you have been learning in sex education in school. I’ve always tried to be as open and as honest with you as I could. Both your father and I agreed however that we wanted to be very careful about how we would introduce you and your brother to the next part of you learning about life.”

 

Their food arrived and while the waiter was serving them and such, the conversation stopped. Debra could see that her daughter was digesting what she had just said, and figured there would soon be questions. Before that happened though she wanted to get to the real point. “Now it is time for the real lessons to start. You know the mechanics, and I am positive you have started to experience some of the feelings inside that go along with the physical changes you’ve gone through. Next we are going to discuss sex from the other side. I want you to know about fucking, and giving blow-jobs, and most importantly, about orgasm, my darling. Your father and I have planned for a long time about how we would teach both you and your brother about the more exciting and intimate aspects of sex. Just knowing that a man can shove his penis into your vagina is not enough. There is a lot more to it then that, and looking and feeling sexy like that lingerie makes you feel is just the beginning.”

 

Lisa was shocked, she had never heard her mother say fuck before, and never thought that she would know what a blow job even was. Of course she had heard about all this with her friends and such, but never imagined her parents doing it. As she thought this, her mind went back to the feeling she had this morning when Grace had brushed her hand on the inside of her thigh. This was what mom was talking about she guessed. She had to admit that she wanted more of that feeling. It was better than the feeling she had felt when she rubbed her own pussy, or even the dreams of some of the boys in school she was attracted to. She did want to find out more and she trusted her mother to be honest and open with her.

 

As they finished their lunch and ordered tea, Debra opened up the conversation again. “Are you still a virgin dear?” she asked deliberately, although she suspected her daughter was.

 

“Mom,” Lisa said, surprised at the question, “you know I am. I’ve never even had a date, and the only guys at school that ask me out are the senior jocks, and you know how much I don’t like them.” Debra knew that her daughter’s good looks and womanly body had actually stopped all the young boys her own age from asking her out. She had always worried about older men taking advantage of her also.

 

“You know dear, your father and I have always wanted the best for you. We wanted to make sure your transition into adulthood was smoother and more real than ours was. Our parents were very straight, and they tended to leave the finer details of our upbringing to the nanny, or the private school. There’s no way my mother would have ever taken me on a shopping trip for lingerie.” Debra couldn’t help but chuckle at the thought of her mother talking about anything to do with sex, even sexy clothing. “We promised each other that we would help our kids a lot more than we were ever helped. We were pretty naïve when we first met, and almost lost each other because of our inexperience with sex. Neither of us want you or your brother to experience that. To accomplish that we have determined that the best method would be to teach you more directly about the finer aspects of making love. We could give you a book, which may help, but nothing can replace the feelings and physical reactions you enjoy as you learn things first hand.” Debra paused waiting for her daughter to react. It was hard to approach the subject in the first place but now that it was out she felt much better.

 

After a few minutes Lisa responded. “You know mom, I’ve had some pretty strong feelings lately and I don’t know what they mean.” She proceeded to tell her mom about her experience with Grace in the fitting room at the store. Just telling her mom was making her hot again and she finished the conversation with that.  “DO you think this means I’m a lesbian mom? Just telling you about it has made me hot in my pussy again, and I think I would of loved it if we had not run out of time and I could actually of felt her fingers on my pussy.” Lisa had never said anything like this to her mom before and along with being sexually aroused she was very much embarrassed.

 

“Don’t worry my dear, I doubt you are a lesbian. Even if you are, so what, it’s just another approach to channelling the sexual feelings we all have. I’ve had a few experiences with other women also, it is definitely something you shold be afraid of, lesbian or not. Your father and I have some activities planned over this weekend that should help you find out if you are heterosexual or not. The only thing we ask of you is to trust us. You always have to remember that neither of us would never do anything to harm you or your brother.”

 

Lisa thought about what her mother was saying, about her experience with Grace, and about the feeling in her pussy that was only getting stronger as the conversation progressed. If she was alone in her room right now she would be rubbing herself until she had an orgasm. She intuitively knew what her mom was saying, but thought she better ask before she jumped ahead too far. “Do you mean that you and dad will be showing us how you make love, like we can watch or something like that?” The thought was one thing, saying it was making her panties all wet and she was sure she could smell the secretions oozing out of her cunt.

 

Her mom was smiling, “Well that’s kind of what we had in mind. Actually, we were going to show you a little more directly. I am going to show your brother and your father will be instructing you, if you get my drift that is. It’s a long weekend and we have lots of time to work all this out. I’ve already told you more than we had planned so you must not let onto your father that I’ve told you about our plan. When we get back home the two of us will get ready together. You brother and I will leave and head out to the country house later this afternoon. We’ve been planning a mom and son weekend for months now. You and your father will be alone tonight after the staff leaves. Really that’s all you need to know. Now, you have to decide now if you want to go through with this or not. We are not going to make you do anything you are not comfortable with. However, it won’t be fair if you change your mind too late. So how about it dear, any questions of objections?”

 

Lisa was not sure what to think. She loved her parents and brother a lot, and trusted them in everything. Her mother had never given bad advice or guidance. She’d read about incest before, and she guessed this is what they were talking about. She thought about her father and how handsome he was, and so strong. She thought about sex, and imagined what it would be like having someone close to her in a sexual fashion, just like Grace this morning. She thought about the warm feeling in her pussy, which was still active, and in some ways more active. She looked at her mom and saw that whatever they had planned it was what they thought was best, and as far as she was concerned they had not screwed up too many things so far as parents. She nodded and smiled at her mom, and as soon as she did she felt relieved, and excited. It was like a damn burst and she was getting caught up in the rushing wall of water.

 

Debra knew that her daughter had agreed to the plan by the look on her face. “Come on dear, lets go home now. I’m sure you have a lot of questions and we don’t have much time. Remember I want this to seem to your dad like you didn’t have any forewarning. We want it to seem completely spontaneous and natural. And I have an idea of how you can do that.”

 

This concludes Part Two. Part Three will have all four of the family back at the house making preparations for the rest of the weekend. rabbits@ehmail.com .

 

 

 

Turning 18 What Fub!

bouncytig06 on Incest Stories

Hi I should introduce myself, my names Samantha. I am one of three daughters and four brothers and the second youngest. I live in a large family as you can see but apart from that there are numerous Uncles and Aunts and we are all very close, but I was to find out how close on my 18th birthday.

 

My dad who I adored was so excited about the bar-b-q that he was arranging for me, he always got this way. I remembered my sister’s bbq’s and he was the same then. He walked around

Read More
with a silly grin on his face. My sisters we all happy and kept offering to take me out and by me a special outfit, it felt very special.

 

The night before the bbq dad insisted we all had an early night so that the next day we would be refreshed and able to cope with the whole day. I asked my sisters if they had enjoyed their 18ths and they all grinned and said it was one of the best days of their lives. My eldest sister Dawn (who was pregnant, no one mentioned who the father was!) said to just enjoy the attention I would get, and Sarah agreed saying ‘you never get it as good as on that day’ both grinned and went off to bed. So off to bed I went, happy and content that tomorrow would be great.

 

My brother Joel waked me in the morning; he sat on my bed and had a steaming cup of tea for me. As I sat up I noticed him stare at my tits, they were a good 36d and he looked at them hungrily. I kicked him off the bed and told him not to be a perv, but he just laughed and said ‘ Oh Sam that’s nothing’, and walked out of the room.

 

I drank my tea dressed in a little halter top and short skirt to show off my legs, as I looked in the mirror mum passed my room and said ‘ oh yes baby you will do nicely’. I was happy with the way I looked and when I got downstairs dad and all my uncles were there. I thought I might be imagining it but they all looked and not in a normal way in a hungry sexual way. I passed it off as my imagination and kissed them all good morning but noticed how they all held me a little longer than usual, uncle Tony even moaned a little as he held me and it made me a little turned on.

 

The party started outside and everyone was there, none of my family seemed to bother with outsiders and I had never found this unusual, it was just us a tight knit group. Dad offered me a few drinks but said I was NOT to get drunk; I hugged him and said I promised he said ‘if you do angel what happens later wont be right for you’ then he squeezed my arse and walked off. I was sure that I saw his trousers straining at the crotch, but just shook my head and walked off.

 

We were having a great time dancing and laughing and I noticed Uncle Tom sitting alone so like I always did I went and sat on his lap and kissed him. I felt his tongue enter my mouth and pulled back a bit, he moaned in my ear ‘ oh I cant wait for later, you have grown in to a sexy woman’, it felt naughty to have kissed him like that but I was getting hot sitting on his lap and squirmed a bit, uncle Tom held my hips and I felt his cock under me swell. He pushed me off and looked so hungry and said ‘later baby its all yours’. God I was so wet and nervous maybe I had gone too far he was my Uncle for god sake. I walked off and decided to stay away incase I got more than I bargained for.

 

Dad decided it was time for the presents, everyone gathered round. I opened presents from all the women of the family – I remembered now this was the way it was done. When this was finished and I had thanked them for all the undies, smellies etc the women left (again this was tradition) and I was left with all the men. Dad stepped forward and took my hand and looked at me – all my uncles and my brothers were standing in a circle round me. ‘Baby’ dad said ‘are you a virgin?’, I blushed and said dad in an embarrassed way. He looked sternly ‘we need to know are you?’.

 

 I was wondering where this was going, ‘god dad yes I am’.

 

 He seemed happy with this and grinned ‘well my little one in about 5 minutes your family here are gonna help you with that’.

 

I couldn’t believe what I was hearing – ‘pardon’ I stammered.

 

 Dad looked at me ‘ you see honey this is tradition, on every girls 18th they get to fuck the entire male side of the family!’ he looked at all they men there and carried on ‘then baby your ours always, we have you when we want, share you around. Your sisters have been there – why Dawn is having one of our babies not sure who hehehehe’.

 

I felt sick, ‘dad no this isn’t right’ I looked scared but he came forward and brushed my hair out of my face, then his hands slid down the front of my top and rested on my tits he squeezed and pulled my nipples.

 

‘Quite a woman now aren’t you Sammy, ok lets get started, first you have to kiss everyone then we go from there – so why not start with your old dad lets have a kiss’. He pulled me close and deeply kissed me I could feel his tongue in my mouth, god this wasn’t happening. Then I was sent round the group each Uncle kissed me hard, my brother Troy grabbed my tits and pulled them. My body was betraying me and I could feel my cunt getting wetter.

 

Dad came and put me in the centre of the group he pulled down my top and exposed my tits; my Uncle Jim begged dad if he could be the first to suck them and dad said yes. Jim came over and placed one nipple in his mouth and sucked hard god this girl is hot Greg he said to my dad. I felt hands lifting my skirt and looked it was my brother Joel, he was inside my panties running his hand along my slit, he whispered in my ear ‘I’m gonna be the first to fuck you little sis and boy have I waited for this, I have wanked off thinking of your sweet cunt on my cock’ his hands were everywhere. They stroked my clit one minute were inside my wet cunt the next and after that they were rubbing the outside of my tight arse.

 

I was beginning to love it and as I looked up my Uncle Simon was stood next to me stroking his swollen cock he looked at me and said ‘suck me now’, I don’t know what came over me but I took him in my mouth rolling my tongue over his precum covered bell end, he held my head and shot his load down my throat ‘god Sam I’m sorry I wanted to last longer than that’ he groaned.

 

Joel pulled my panties to one side and lay under me ‘come on sis lets fuck’ he said and slowly I lowered my virgin cunt onto him, he gasped as he entered me.

 

 ‘Joel no it hurts’ I cried.

 

 My dad was sucking on my tits and looked at me ‘baby the pain will go in a second and then you will love it’ he said then he went back to sucking on my sensitive nipple.

I decided I WAS having fun and pushed myself further down on Joel ‘oh god aghhhhhhhh’ I cried and as my mouth opened Uncle Tony slid his cock into it and started to fuck my mouth. I was beginning to get waves of ecstasy sweep over me

 

‘Dad she’s gonna cum’ Joel moaned.

 

 ‘Good boy Joel fuck her hard now’ said dad. I was cumming over my brother’s hard cock, while sucking my uncle and my dad eating my tits and I loved every second. Joel held my hips and pushed into me .

 

‘Oh god Sam yessssssssss I knew your cunt would bring me off’ he came like a rocket deep in me. I felt hands lift me off and position me on top of my Uncle Harry he slid into me with ease.

 

Uncle Tony pulled out of my mouth and sprayed my face with his cum, I looked at him and licked it off my lips ‘hot damn Greg shes a natural she loves it’, and I did.

 

Uncle Harry was sliding in and out of my wet cunt and pulling on my tits, I looked for my dad and he was gone, then I felt his hands on my hips – his fingers were sliding over my tight arse hole. I knew then I was going to be fucked in the arse by my dad, but I wanted him to do it. My other brother Mike came over and held my head ‘gonna suck me off now Sam I always wanted your lips round my cock’.

 

 I looked at him and groaned ‘ come on then Mike’ he slid his cock in my mouth and sighed at the feeling

 

‘oh sis yesssssss do me with you mouth’ he sighed.

 

Dad had got 3 fingers in my tight arse when Harry cried ‘shit I’m gonna cream yehhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh’ he filled me up with his hot cum.

 

‘Fuck Harry’ cried dad ‘I was gonna do her then – Pete’ he cried ‘get over here and fuck this bitch’ my Uncle Pete sauntered over slid under me and pulled me roughly onto his huge dick.

 

 ‘Ohhhhh Uncle Pete’ I cried as I took his whole length ‘please fuck me Uncle Pete that feels so good’.

 

Dad then pushed his cock against my arse hole ‘baby this is gonna hurt a little but daddy had waited so long to fuck your arse and its gonna be great’. I wriggled a little to let him know it was ok. Then he pushed, slowly at first then harder and harder till his balls were against my arse! That when he started to fuck me in and out stroke for stroke god it was great hurt like fuck he was jack hammering in and out ‘oh baby daddy’s fucking you good, mmmmmmm my angel best fuck I have in years’. I was about to loose control. Uncle Pete and Mike were matching dad I was about to explode. I opened my eyes and all my uncles and brothers were stood over and around me wanking. Mike pulled out of my mouth and covered me in cum and as he did that and orgasm ripped through me

 

‘GOD YES FUCK ME DADDY’ I screamed ‘FUCK ME UNCLE PETE’ they both did as they were told and Pete was first to cum.

 

Then my dad held my arse and groaned ‘oh baby you made daddy fill your arse, your gonna be daddy’s best girl always’ and he deposited his full load in my arse.

 

They lay me down then and 20 or so of my male relatives stood over me and covered me in cum, I loved it and strummed my clit as they did. I was a walking cum covered whore at the end.

 

After it had finished and I had showered and dressed, I went and sat with my dad, he slipped his had into my blouse and played with my tits, this was to be part of everyday life now and I was gonna to enjoy every minute, just like all my sisters, aunts and my mother did.

 

To be continued

Teachers Fatal Mistake

bouncytig06 on Forced Stories

 

Miss Saunders was a bitch, a real grade A hardcore bitch. Ok she had a fit body, great legs and tits to die for but she was a bitch. She knew it too and made the most of the fact that the boys wanted to fuck her but hated her at the same time. She wore either

Read More
black tight skirts or trousers that showed off her arse and always a top that made the most of those ample tits. But she was a bitch.

 

John was 17 and hated her class, she was his English teacher and he hated her, his cock throbbed when she walked by but her hated her. He sat in his bedroom with his mates Mike who was 20 and Leon 22 and they discussed how they would make her pay. Different scenarios like giving blackmail, or threats but always back to their favourite raping the white bitch. They had ideas of kidnapping her, or breaking into her house, but they were forming a plan they thought would work. John used to lie at night thinking of the plan and how she would feel while he fucked her, how he would humiliate her and how she would become her plaything. He would become her teacher her master and she WOULD obey him and his mates. How his throbbing cock wanted to teach that bitch a lesson and after her who knows another teacher or just some slut from 3rd grade who knew, his power would be endless.

 

Monday came and it was English first period all weekend John and his mates had plotted this would be the week. In she walked all uptight and snobby, she looked at the class and started the lesson. John was to attempt to get detention – this shouldn’t be hard as she handed this out to him on a regular basis. She walked round the room during the lesson leaning over the students checking their work when she came to John he heard her sigh ‘Oh John’ she said ‘this really isn’t good enough, every one else is working why is it that you cant be bothered?………well, answer me boy?’

 

John grinned ‘shut up, im bored this lesson is shit so im not doing anything’. There was a sharp intake of breath from the class and Miss Saunders went red

 

‘That’s it detention tomorrow night after school I’ll teach you some manners young man!’

 

John got the result he wanted and after school called his mates. ‘We’re on tomorrow night be outside classroom B5 and I will open the window then we will fuck the bitch and make her sorry!’

 

The next day came and John was in a state of excitement all day, he had to go off to the toilet and bring himself off once as he had a hard on that would not go away! The school bell rang and he took himself off to his detention, when he entered the room she was sitting on the desk waiting, wearing a black skirt, black stockings (he hoped) and a pale blue blouse that was heaving with her tits. He looked her up and down and his cock twitched, great he thought. ‘So you turned up’ she glared at him.

 

‘Thought id better’ he replied ‘you never know you might learn something too tonight Miss Saunders’ he grinned.

 

She looked puzzled, ‘sit down open your book and be quiet, I’m just going to the canteen for a coffee I will be 5 minutes and I expect you to be here when I return

OK?!’

 

John looked smug ‘oh im going nowhere Miss’.

 

While she was gone John opened the window and sure enough Mike and Leon were waiting ‘Jesus man we thought you’d never open up’ Lean moaned and they all sniggered.

 

 ‘Sorry but had to wait till she had gone, now get in and hide behind the door like we discussed’ John ordered his mates

 

‘Oh yeh man can’t wait to fuck that bitch hard’ Mick leered.

 

‘We will all get a go so pipe down she’s coming back’ John snapped. The two lads stood behind the door and Miss Saunders walked in she shut the door but didn’t notice them standing there as she walked over to John.

 

‘So John why are you just sitting there didn’t I tell you to open your book?’ she complained rolling her eyes at him.

 

‘Well now Miss I think its time you were quiet and listened to me for a change!’ John demanded.

 

 ‘I beg your pardon, I don’t think you quite understand the situation your in John’ she was looking angry and was about to go into a long explanation of things when John slapped her face, she gasped and put her hand to her stinging cheek, then things started to move quickly. John grabbed her by the hair and started shouting at her she was so shocked she couldn’t take in what he was saying but she herd the words ‘bitch’ ‘fuck’ ‘slut’ and was suddenly very scared. She looked at John and pleaded with him, she suddenly realised that although he was 17 he was a full 5’’ taller than her and a lot heavier and stronger. ‘Please John you can go detentions over forget about it, im sorry’ she was crying and shaking.

 

Then he spoke softly ‘Miss Saunders, I think we need to talk so sit’ she did and as she did she saw his two friends her eyes widened. ‘These two mates of mine and I have decided as your such a grade A bitch that we are all gonna teach you a lesson’ Mike and Leon smiled and moved closer. John continued, you are gonna let each one of us do whatever we want, if you don’t Leon here is going to cut you’ with that Leon brought out a blade and held it to her throat, ‘is that agreeable?’ She couldn’t speak, john slapped her again ‘I said bitch is that agreeable and you should have said yes sir………hang on no yes master would be better!’

 

She looked at him and mumbled he slapped her harder ‘yes master’ she spat. The knife disappeared and Leon’s hand moved into her blouse.

 

‘That’s better now get onto your knees in front of Mike and take his cock out! You ever had a black cock before slave? ANSWER ME? Said John.,

 

‘No’ she stammered

 

‘Mmmmmmm well your gonna sample three tonight and in future every time you answer me you use master or else’

 

She took out Mikes cock, it was thin and fairly long, it smelt of piss and she felt sick but she had no choice. Mike rubbed it over her lips and she parted her lips he pushed it in grunting as he did, she tasted stale piss and cum and gagged all the boys laughed at her. Mike held her head and pumped in and out of her mouth forcing himself into her throat she gagged many times but he didn’t care, he must have fucked her mouth roughly for over 5 minutes before he erupted in her mouth, she was pleased that was over but felt hands on her hair and his cock was replaced with Leon’s. Leon had a much bigger cock at least 8’’ and wide really wide, she still had Mikes cum in her mouth and had to swallow as Leon had forced himself in and was pumping with vigour ‘shit this is a hot white bitch’ he exclaimed. He held her hair tight and fucked he mouth like a cunt not caring that her face was bruising as he slammed into her. He had stamina too 10 minutes later her lips were raw and he pulled out and hot over her face, then he slapped her hard.

 

 John stepped forward ‘take my cock out slave!……………well what do you say’

 

She looked at him with hate in her eyes ‘yes master’ she spat. She undone his trousers and slipped them down his hips as she did his cock popped out and she gasped without thinking

 

‘Yes slave he’s a beauty isn’t he and this is gonna fuck you till your sore, now please clean him up as he’s been waiting for your mouth for some time’.

 

‘Master I cant take you all in my mouth your too big’ she looked horrified John was at least 10’’ and 4’’ wide.

 

‘Oh my dear slut of a slave you can and you will, now SUCK ME TILL I CUM’ and with that he grabbed her cheeks and pushed them in until she opened her mouth, then he roughly shoved into her, she felt her mouth stretch as she accommodated his girth.

 

‘owwwwwww’ she sobbed

 

‘Shut the fuck up and suck it you white whore’ and he sawed in and out of her mouth holding her head and pushing all the time ‘mmmmmmm yes suck me bitch that’s it feels good, god yes take it all in yeh yeh’ and with that he came. He held her head till he was sure she had swallowed it all and then withdrew.

 

She thought thank god I survived, they have had what they want, but her ordeal was by no means over. They roughly stood her up and Mike cut off her clothes till she was standing before them in just her stockings (John was glad he hoped she was wearing them). The boys walked round her touching, pinching and slapping her arse, tits and cunt. ‘Well Miss Saunders time for round 2, go lay on the table over there legs wide………..that’s it good’ they all stood before her looking at her pink clit. One by one they knelt and licked her, her body was betraying her and enjoying the sensations but she was not going to let these bastards know that. Then Mike stood between her long legs, she knew she could take him with no problem ‘please wear a condom’ she begged

 

‘Nah bitch we want you to have our seed’ mike snarled. He roughly spread her legs a little more and slid his cock in, she looked down and saw his thin black cock fucking her, he was moaning and she knew he wouldn’t last long, he came after a few strokes

 

‘Shit mike what was that’ cried Leon ‘she never even got started’

 

Mike looked embarrassed ‘you wait, her cunt is like satin I couldn’t hold back man’ Leon and John laughed.

 

 ‘Ok slut let me show you what it feels like to be fucked by a bruther’ and Leon slid all the way in with one push

 

‘Mmmmmmm’ she sighed

 

‘See the bitch likes it, don’t you slut, tell me?!’

 

She was beginning to enjoy being fucked ‘yes master I love it’

 

‘Love what bitch’ he demanded

 

‘Love being raped by your black cocks……………….ahhhhhhhhhhh’.

 

They laughed at her and Leon carried on fucking her hard, she felt his balls slapping against her arse. He was so deep she could feel her muscles tensing round his cock, he was pulling and rolling her nipples and she was moaning, just as her orgasm began he came leaving her hanging. Cum was running down her legs and she heard herself beg for me ‘please master I need to come give me your cock, fuck me hard make me yours, please’.

 

John stood between her legs ‘yes slave you want this’ and he held his dick against her clit rubbing gently

 

‘Oh yes master, fuck my white whores cunt’ he laughed as she spoke and she felt small and humiliated and she knew this is what he wanted but she couldn’t help it she knew he would own her after this, her an educated 27 year old woman owned by a 17 year old piece of shit but she didn’t care she wanted that cock in her. He held her hips and slammed into her cunt and she screamed this was the biggest cocks she had ever experienced ‘oh no it hurts please no please no’ so he pulled out she sobbed and he slapped her cunt hard

 

‘Now bitch beg for it, come on beg’ he sneered

 

It hurt too much but she knew she must beg ‘please master fuck me im sorry I have never had such a big dick in me, I will try harder!’ with that he resumed fucking her, her tits were jumping as he slammed in and out and her cunt felt like it was splitting into two but she was cumming ‘yessssssss’ she screamed as it ripped through her and his pace quickened as he met her orgasm and filled her as well, he pulled out and her cunt seeped with 3 loads of cum, again she thought it was all over but again she was so wrong.

 

‘Right boys last hole’ and they flipped her over onto her stomach. This time she fought as she had never been arse fucked before but they hit her and slammed her down and one of them sat on her back.

 

God no she thought I can’t do this, she was trembling, she knew her arse was going to be invaded and she could do nothing. Cum ran down her legs and she had Leon’s dried cum on her face, her body reeked of sex. She felt small humiliated and useless yet she was excited no one head ever made her orgasm as she had today and that had felt so good. She knew John would want more after today this was just the start and she also knew that after the three of them had taken her arse she would want John to call for her whenever he wanted, she was his slave!

 

They stood behind her watching the cum slip down her thighs, Leon scooped some up and rubbed it over her face ‘slut’ he shouted at her. She knew she was but licked the cum that was over her lips anyway.

 

Her feet were kicked apart and Mike again took first place. Leon sniggered ‘yeh let pencil dick break her in it wont be so bad after that’

 

‘Hey bro less of that, just cause im not a mutant’ they all laughed. Mike dipped his cock into her cunt so his cock was coated and wet enough to rape her arse. Then he positioned it at the base of her anus ‘hey guys she a virgin here’ he said gleefully ‘aren’t you bitch’

 

She looked at John and said quietly ‘yes master I am please don’t hurt me anymore’. John walked over to her and said

 

‘Slave your fatal mistake was making me hate you, now we are gonna rip your arse apart one by one and your gonna love it………eventually! Go on Mike do it’ he demanded.

 

Mike was quite gentle at first not plunging in but taking his time, slow inch by inch he filled her anus and he groan with every movement, she hurt but because he had gone slow it wasn’t as bad as she had expected but things were to change. Suddenly Mike came again he couldn’t last the boys ribbed him and called him names but he was so excited by her virgin arse and how it clamped over his tender dick that he wasn’t gonna argue the feeling had been great as he had released his load into her bowels.

 

Next again was Leon she knew he wouldn’t be gentle and she was right first before he entered her he took a ruler and gave her arse many slap leaving big welts, then he got the boys to spread her arse cheeks and shoved the ruler up her cunt then her arse, god she screamed. Then he removed it placed one hand on her hip the other in her hair and piled into her arse, she passed out then and didn’t know how long for but when she woke he was tearing into her pulling her head back by her hair and she thought her neck would break. ‘Yeh bitch, what a tight arse mmmmm you should see this god yeh mmmmmm’ he grunted pushing harder and harder, she thought he was going to cum a few times but after 5 minutes he was still fucking her hard, she screamed for him to stop. ‘Baby wont be long now come on help me make me cum bitch’ she knew he meant to push against him but it hurt so much but if it meant he would be finished. So she pushed back to meet his thrusts and he moaned with pure lust. Then after one huge shove he came she felt his cock pulsing in her arse and felt the stream of hot white cum fill her, then she remembered John.

 

He looked at her and she knew there was no mercy to be had, ‘hold her boys this lady is gonna buck when this fills her’. So Mike sat on her back pushing her into the desk and squashing her tits and Leon held on of her legs

 

‘Go bro, split her in two’ said Leon.

 

He stood behind her rubbing his cock from her clit to her arse and back again teasing himself, every so often he would dip the bell end of his knob in her cunt and she would moan. Then he moved away, eventually he bored of this and slapped her arse then went for the kill, he wasn’t rough though as she expected he slid into her slowly. It still hurt like hell and she cried out ‘shut up slave I’ve only got the tip in’ this made her panic she thought that he was fully in ‘wanna feel it all then slave?’

 

She knew what her answer had to be ‘yes master please fuck my arse with your huge cock I deserve to be hurt’ she was sobbing openly now.

 

‘I know you deserve it bitch, so take this’ and with that he slammed every inch into her ravaged arse, she was in so much pain she bucked and screamed and tried to move but it was no use he was raping her and she could do nothing. The rape went on and on he would not cum the boys were cheering as he ripped into her, Mike who was sitting on her was holding her arse cheeks open and spitting on her back and Leon was pulling her leg so hard she thought it would break but nothing compared to the pain in her arse, John loved this and knew he would come soon. Her arse was bleeding and torn and her cheeks had welts from the ruler, she didn’t look so haughty now. ‘Slave master is gonna fill you now, are you happy? Do you want it?’ he snarled

 

‘Yes master’ she sobbed ‘im happy to be you slut fill me up’. With a great grunt he came it seemed like forever before he pulled out he kept fucking and fucking and grunting.

 

He pulled out fast and great globs of cum, shit and blood fell to the floor. ‘Look at the mess you have made slut, get on your knees and lick it up’. This was the final humiliation but as she felt her head being lifted by her hair she knew she would lick up this filthy mess. On her knees her nose pressed into the shit cum filled mixture she licked and retched ‘if your sick you will have to clean that up too slave’ said John.

 

She cleaned up all the mess and her face was a sticky sight. John told her to lie on her back at their feet ‘now fuck your self’ he said ‘use your hands and finger your cunt bitch’ Oh how much more could she take, they all stood over her cocks in hand and watched as she played, it felt so good though her gentle touch and she was soon whimpering as her orgasm built, she blocked them out and wanked god it felt good.

 

‘Mmmmmm yes yes’ she cried as she came and that’s when she felt a hot wetness on her. She looked up to expect to see them wanking over her but instead to her horror they were all urinating, covering her with their hot piss and laughing, she lay there and cried as they dressed.

 

As they left John bent over her and said I have your mobile number and your address when I call you WILL come whenever and wherever, your mine now. Then he kicked her between the legs and walked off.

 

The two others looked at her and said ‘white slut’ and spat on her. She was still lying there 30 minutes after they had gone home congratulating them selves on a rape well done and she knew that she wanted more.

 

 

 

Daddy Dearest

kureeus on Incest Stories

School is out for the summer and Ava wonders if she'll be sent to some dumb old camp for silly kids her age or would she be able to stay home and have her "Daddy Dearest" all to herself. His new girlfriend had been coming over for months and Ava hated her for calling her dad that whenever they were having sex.

"Come here honey and let Miss Tawny look at you, she wants to take you shoppin

Foster Parents

phang on Incest Stories

My sister and I share a deep emotional bond. We share each other’s feelings, just like some identical twins. My name is John, and my sister June never lets me forget she is the older of us being born 12 minutes earlier than I. No mater what we do, she always takes the lead and I follow. We are privileged children, born into a family with wealth. We have always had a butler that ran the household, hiring and firing the cook and housekeeper. Our father traveled across Europe buying and selling just about everything from real estate to fashions to jewels. He owned several companies that are totally different from each other. Our mother started accompanying him on

Read More
his trips when we were about 10 years old, and that is where the fun started.

As June and I became curious about our bodies, it seemed only natural for us to “show me yours and I’ll show you mine.” We were very curious about the differences between male and female anatomy and the tutors Charles (our butler) hired for our home schooling did not want to talk about sex education – especially to children who were not out of grade school. This was about the time that we noticed that Charles would disappear into the new housekeeper’s rooms below our bedroom. There were strange sounds coming out of the room, but the door was locked, and window shades drawn so we could only listen.

One day when June and I were messing around with the computer an ad popped up on the web site about spy equipment, so we clicked on the ad and was directed to this great web site showing all kinds of spy gear, including a camera that looked like a book and sent an audio/visual signal by radio to a receiver that can be hooked into a television or a recorder. Since I had already found the credit card account in dad’s computer that everything for the household was charged against, I ordered the camera and receiver and charged it to the credit card. It arrived in a couple of weeks, and as promised, it was in a plain box addressed to me. I checked later and the charge was on the credit card, and did not show that it was from the company, and was a generic sounding company.

Finally, Charles was outside talking to the people that care for the lawn and the housekeeper was upstairs cleaning. June and I inserted the batteries in the camera and sneaked into her rooms. There was a small bookcase across from her bed that had several books that were similar in appearance to our camera, so we slipped it in between the books and hoped she would not notice. We eagerly waited for bedtime, and when it came, our real education started.

We were waiting for everyone to go to bed and had hooked the receiver to the VCR then to the television. Angie, our housekeeper, came into her bedroom and we started recording. She took off her clothes, putting them in the clothes hamper. We watched as we saw for the first time a fully naked woman. I was fascinated with her full breasts and the way they would swing from side to side as she walked and loved looking at the blond hair between her legs. She disappeared from the view of the camera but we could hear the shower running, and hear her humming. Soon she came out of the bathroom and sat in front of the mirror drying and combing her long blond hair. She then put on a negligee that was light green and was so sheer it looked like she was naked. There was a knock on the door, and she said, “Who’s there?” Charles answered, “The mailman. I have a special delivery for you.” We both started laughing, since we did not understand role-playing. Charles came in wearing a long blue robe and slippers. He walked to her and stood looking at her as she posed and twirled around. “I love the negligee you bought me, Charles. Do you like it?” she said.

“Oh, yes. I like it a lot”, Charles answered, but he seemed to be talking funny.

Charles went to Angie and started kissing her, running his fingers through her hair, and then caressing her breasts. He walked her backward to her bed and she lay down as he opened the negligee and removing it entirely from her body. We were glued to the television as he kissed her breasts and moved down her body kissing her between her legs and then we heard the sounds we wondered about as she moaned and threshed about on the bed. Then she yelled and heaved herself up from the bed with only her feet and shoulders touching the bed. Charles stood up and removed his robe. We could only see his ass in front of the camera as he crawled up on the bed. Angie said, “No, I want to do you.” Charles stood up next to the bed and turned to her as she sat up and swung her legs to the side of the bed. I noticed June was breathing kind of funny, as she looked at the huge dick sticking out from Charles’ crotch right in Angie’s face. When Angie reached up and took Charles dick in her hand and then started licking it, June started rubbing her crotch. It was then I realized I had an erection, although my dick was still a small boy’s dick. We watched in fascination as Angie gave Charles a blowjob and he ejaculated on her breasts. Angie waited a little and started licking him again until he was hard, then said, “Fuck me.” Of course we had heard the word “Fuck” and “Fuck You” before, but until this moment we did not understand the meaning. Charles did as commanded. He fucked her hard and we could see his dick going into her from the angle of the camera. Afterward Charles left and Angie went into the bathroom and then went to bed.

June looked at me and told me to take off my clothes. Gladly, I obeyed as June also stripped. June had small breasts just starting to form, and neither of us had any pubic hair yet. June got down on her knees and looked closely at my dick and took it in her hand, moving it up and down and side to side, then took it into her mouth. Man, that felt good! June said she liked the feel of me inside her mouth, but wanted me to put it in her like Charles did to Angie. She lay down on the couch in front of the TV and opened her legs. I looked closely and realized that she did, in fact, have an opening where my dick could go. I had never noticed this before, but she had never been in this position when we “played doctor.” I moved up to her and found that my dick slid right in as she was very moist.

June said, “Go in and out like Charles did.” This movement felt very good, indeed. I continued until June started breathing rapidly.

“Are you okay?”

“Don’t stop. Go faster and harder.”

June started shaking and about that same time I felt my first orgasm. Of course, I didn’t ejaculate, but it was still a great feeling.

June and I discussed the feelings we had and decided we would continue with these sessions watching Charles and Angie and doing as they did. After three days we realized that they did the same thing all the time.

We stopped watching them, and retrieved the camera before they found it. We also ordered some porn over the Internet (after all, we stated we were over 21 on the web) and again charged it to the household credit card. This had a lot of variety and we were happy to experiment along with the movies. We learned a lot and by the time we had turned 15 we were experienced lovers.

One day when Mom and Dad were in Paris, a car came up the driveway escorted by a police car. Our priest got out of the car with a man we recognized from TV as the mayor of our town. We were called downstairs and seated in the family room were a police officer, a woman in a suit, and the mayor. Our priest talked to us. He explained that our parents were killed in an airplane crash taking off from Paris. They were on the Concord that caught fire on takeoff.

After we finished crying and getting back to reality, the lady in the suit said we would be wards of the court, and the court will decide if we have to go to a foster family. I told her we would not go to another house. This was our home, and if the court demanded a foster family care us for, then they could live in our house.

In a few days, some people from the city came to discuss our situation. There were two men in suits that were introduced as detectives. They wanted to look over our house and see if this would be acceptable to bring in a foster family. In their investigation, they found the tapes we made of Charles and Angie. Bye, bye, Charles and Angie. The court ruled after viewing the tapes that they were a bad influence and would have to be dismissed. A couple of the court’s choosing would come to our house and care for us as our foster parents. I demanded that June and I have the right to refuse the couple as our foster parents if case we did not get along. The court agreed, but said the refusal could not be because we were expected to behave. We agreed.

The first couple were in their 50’s and wanted us to go to bed by 8 o’clock, and they were strict vegetarians. Nope! No way!

The next couple was at least 60 and the old man would fall asleep in the chair watching religious stations on the TV. They demanded we watch at least an hour each evening of religious TV and they wanted us to go to public school. Good-bye couple number two.

Then, a man and wife came who were young. He had just graduated from college where he had earned his master’s degree and was working on his doctorate. She was a high school teacher putting him through school. This job, she said, was a Godsend. It gave each of them a salary and also a place to live. Not only were they being paid by the state, but the estate would pay them to tutor us, and allow us to continue with our home schooling. The difference between her wage as a full-time teacher and working here was minimal, and if you factor in the fact they had no rent, utilities, or food to purchase, they were in much better shape working here. We still had the cook, so she would not have to do anything but teach us and keep the house clean. Her name is Mary and his name is Chuck. Both of them were tan, healthy, and had athletic builds. I couldn’t tell a lot bout Mary’s body since she wore clothing that was loose.

June and I lost no time setting up the camera in their bedroom before they moved into the house. We put them in one of the large guest rooms that had a huge bookshelf and hopefully they would not have time to browse through the books and discover our little toy.

We were rewarded with some of the best scenes imaginable. They loved variety in their sex lives and we learned to watch, but not tape. We loved the sight of their bodies. Chuck worked out 3 to 4 times a week and had the body of a model – a porno model. He had washboard abs and a dick that was at least 7 inches long. Mary was also well built. Her breasts were about 34B and had about a 20-inch waist with rounded hips in front of a beautiful shaved pussy. June and I would watch them, then we would fuck like crazy after. June started putting together a plan to seduce our new foster parents. Finally one day the time was opportune for executing the plan. The cook was off for the day, Chuck was reclining on a chair out by the pool studying, and Mary was cleaning the upstairs, and it was apparent when she moved, she was not wearing a bra.

June went downstairs in a string, thong, bikini that was designed to only wear while trying to get a tan. It was white and the sun would tan through the material. If it got wet, it all but disappeared. Over this she put on a short robe. Here I should explain that as we turned 15 our bodies had matured well. June was 32C with an 18-inch waist and 32-inch hips. She also shaved her pussy. Her hair hung down to her waist. I grew to 6 feet one inch tall. I work out and run, so my body is lean without any excess fat. I weigh 158 pounds and have a six and one-half inch long, 3-inch diameter cock. So far, the only person I have ever fucked is my sister, but I am looking forward to making love to Mary. I only hope June’s plan works and we don’t run them off, because we do like having them here.

June went to the pool and said, “Hey Chuck. Want to join me in the pool. I’ll race you to the end and back.” Chuck replied, “No June, I need to study. Maybe next time.”

He did not look up as she dropped her robe and dived smoothly into the pool. As she swam by, she splashed water up on him. When he look up, she rolled over on her back and he almost chocked when he thought she was naked. Then, he could not take his eyes off her as she got out of the pool and walked to the diving board. He could see the suit, but it was totally transparent. He could not help getting the boner. June climbed out of the pool and the top of her suit slipped down exposing her breasts. They have dark areolas and her nipples were sticking out like two pencil erasers. She laughed and pulled up the top as she walked over to where Chuck was sitting, trying to hide his boner with his book. June walked to the chair and sat on the side, handing Chuck a towel and asked him to dry her back. As she turned, she brushed his erection with her hand. Chuck jumped like he had been shocked by electricity. As he dried her back, she let her hand drop to his leg and absently started to rub his thigh while talking to him about what is required to get a PhD. Chuck had difficulty talking and his erection grew to full strength and was peeking out the leg of his shorts. June started to twirl her fingernail on the head of his dick and he just stopped drying her back and started breathing in a ragged manner.

During this time, I found Mary dusting the rail on the balcony overlooking the family room. From this position, one could look out the two-story tall windows and overlook the pool and the back yard. Mary was watching June and Chuck and was leaning on the railing. When June dropped her top and placed Chuck’s hand on her breast, Mary absently started rubbing her own breast. This was going much better than I hoped. Mary was getting turned on watching her husband being seduced by a 15-year old girl.

June had removed her suit top and untied the side of the bottom of her suit while Chuck continued massaging her breasts. She pulled his head to her breast and he pulled back. He said, “We can’t do this. We have to stop.” June just pulled his head back against her breast, and he started kissing her breast and licking her nipple. June looked up and saw Mary watching.

“Chuck, let’s go inside to the family room on the carpet.” They came inside and Mary backed away from the rail so she would not been seen. When they came inside, Chuck noticed that June was now completely naked. He dropped to his knees and started kissing June’s shaved pussy. June spread her legs and he went to work on her clit bringing her to a climax in short order. June told Chuck to take off his shorts and then took him into her mouth working on him like a pro.

Mary was back over the railing watching and panting. She had unbuttoned her dress and was rubbing her breasts. I had removed all my clothing and silently walked up behind her. Quietly I said, “Shhhhh. Keep watching and don't move.” She jumped, but did as I said. I reached around her and replaced her hand with mine. She moaned and backed up a little, right into my hard on. She started to rub against me. I pulled up her dress and slipped my dick between her thighs against her panties. She moved back and forth against my dick as I continued to massage her breasts.

Down below, Chuck was on his hands and knees while June was lying underneath him sucking his dick and balls while he was eating her pussy. Mary reached around behind her and grasped my dick and then turned around. I pulled her to me and gave her a deep kiss, which she returned. I pulled her dress off her shoulders and it dropped to the floor. Mary pulled down her panties and stepped out of them kicking them free. They went between the uprights of the banister and onto the floor below where Chuck and June were enjoying themselves. They hit the floor right in front of Chuck and he knew what they were, and then heard the moaning from up on the balcony.

Chuck said, “Mary and I have been talking about seducing you two kids and wondered how we would do it. I’m glad that you took the initiative.” With that he turned around and positioned June with her legs over his shoulders and entered her with a long, slow, push. When he was fully inside her, June started contracting her vaginal muscles milking him. He smiled, and said, “You have to teach Mary how to do that. That’s wonderful.” With that he started to fuck June slowly, pulling almost all the way out, then ramming back into her pounding June’s clitoris. June could not help yelling and moaning.

Mary had mounted me and was slowly fucking me. I was watching my dick going into her and pulling back out. When her pussy lips would extend it gave me a view I had never seen before. Then Mary heard June moaning and yelling, she started pounding on me as hard and as fast as she could. I knew I would not last much longer as I watched her tits bouncing and my dick going into her pussy when Mary had a tremendous orgasm. She shook like she was having an epileptic seizure. Mary screamed, “Oh God! I’m coming!” That’s all it took for me to blow my load, too.

Down below, June and Chuck heard the commotion and they both climaxed with us. After getting his breath back, Chuck said in a louder voice, “Hey Mary. Was he as good as you thought he would be?”

Mary replied, “Oh yeah. He isn’t quite as long as you are, but he is really thick. It was great. How was June?”

Chuck replied, “You remember what that detective told us about the films with the butler? You were right. These kids took them, and I’ll bet there is a camera in our room, too. But she knew what to do, and she did it well. I’m going to love being their foster dad.”

We did enjoy their company. After a week we all moved into the same bedroom and for the next three years shared each other. Chuck got his doctorate, and they moved out of state to an ivy-league college town where he teaches today. We became of age, and neither of us has married. We visit Mary and Chuck about once or twice a year and “renew old memories.”

Shana -- A 16 year old runaway

UncleDan on Taboo Stories


 
   A little about me.  I’m 6', 190 lbs, short cut lt br hair, hazel eyes and broad shoulders. Ten years back I was 50 and getting tired of the rat race. I was working as a programmer/analyst, trying to prepare computer systems for Y2K.  The more I thought about it the more I realized that I knew the ideal place if it was to happen.  A friend of mine had inherited 40 acres in the mountains that he was trying to sell.  I went to look at it and fell in love.  I was bordered on two sides by National Forest land.  We finally struck a deal that satisfied both of us and I was the proud owner 40 acres of mountain meadow.  I gave notice and retired. My 401K’s and my investment in the market were to give me a substantial base and continuing i
Read More
ncome.

   I bought a good 4WD pickup and small camping trailer to live in and started building a cabin.  I selected a site that was downhill from a year around spring and laid out a two-bedroom cabin with kitchen, bath, large living room and a spacious enclosed porch that overlooked a small lake fed by the spring and on into the valley below.  All of this sat on a full basement.

   As time progressed, I bought a larger generator and also installed a solar power system.  Next was a wood-fired hot tub, set in the enclosed porch.  With a cell phone and later DirectWay, I seemed to have all the amenities a man could ask for.

   Late in the spring, two years ago, I was homeward-bound west on I70 from Denver where I had gone for my monthly shopping trip.  I stopped at an old-fashioned convenience store for a piss and a coke.  I parked around the side of the store by the restrooms and got out to relieve myself.  As I approached the mens room, I noticed the door of the ladies room was cracked open slightly and it appeared as if someone was peeking out.

   I peed, went into the store and got my coke and returned to my truck.

   Just as I was about to open the door on my truck a young girl stepped out of the ladies room.  She stood cautiously, with her back to the door and her hand on the doorknob.  She was blonde, blue eyed, slim, about 5'3, maybe 110 lbs with what I considered a knockout 34B-22-32 figure.  I really like small tits.  The down side was she looked tired and disheveled, wearing lo rider shorts and a tanktop.  Her other hand held a small canvas duffel bag.

   “You going west?”, she asked in a timid voice.

   “Yes,” I replied, “for a little way.”

   “Do you suppose I could hitch a ride?”, she asked.

   I hesitated a moment, thought, ‘What the heck’ and said, “Sure.”

   I went around and opened her door, offering to put her duffle in the back but she clung to it tightly, placing it on the floor at her feet.

   As I climbed into the driver’s seat and closed the door, she offered her hand.

   “Shana,” she said.

   “Dan,” I replied.

   She said that she had been frightened by her last ride.  The driver of the big rig had kept offering her a drink from his bottle.  He had stopped for another bottle and she had run and hid in the ladies room.

   She was 16, from a small town in western Kansas.  Her father had died in the First Gulf War and her mother had taken to alcohol to try to forget her loss.  Her mother’s drinking and her continued fighting with her mother had gotten worse lately.  She finally had decided that she would run away.  She didn’t know for sure where she was going to go but thought that it would probably be LA.

   I told her a bit about myself and where I lived.  After a while our conversation lagged and she started to nod off.  Once or twice she jerked awake but when she found that I was only driving and didn’t seem a threat, she dozed off, curled up in the seat.  The sight of her sleeping soundly was attractive and sweet, but not really arousing.  I guess I had not thought much about young girls, both with being busy and having an open relationship with an old friend in Denver, who was just as busy trying to keep her own small business going.  We usually saw each other whenever I went into town or on rare occasions when she would manage a weekend at the cabin.  This time she had been away to visit her sister in Dallas.

   It was already early in the evening as we drew near the exit where I would get off the interstate and start up the mountain to my cabin.  I pulled into a rest area about 10 miles from my exit and woke her.  I told her that this was the last rest stop before my turn off and that there would probably be enough traffic that she would be able to catch another ride.

   She thanked me for the ride, gathered her duffel and was opening her door when a big rig flew by, Jake brakes, then tires complaining as the driver tried to come to a stop.

   In a flash, she was back in the seat, ducked down and pulling the door closed.

   “Oh my god! ,” She exclaimed, “it’s him!”

   I knew in an instant that it was the driver that had given her last ride.  Her face was ashen and her whole body was shaking.

   “Please, sir,” she pleaded, “don’t leave me here.”

   I looked at her, helpless looking and frightened.

   Finally I said, “You can come with me to the cabin and stay the night.  I give my word that you’ll be safe there and I’ll bring you back down in the morning.”

   “Oh thank you, thank you, I won’t be any problem at all,” she promised.  Then after a slight pause she asked, “You don’t drink, do you?”

  “No silly, it’s just never been my thing,” I answered truthfully, “only a glass of wine occasionally.”

   “Well, I would have gone anyway, I think,” she said, “Anything is better then trying to dodge that brute.  At least you’ve had a shave and don’t smell bad.”

   We pulled back out on the interstate with her still huddling down in the seat until we were well back on the road.

   As we drove toward my exit, she actually seemed to be excited about seeing my cabin, asking no end of questions about it and how I had come to live there.  The drive up to the headwaters of the Arkansas River is not that difficult.  You just have to be a little careful. Shana marveled at the mountains in their evening colors.  Once as we were passing an old mining town I heard her snicker at the name and when I looked over she was actually blushing.  This was the first, even oblique, reference to anything sexual that had passed between us. 

   When we arrived at the cabin she oohh’d and aahh’d, I think mostly because I had told her I had built it myself.  It was still an ego boost.

   I showed her around quickly, how much of a ‘grand tour’ can you give with that few rooms.  First the bathroom, then kitchen and livingroom.  I indicated my bedroom and then showed her the guest room, telling her to make herself at home there.

   I left her in the guest room and went out to unload the things I had purchased.  I needed to at the least to get the groceries out of the truck and into the house to keep them away from the critters that roamed at night.  I had no more than started when she came flying out of the house.

   I thought that something had frightened her but all she wanted was to help me with the unloading.  When we got to the perishable items, she grabbed an armload and followed me down to the basement where the freezer.  I seemed to take no time at all and everything was unloaded. The all the while I was marveling at the enthusiasm of my helper.

   “We’ve done enough for now,” I said, “I’ll finish it tomorrow.  How about a pizza for supper?”

   “Sounds great,” she replied, then very timidly she asked, “May I take a shower before we eat?  I feel so grungy.”

   I said, “Sure, there are clean towels on the shelf, if you need anything else, just ask.  I’ll get the pizza started.”

   Shana headed off to the shower, I lit the oven and set it for pizza.  Then I went out to fire up the hot tub and bring in wood for the fireplace.

   When the oven was ready, I put the pizza in, set the timer and started a fire in the fireplace.  Any time of year at this altitude it is cool at night and the fire does a nice job of keeping the chill off.

   Shana came out of the shower dressed in a pair of cutoff jeans and a white blouse.  She had a towel wrapped around her hair and suddenly it hit me, I never used a hair drier so I didn’t have one.   She was no longer a bedraggled ragamuffin but a very beautiful and alluring young lady.  She had applied just a hint of makeup, accenting her natural beauty. 

   The pizza was right on time.  The ‘ding’ of the timer startled me out of the revery.  I turned quickly and retrieved two cokes from the fridge, set them on the table and went to get the pizza.  It wasn’t a lavish meal.  I could tell that she must not have eaten lately, but she would pause after each piece as if to ask permission for another.  We ate with little chatter, she consuming pizza and I admiring her beauty.

   After pizza on paper plates, there isn’t much cleanup that the trash can can’t handle and we moved to the livingroom to sit watching the fire.  Shana had been strangely quiet all through supper and remained so as we sat watching the glow of the wood fire.  I wondered if the way I had looked at her when she came out of the shower was bothering her.
 
   Finally she said, “I’m really tired, if it’s OK with you, I’m off to bed.”
 
   I replied, “Sure, I’ll see you in the morning, I’m headed to the hot tub.”

    The porch has large French doors in front of the hot tub and when they are open and there is a moon at night you can see it reflected on the lake.  I usually go naked in the hot tub but opt for an old ‘speedo’ suit tonight.  Thinking I’d be by myself I took a lighter and a joint with me.  All else aside, I’d sleep well.

   I settled into the tub, lit the joint and relaxed.  My mind snapped back to the vision of Shana coming out of the shower.  I took another hit and my cock started to stir, trying to imagine what might have been under those cutoffs and blouse.  The more I thought about it the harder I got.  Part of my mind was saying, ‘Don’t even think about it’, but it kept coming back stronger each time.  Then I thought, ‘I’ll just get myself off and she won’t even know, so that will be all right.’

   I had just reached down and was about to slip off the ‘speedo’ when I sensed some thing and turned to see her standing there watching me.

   “That smells nice.”  “ I couldn’t sleep.”  “ I’d like to join you if it’s all right.”  “ It’s just that I don’t have a suit.”  All of this flowed from her mouth in a steady flow.

   I couldn’t get out of the tub like this.

   “The cutoffs are fine, but if you would like, there is an old flannel shirt with the sleeves cut off, hanging on the rack in the entryway.  That way you won’t ruin your blouse.”

   She disappeared and came back in the shirt which was half way to her knees and hiding everything.  She got down into the tub and held out her hand, indicating the joint.

   “May I?”, she asked.


   I hesitated, then figured ‘what the heck’, passed it to her, even as I realized this could get out of control. Sex and drugs with a 16-year-old runaway.  I hadn’t really thought that it might go this far.

   She scooted closer and handed back the joint. Our fingers touched and hers lingered a moment.  The contact was electric to me.  The shirt was wet now and flannel or not it was old and thin.  It was plastered around her breasts, clinging tightly to their shape.  My cock reacted to the sight, growing upward, held firmly against my stomach by the ‘speedo’.  I took another toke and passed the joint back to her.  Once again out fingers touched and lingered, noticeably longer this time.

   She took another toke from the joint and started to pass it back.

   I declined, “Enough already for me.”

   She took one more toke and put the jay in the ashtray.  ‘Smart girl’ I think, this is potent stuff from the high mountains.

   She turned toward me on the tub seat, pulled one leg under her, exposing her breasts above water.  The cool air did its’ work and her nipples press against the thin old flannel.

   “Do you really live here alone?” she asked.

   “Yes”

   “Ever get lonely?”

   “Seldom, I keep pretty busy.”

   There was one of those indeterminate pauses that only pot can bring on, as both of us enjoyed the approaching high.

   “What about the women in your life?” she asked.

  I explained that I had been married and divorced.  That my wife had not wanted to have children and I had agreed to get a vasectomy.   Not to long after that my wife had become pregnant from a man she worked with and the divorce was the outcome.

   “I also have an old friend in Denver that I see occasionally, I won’t live there.  She has a business that requires everyday personal contact with her customers and she won’t live up here.”

She looked out toward the lake and shook her head, “This is so different then Kansas.”

   A cool errant breeze slipped through the open doors causing her nipples to stiffen.  She caught me looking, blushed, then smiled.

  “I think they’re too small,” she said.

   “Oh NO,” I replied, “I like them like that, it must mean I didn’t go hungry as a babe.”

   Her face lit up into a broad grin.  “Really?” she asked.

   “Honest,” I replied.

   “Does this stuff make you as horny as it does me?” she asked, indicating the roach in the ashtray.

   “Probably more so,” I answered, “It brings back good memories when no one is around.”

   “I wish I had more good memories,” she said.

   “You’re young yet, they seem to come with time,” I replied.

   Her toes touched my leg. “I wish my time would come,” she stated.

   By now my cock was rampant.  Should I really be doing this?

   Her hand was laying on the rim of the hot tub.  I reached out and touched her fingertips with mine.  She pressed her thumb over my fingers.

   She looked into my eyes and whispered, “Please, I just want to feel that someone loves me, even if it is only for tonight.”

   We reached for each other and our lips met, tentatively at first and then with passion.

   Now all caution was thrown to the wind, we embraced and kissed, probing each others’ mouths in a hungry frenzy.  My hand slid through the cut off sleeve hole of her shirt and around her bare back, holding her close to me.

   She threw one leg over both of mine and was sitting astraddle my lap facing me.  As we kissed, she moved toward me until we were tight together.

   “Oh, you really do like me,” she gasped.  Her shirt had ridden up and she had nothing underneath.  The only thing now separating our lower bodies was the ‘speedo’ which had not manage to contain all of me.

   Her hand came between us and between us and began to unbutton the shirt from top to bottom.  As she continued, the shirt gaped open and her hard nipples pressed against my chest.  When the last button was undone, her hand caressed the exposed portion of my cock above the ‘speedo’.

   I removed my hand from the sleeve of her shirt and drew the shirt from her shoulders.

   “Are you sure you want to continue this?” I whispered.

   “Yes, it’s not as if I never have, it’s just that there always seemed to be something missing.”

   “Then let’s get somewhere more comfortable,” I said as I rose up, taking her hand and pulling her up with me.  Her other hand expertly drew the ‘speedo’ down my legs.  When she was standing, I released her hand and the shirt fell to the deck.  What appeared was a masterpiece of feminine beauty.  Venus de Milo with arms.  I followed her through the kitchen and livingroom watching ‘the most perfect ass’ in motion as she led the way to my bedroom.


   She stopped by the bed and turned, holding her arms out to me.  We embraced and I leaned down to kiss her, fondling the cheeks of her ass as I held her to me.  I kissed her on the forehead and then trailed kisses down to her eyelids, the tip of her nose and finally to her parted lips.  Our tongues met, retracted and met again.  We began to duel in earnest, changing from foil to saber as we explored each others mouth.  My right hand released her ass and sought her breast, cupping nearly the whole breast and feeling the nipple grow taut against my palm.  Shana broke the kiss with a sharp intake of breath followed by a low moan.  I moved to kiss the side of her neck and licked and kissed to the hollow of her neck above her clavicles.

   We moved against the bed and I laid her gently on her side and lay down facing her.  Her hands went to the back of my head, holding me tightly against her upper chest.  My right hand maintained a hold on her left breast, working the muscles of my palm on her stiff nipple.  Drawing my head down her body, my tongue flicked against her flawlessly smooth skin as my lips sought her other nipple.  It too was puckered tight and I rolled the sides of my tongue to form the letter ‘O’, extending and withdrawing my tongue and moving the tip as I caressed the tender bud.  Her hands pressed my head against her as she writhed with pleasure.  I retracted my tongue and opened my mouth, engulfed her tit, then retreated to the nipple and began to suckle.

   Low animal sounds escaped from her throat, almost like the purring of a kitten.  She threw her left leg over me and drew our lower bodies together.  The tip of my hard cock pressed intimately against her mons, the heat of her passion suffusing through my whole body.  All action ceased for a time as we basked in the pleasure of our conjoined bodies, each of us clinging tightly to the other.

   Shana’s left hand moved down my right side to my waist, sending chills and creating goose bumps as it went.  She proceeded to reach between us and encircled my cock with her fingers.   She began to stroke lightly up and down the shaft, causing my cock to pulse in her hand.

   I had continued to suck on her breast and now cushioned my teeth with my lips, drawing the nipple between them, I bit gently.  She inhaled deeply and pushed my head even more firmly against her breast with her right hand.

   My cock began to exude precum.  She took her thumb and spread it around the tip of my glans. The sensation, coupled with anticipation was bringing me closer than I wanted.  I didn’t want to cum just yet.  I withdrew my cock from her hand and coursed my tongue down her chest and stomach.  I paused at her navel, circling and then probing.  Her stomach tightened from the contact and once again she placed both hands on the back of my head.

   I moved my right hand down and cupped her mons veneris.  My fingers were extended against, but did not penetrate the vestibule.  The base of my thumb caressed the downy softness of her fine, sparse pubes.  I alternately applied and released pressure on her mons and she responded by thrusting against my hand and spreading her legs to allow me access.

   Shana rolled onto her back and I positioned myself between her outspread legs.  She raised her knees, placing her feet flat on the bed.  My tongue traversed the outline of her pubes and then down teasingly close to her nether lips.  The scent of her sex filled my nostrils, sweet and vaguely musky, permeating my whole being.  I continued up her right thigh kissing and nipping gently.  I reached her knee and looked up at her face.  She was lying with her eyes closed and was holding her lower lip between her teeth.  She was holding a breast in each hand, rolling her nipples with her thumbs and forefingers.  Her head was moving back and forth.  I glanced at her sex, her outer lips were swollen and slightly parted, moisture was gathering on her inner lips.  I changed to her left knee and started down her inner thigh in the same manner.

   When I reached the juncture of her legs, I teased around her pubes with my tongue and then made full contact with my mouth on her pussy.  First one and then both of her hands came to the back of my head.  Her hips jerked upwards, pressing her cunt onto my face.  The sweetness of her taste rivaled her scent.  I pushed my tongue into her pussy, savoring her juices as they began to flow.  Once again I could hear the purring in her throat.

   I placed my open hands on her lower abdomen, just above the rise of her mons, pressing down gently.  I lapped my tongue upward to her clit and sucking it between my lips holding it with my teeth.  I heard a deep intake of breath and began to move my tongue rapidly back and forth, up and down her clit.  She clutched at the bedclothes, moaning, her head rolling from side to side.  Shana’s legs clamped around my head, her thighs holding me in a viselike grip.  Her hips slammed into my face.  I continued to minister with my tongue until her entire body went rigid as she lifted to her heels and shoulders.

   When she finally relaxed enough that her back lay on the bed and her thighs released my head, I flattened my tongue and drew it slowly from the base of her pussy to her clit.  This I repeated several times, each time curling the end of my tongue to probe the entrance of her vagina.  Once again I focused on her clit, holding her to me with my hands under her ass.  She approached her climax quickly the second time and exploded, her body thrashing about violently.

   When her body had relaxed, she pulled my head up and looking into my eyes said, “Please fuck me, NOW.   I want to feel your cock deep inside of me.”

I rose to lie full length upon her and kissed her waiting open lips, letting her taste her own juices.

She reached down positioning my cock at the entrance of her dripping cunt and trust her hips upward. 


   My cock entered into her well lubricated tunnel, the muscles in the walls of her vagina tightening around my swollen member.  I thrust forward gently, fearing that I might hurt her.  My fears were allayed as she bucked against me driving our pubes together.

   “Oh FUCK!” she exclaimed, her arms holding tight around my back as her heels dug into my ass.

   Savoring the moment, we lay perfectly still, only my cock pulsing in a slow rhythm with the contraction of her pussy.

   We began a slow, easy lovemaking that increased like the crescendo in Maurice Ravel’s ‘Bolero’.  I’m sure that it lasted the full 15 minutes of an orchestral performance.

   Her impending climax, accompanied with sharp pants and low moans, drove me to newfound heights as I held her knees against her breasts, pounding against her cervix with nearly every stroke.  Her cumming set off my own climax and I emptied my self into her with a long series of pulsing jets of hot jism.
 
   We collapsed together, completely sated, kissing and murmuring together.

   I awoke in the morning, spooned against her back, amazingly hard and nestled in the crack of her ass.  I kissed her on the back of her neck and slipped out of the bed, pausing to admire the vision that lay there.

   I showered, dressed in cutoffs and t-shirt and was sitting on the porch when I heard her enter the bath and the shower start.  I got up and began to prepare breakfast.  I set the table and started bacon and ham (I didn’t know which she preferred) and hash browns.

   The shower turned off and a few minutes later I heard her enter the kitchen.  I turned and there she stood, towel wrapped around her head, dressed in my old terrycloth robe, covering her from shoulder to toes.  She looked every bit an angel.

   I held out my arms and smiled at her.  She broke into a smile and flew across the room, hugging me tight.  I put a finger under her chin and tilted it up, leaning down I kissed her gently on the lips.

   “Did you sleep well?” I asked.

   “Great, and guess what, I think I have my first really good memory,” she burst out.

   During breakfast she looked seriously across the table at me.

   Hesitantly she asked, “Could I stay another day?”


   That was two years ago.


   Two months later I asked a lawyer friend in Denver to make some discreet inquires for me.  He found that Shana’s mother had passed away as the result of an automobile accident soon after Shana had left.  He arranged for me to have full guardianship as she had no other relatives.

   We visited her parent’s grave-site and arranged for a proper headstone.

   Shana enrolled in the local high school and will graduate this spring and then go on to Boulder this fall.

   And BTW, Shana has met my lady friend from Denver and the three of us have formed a ‘very special’ relationship.

Comments (good or bad) will be appreciated.    Uncledan_1@hotmail.com

I’m not sure that I’ll add to this, it all depends what the future brings.

Kissing Cousins

Honey Ryder on Incest Stories

I was 16 years old. We were coming “home” to spend Thanksgiving with our family. My favorite aunt and uncle had invited everyone to their 1 story 3 bedroom 2 bath home on the North West side of town. The weather was great a sunny 78 degrees in Southern California.

I was especially excited about this trip because my cousin Kyle was home from school and I missed him so much. Growing up we were always close. Only separated by 3 years, we were always playing flag football in the front yard. Imitating the WWF wrestlers and their moves as we rolled around on the floor. We were inseparable and it had been nearly 4 years since I had seen him.

Dinner was great and since my mother and sisters were staying with my grandparents I decided to stay with Kyl

Read More
e and his family. Breean, his younger sister had gone to bed and I helped my aunt Jean clean things up while Kyle and my uncle Andy talked about the race car Andy had been building. I had noticed Kyle watching me move about the kitchen, just as I noticed him watching me earlier that day. The thought of him checking me out made me so hot, I had all kinds of naughty images of Kyle dancing in my head. After 4 years he had become quite a hunk. I always found him attractive, growing up, and I had a huge crush on him for years. I was shocked at how well matured he looked. Tall golden tanned skin, broad shoulders with a trim waste. Dark hair and blue green eyes. I could see that the sleeves on his shirt were tight on his biceps. Damn he was hot.

After an hour or so my aunt and uncle had gone to bed leaving Kyle and I alone. The two of us sat on the couch watching TV. MTV was playing Nirvana’s “Smells Like Teen Spirit” and I was so tuned in that I almost didn’t hear Kyle talking to me. “Hello? Earth to Danielle!!” “what?” I asked as I turned to face him. “I asked what’s up? How are things going?” “Oh, I’m sorry dude, I was into the video. Things are ok, school is school. I’d really like to move back home but my mom has this great job so I’m stuck.” “Yeah, I think I heard my mom telling me about it the other day. That sucks. It’s not the same around here with out you. How long are you in town for?” “mom and the girls are heading back tomorrow morning but I’m not leaving until Monday around noon.” “Right on. You look great by the way.” I could tell he was talking about my tits. 16 years old and I had been blessed with 38 DD’s. I just smiled at him, gave him a wink and returned the compliment.

I got up to get a glass of water and when I returned Kyle had removed his shirt and was lying on his back on the couch. Just the sight of him looking like that made my head spin. “hey, sorry. I’m really tired from the long trip home and it was such a busy day…I was wondering if you would give me a back rub if I flipped over?” WHAT? That was it, I knew I was done for. “Uh, sure…” I let out a breath I didn’t know I was holding. “umm, go ahead and uh, roll over” I crawled on top and straddled his ass and thighs and began to massage his back and shoulders. Grunts and moans came from deep in his throat. “How does it feel?” “incredible” I smiled. “Kyle?” “Yeah?” Why were you starring at me all day?” “I uh…well, ha! You’re just so grown up now and so beautiful…I umm…I just couldn’t help it.” By this time I had stopped the massage. “oh” was all I said. I felt him start to roll over to face me so I lifted myself off of him and started to sit on the floor in front of the couch. He grabbed my arm and sat me back down on top of him. I was straddling him again only this time we were facing each other. My eyes traveled over his perfect body and to his face. I felt his hands go to my hips and electrical waves hovered just underneath my skin as his hands moved from my hips to my thighs and then to my ass. I could feel his cock growing in his pants from the position I was sitting in. I was so nervous I was shaking. “you ok, Danny?” “Yeah, just a little confused. And scared that your parents or sister might walk in and see us like this.” “Everyone’s asleep don’t worry. Just go with whatever you feel is right.” With that I bent down and kissed him on the lips. Quick at first and then long and hard. I felt a ball of fire go from my stomach to the center of my pussy when he pried my lips apart with his tongue. My pussy was soaked and my cousin cause this. What the hell was going on? His large hands had invaded my bra and my nipples were sore from his pinching and tweeking. I rocked my hips on his groin and his cock now bulged in his jeans. “Kyle, I want you so bad right now.” “Christ I want you too. You make me so damn hot” My shirt flew to the other side of the room followed by my bra and he burried his face between my breasts. I arched my back for better access. He was sucking on nipple and then the other as soft moans escaped my mouth, I knew there was no stopping us. I felt his hand slide down the back of my jeans and grab a hand full of my ass. “Oh God Danny. Take of your pants. Hurry up baby” he gasped as he fumbled with the buttons in the front of my pants. “not here”.

With that said we jumped off the couch, I grabbed my discarded clothing and turned the TV off and he led me to his bedroom. Once behind clothes doors we became animals and tore at each others clothing. I watching as his cock sprang from his falling boxers. I heard him let out a soft laugh and I realized that I was wide and mouth gaped open. “oops. Sorry” I giggled. “It’s OK. I felt the same way as I watched your massive tits fall from you bra.” I laughed at this and felt more relaxed. “It’s just all so surreal to me” “It’s all real, Danny.” He flipped on the stereo and cut off the lights as he let me to his bed. We laid side by side and he kissed and nibbled my neck and down to my boobs. “That feels so good Kyle” I could feel his hot breath on my bare skin. “Scoot down baby, I want you to suck my cock” I did as he asked and laid on my stomach between his legs as he propped pillows between him and the headboard. I took his 8 inch cock in my hands and began to stroke it up and down while I placed my mouth over the swollen purple head. I licked, sucked and stroked his shaft while I massaged his balls. “Oh fuck that feels good. Suck my balls! Hell yeah Danny. Suck me just like that.” His dirty talk made me hotter and I could feel my juices all through out my throbbing cunt. It wasn’t too long before I felt his balls tighten. “I’m gonna cum, Danny. OH FUUCKK!” His cum shot out hot and thick to the back of my throat. Load after load I swallowed. When it stopped erupting I gave it one last kiss and worked my way up his body. Kissing and nipping at his six-pack. Swirling my tongue around his erect nipples. His hands roamed my body and found my ass. His breathing had become regular but mine was more rapid as I felt his fingers travel down my ass and brush my sopping pussy. “mmm! You’re so hot and wet. It’s like a slip and slide down there.” “Careful. You are going where no man has gone before!” I blushed at my confession to him. “Danny, if you’re not sure…” “Kyle” I whispered, cutting off his words. “ I have always wanted you. Tonight we have passed the point of no return. There is no way I’m walking away from this. Now are you going to work you magic or am I going to have to guide you through this?” I could tell he was surprised at my take charge attitude. “Hey. Just because I’m a 16 year old virgin doesn’t mean I don’t know what I want.” “OK. Just remember, when you can’t walk tomorrow, you asked for it.” And with one swift move he had me on my back was kissing my inner thigh. I gasped as his fingers probed and parted my pussy lips. “Baby, you smell wonderful” “ahhh” His tongue ran the line of my slit until he found my swollen clit and inhaled it into his mouth. “Oh yeah, suck that clit. Harder!” I demanded as I bucked my hips to meet his face. His tongue darted at my clit as his middle finger slide inside my dripping hole with ease. I arched my back which allowed another finger to slip in. He found my G-spot right away and soon my breathing had quickened and I new I was about to explode. “Don’t stop! Harder! Faster!” I quietly begged and he happily obliged. “oohhh yeah, yeah! Kyle, fuck! I’m cumming! Oh my GOD.” My Body stiffened and jerked as he kept me at the peak of my orgasm for as long as he could.

Dawn was breaking and I could see a disturbing look on Kyle’s face. “You ok?” I nervously asked. “you look disappointed.” He looked at me shockingly “Shit, baby. No way. You’re amazing. But…” Here it comes. Oh God I’m so embarrassed. I started to get up and search for my clothes. “Don’t say anything Kyle. I understand.” He grabbed me and pulled me back to the bed and I laid down next to him with his arms wrapped around me. “You didn’t let me finish.” he whispered as he kissed my neck. “You’re amazing. My dreams came true here tonight, well…almost all of them. But, the sun is coming up and my parents will be up soon.” Just then we heard the shower turn on. “OH SHIT” I said as we scrambled around to find our clothes. We snuck back into the living room turned the TV on and sat on opposite couches just in time for Andy to come strolling into the living room. “you two kids still up?” “yeah dad, a lot to catch up on ya know?” Kyle turned to me and winked. “yeah, to be young again. Listen, I’ll take Bree to your grandma’s so you two can catch some sleep today. But don’t sleep all day, we are all having dinner tonight at the Hacienda. All you can eat baby back ribs. Your mom and I are meeting there after work so you two can drive over together. Be there at 5 o’clock!” “alright dad. We’ll be there. Hey Danny, you can take my room if you’re ready for bed” he said with yet another wink. “sounds good. Goodnight” “night!”

I walked to his bedroom, stripped my clothes off and crawled naked into his bed, waiting for him to join me.

I laid there for what seemed like hours, fighting sleep and replaying the most recent events in my mind. I couldn’t get the smile off my face. Was this normal? A Sexual relationship between cousins? What was going on?

I must have dosed off because Kyle woke me with lust filled kisses as he crawled into bed and lay behind me. “mmm, what took you so long?” “I’m sorry baby, I thought they’d never leave.” “what time is it?” “7:47. We can fuck the day away.” I laughed at this as we began to wrestle from one corner of the bed to the other. “Kyle. You’ve got me so wet. I need your cock inside me.” “you sure about this?” “yes, do it!!” with in moments he was positioned between my legs pushing the head of his cock inside my virgin pussy. “Shit” “you ok baby? Did I hurt you?” “no, no I’m fine. Don’t stop!” And he didn’t. Soon after that he was talking so dirty I was cumming over and over again. I heard things I never could imagine “I wanna pump you full of my goo” was the best I had heard and still to this day nothing has topped it.

We fucked all day, just like he said. And I was sore. Just like he’d said I would be.

Through out the weekend we snuck around the house and fucked everywhere imaginable. The kitchen, the shower, the backyard, his truck, the garage. By the time I left for home it hurt to move.

After that weekend Kyle and I never had sex again, but when there is a family gathering he never fails in calling out “Slip and Slide” when there is a crowd. No one ever knows what he’s doing except me. We just giggle and keep our secret just that. Our secret. Of course there is still the occasional kissing and fondling, with clothes in tact of course.

5 years ago at a Thanksgiving gathering my aunt Jean sent Kyle and me to the store for more ice. I climbed up in the same truck that he fucked me in just 5 years ago. Halfway down the road Kyle pulled the truck to the shoulder of the road. I just smiled and asked “ What exactly do you think you’re doing?” “I bought something for you. Hang on” He got out of the truck and retrieved a box from the inside of the toolbox in the bed of his truck. He handed me a box and taped to the top of it was a Polaroid of his rock hard cock. I giggled and could feel my pussy get moist. When I opened the box I pulled out a rubber dildo, an exact replica of Kyle’s cock. “I bought a “clone a willy” kit and molded my cock for you. That way you can always have me, anytime you want” I thought I was going to cry! “Thanks Kyle. For everything.” I leaned in and kissed him long and hard full on the mouth. I took his hand and placed it up my skirt and between my legs so he would know that he still did it to me. He fingered my hot cunt all the way to the store and all the way home. I had fun! We always had fun together. We still do, just with out the sex, well. On his part anyway. I still have Little Kyle. Tucked away here next to my bed.

The Storm

phang on Taboo Stories

I live in an old telephone company microwave repeater site that at one time was the office for about 30 technicians. There are both an upstairs and basement, so I have three huge living areas. The best part is all the utilities were designed for a lot of equipment, so I have no problem heating and cooling living spaces. I also have a large generator that can supply all my electrical needs for over two weeks without having to get more fuel. The house is cut into the side of a mountain about 30 road miles from the city, the last 20 miles being very rural and mostly dirt and gravel. I have one neighbor about a mile down the mountain from me. The view from my house is fabulous overlooking a valle

Read More
y and river, so I had one wall changed from concrete blocks to glass.

One night last week we were expecting a severe storm that was a leftover of a hurricane. I stocked up on groceries, paper products, and wine and knew I could ride out almost anything from this building. Sure enough, the storm hit with a vengeance. After the second day of non-stop heavy rain, the generator started due to the electricity going out. I attempted to call the electric company, and the phone was out, also. I am an amateur radio operator, so I knew I could reach someone if necessary.

About dark, my doorbell rang. At my door was a very wet young woman looking for help. She was the daughter of the neighbor down the mountain, and was very frightened due to the lightening and thunder that echoed around the mountains. Her name was Robin. She said there was no power at her house and her parents had not come home since leaving early to go to work in the city. I brought her in and put her in front of the fireplace I had installed in my living room. After getting her parents’ names and where they worked, I fired up the radio and called a friend in the city. Robin’s father worked for the county and her mother was a pastry chef at one of the larger hotel resorts in the area. My friend connected me with the county office where Robin’s father worked and they said they would contact him and get back in touch through my friend and the radio. They also told me that the road to my area was closed due to landslides and two bridges washed away. It might be close to a week before someone could get back up here.

Robin’s father called about 7 pm and talked to me about Robin’s dilemma. I told him I had many large bedrooms, and Robin could have the entire second floor to herself and I would not mind if she stayed here and I would enjoy some company. He agreed and Robin was glad she did not have to stay at her house with no electricity. We drove down to her house and got her clothes and other items she would need, and returned to my house. Robin decided to stay on the main floor guest bedroom and moved right in. She would have a private bathroom and access to the kitchen. Later, she took a shower and came into the living room wearing flannel pajamas and asked if I had any movies on DVD or tape. She chose a movie that was less violent than most and we made some microwave popcorn then watched the movie. After the movie, she leaned over and gave me a little kiss on the cheek to thank me. I could not help noticing her breasts when she leaned over and the pajamas drooped open at the top.

When I awoke in the morning, there was a delightful aroma coming from the kitchen. Robin was making homemade cinnamon rolls. She also had coffee ready. As we sat eating breakfast, I asked about her and her family. She was 17 years old last month and about to start her senior year of high school. She is an only child of a mixed race couple, her father being African American, and her mother Caucasian. She was born in Paris, France, but they moved to the United States when she was only 7 months old. She plans to go to Paris after graduating to attend University and become a chef like her mother.

She asked about me, and I told her I was 28 years old and was a freelance writer and photographer. I had inherited a lot of money about 3 years ago so I did not need to work for the money, but enjoyed it because it kept me outside a lot. She asked why I was not married, and I explained my wife had been killed in a work related accident 3 years ago, and it was then I discovered that my wife was very wealthy, the only heir to a large fortune 500 company and had millions of dollars. Robin asked me if I had any children, and I told her that I had a very bad case of mumps when I was a child, and could not have children. She smiled a little, looked at me strangely and said, “Oh?”

For the rest of the day, I cleaned up around the house while she baked and explored the house. Finally in the afternoon, the rain quit and the clouds started to break up. We went outside and what a mess. The small stream that ran down the mountain was full of mud and huge boulders and trees were down everywhere. I knew I had my work cut out for me with the chainsaw clearing the trees from the drive and roadway, but that would have to wait for tomorrow. For today, we would enjoy some respite from the storm and watch some movies and television.

For dinner she fixed a fabulous roast and I told her I would clean up. She said she would go take a shower and be back and we could watch a movie. She was a good cook, but did she ever make a mess. She was in the living room with a robe around her waiting for me. I came in and she started the movie. IT WAS A PORN MOVIE. I did not think to hide them. Although I was surprised, she said, “Oh, sit down. I have seen porno before, but have some questions I thought you could answer for me.”

“Okay, what questions?”

“Let’s watch the movie and as things come up, you can explain.”

“Come UP?”, I thought?

It was a typical suck and fuck movie, interracial, bi-sexual, a little bit of everything except bestiality.

When the first woman went down on the man, Robin paused the movie. “There”, she said, “The guys dick. Why is she licking the underside but not the sides and top?”

“Some parts of a man’s penis are more sensitive than others, and she is working on the sensitive areas.”

“Show me on yourself.”

“I don’t think that is such a good idea.”

“Why?”

“You are 17 and I am 28.”

“I am not a virgin, but the two guys that fucked me did just that – fucked me like, slam-bam-thank you-ma’am. I have never had an orgasm, and since you told me you could not make me pregnant, I want you to make love to me. Not just fuck, but make love.”

With that statement, two things happened: 1. She got up and dropped her robe and was wearing baby doll pajamas that were see-thru and nothing on under them, and 2. I got an instant, monster, erection (after all, it had been almost 3 years since I had sex – except for masturbation).

Robin came over to me and gave me a kiss that I don’t think I will ever forget. She glued her lips to me, slightly open, and used just a little tongue. She did not press hard, and it made my head swim. She then took my hand and placed it on her breast. Although I knew this was not right, I ceased thinking about that time and let instinct take over.

I massaged her breast and then raised her top over her head. Gorgeous is the only word to describe the breasts on this young woman - about 32B and no sagging at all. Her aureoles were on the smallish size and her nipples were like a couple of pencil erasers. I started kissing her breasts and kneading them to her moans of pleasure. Slowly I worked my way down from her breasts with my hands and pushed down the panties of her pajamas. When I started teasing her labia with my fingers, I found she had a shaved pussy. It was getting better all the time. Finally, I pushed the lips of her pussy apart and moved my finger down the slit. I went down to the moisture and drew it up her slit where I found her clitoris. As I started moving my finger over her clit, she started pushing upward against my hand.

I could wait no longer, and started kissing my way south while I put my thumb into her pussy and my middle finger on her clit and applied pressure from the inside as well as the outside. She had her first ever orgasm. She pushed against me while she shook like she was having a seizure. I released the pressure on her clit and continued to kiss down toward her Venus mound. She put her hands on my head and when I stretched the skin over her clit with my lips and started flicking her clit with my tongue, she pulled my head into her crotch will all her strength and had her second orgasm.

As I let her rest a little, I took off my shirt, kicked off my sandals, as started to remove my shorts. She said, “NO! I want to do it”. She pulled down my shorts leaving my briefs in place and looking at the bulge. She ran her fingernail all around the bulge and ran her fingers back and forth causing me a great deal of pleasure and desire to free this living appendage and let it do the work it was designed for.

Robin then slowly started pulling down my underwear. When my dick sprang from the material, she just stopped and studied it. She said, “I have never seen a penis up close and hard before. It is beautiful. It moves on it’s own when I touch it. What is the liquid at the slit?”

I explained about pre-cum and said it was similar to the wetness between her legs when she is excited. The purpose is lubrication.

“I want you to teach me to give a blowjob like the women in the porn flicks.” Needless to say, I agreed, and she was such a good student. After about 5 minutes of instruction, she proved she could pass the final exam with an A+. Deep throat was something she needed a little more study on, but we decided to get past the gag reflex would take lots and lots of practice.

I told her it was time to examine different sexual positions. Her favorite was being on top where she could control how much pressure was on her clit. I especially liked lying there and watching my dick go into and out of her beautiful shaved pussy. The outstroke pulled her pussy partly wrong side out then she pushed back down putting everything right! It did not take long for the stirring in my loins to demand release, and I had a very strong orgasm. My orgasm brought on another orgasm for Robin and it lasted a long time with her controlling it.

She started to cry. “What’s wrong”, I asked.

“I have never had such a wonderful feeling in my life”

We continued this ritual for three days. On the 4th day, we heard a noise from outside and it was an ATV with a Sheriff’s Deputy riding it. He checked on us and told us the road would be open tomorrow. Now we knew we had to make the night special, knowing it would probably be the last time we would be together.

The next morning I noticed the generator was not running. The electricity was back on. Later, the phone rang and it was Robin’s father saying he was at home. I took Robin home and just before arriving, she kissed me and told me she would never forget me. After graduation, Robin went to Paris to study. About a year later, I went to Paris to see her. We toured France, Switzerland, and Italy and then it was time for her to get back to her studies. I returned home to await her return, since we had such a great honeymoon in Italy.

That was 10 years ago. We still live in the same house and her parents still live down the mountain, and Robin works with her mother, who is the head chef at the resort.

Me, Melissa, the beach, the cinema (ammended

Rob-ed01 on Teen Stories

My name is Joanna, I'm from central England, I'm about 5'6 tall, with shoulder length dark hair, hazel or green eyes, an English size 10 in clothes, with 34 'b' cup boobs. I was on holiday in West Australia, visiting my brother and for the first week or so, nothing out of the ordinary had happened.

I woke up that morning, with everything as normal, my brother and wife had left for work way before I'd woken up, the sky was its usual clear blue, the sun beating down as the temperature rapidly raced to thirty degrees. With nobody else home I got out of bed around 9.00 am, not bothering to put anything on, I sauntered into the kitchen naked and made my breakfast. I always preferred to be nude, it made me feel free and uninhibited, also a touch horny, so allowed me easy access to my
Read More
body, giving me freedom to touch myself all over and to eventually masturbate. After breakfast, I headed into the shower, feeling somewhat aroused by the water cascading down my body and me washing myself but managed to resist the urge to masturbate. I wanted to get to the beach and then that afternoon I'd planned to go to the cinema and watch a film.

I put my bikini in my beach bag with a towel, slipped on a sarong and got into my car to head off to the beach. I hadn't  decided which beach to go to but passed my usual haunts, feeling a bit daring, I pulled up at the nude beach, reached onto the back seat and grabbed my bag, opening it to look for my bikini. What was I thinking about, I was at the nude beach, I wasn't going to need anything to wear. My heart was pounding with excitement, this was a first for me as I locked the car and headed down the sandy path to the beach.

The further down the path I walked, the wider it became, until I found myself on the beach, being the middle of the week, it was fairly quiet, just a sprinkling of people here and there, a good day for me to begin bearing my entire body for the world to see. Most people said that I had a nice body and as I swam a fair bit and went a run most days, I'd say that I was in good shape, a flat stomach, nice legs I thought, my breasts could have been bigger but then they wouldn't hold their rounded shape as well as they do, my stomach was flat, which moves down to a cleanly shaved pussy, something I'd been shaving even since my pubes began to grow.

I found a spot within twenty metres of the sea, taking my towel out of my bag, lying it neatly on the sand, before kneeling on it, looking around nervously to see if anybody was watching me. I took in a deep breath and took off my sarong, putting it in my bag, leaving me naked for all to see as I sat down looking out to sea. I squirted a streak of sun tan lotion down each leg, rubbing it slowly all over each leg, from my toes right up to my thighs. Holding out the fingers of my left hand, I squirted out some more lotion, this time rubbing it from my neck downwards, as I circled each breast, in a way similar to when I was about to masturbate, I noticed that my nipples were fully hardened and as  I applied the lotion couldn't help letting out a pleasurable moan, my arousal making them very sensitive to the touch. More lotion was put on to my body, over my stomach and finally over my pubic mound and pussy, I wasn't that surprised to find that my clit was hard and pussy soaked by my excitement.

I lay down and tried to relax, trying to ignore how turned on I was but as the sun beat down on my naked flesh, it was virtually impossible to refuse giving my body the attention it was desiring. In an act of desperation I decided to go for a swim in the sea, so, standing up I walked down towards the calm azure blue waters of the Indian Ocean, until step by step I moved into the sea, with every stride forward the water became deeper, cooling my warm body. As the water rose to a level just below my pussy, I dived forward, immersing myself completely before jumping up five metres further into the ocean, so able to stand neck deep in water. As I stood cooling down, I noticed there were more people on the beach, all naked, seemingly unaware of their public nudity or anybody else and realised that I was as anonymous as they were, so decided to return to the sand and go for a walk to dry off.

Standing on the shoreline, letting the water drain off my body, I felt so alive and was growing in confidence, so turned and began walking slowly along the waters edge, making an effort not to look too obvious as I eyed the naked bodies lying on the sand. It wasn't as though they were all gorgeous, the guys had a certain appeal as I looked at their flaccid cocks lying innocently in the warm sunshine but then I became aware that I was seeing some of the females in a new light, almost as though I wanted to touch them sexually, my god, what was wrong with me. I walked for about thirty minutes before making an about turn, to head back to my towel and to sunbathe.

Finally I arrived back at my towel, which was now surrounded by other nude sun worshipers but by now, I didn't care as I lay down on my back and closed my eyes, allowing the sun to cares my body. It wasn't long before I'd totally relaxed, almost forgetting where I was, my nipples soon sprung to life again as my thoughts wondered what it would be like to touch another girl or to be touched by one. My pussy started to moisten as I started to lose myself in my fantasy, of being kissed passionately, being kissed and licked slowly down my body, my breasts being sucked, nipples licked, bitten and pulled, all by another woman. By now, my mind was a blur, my body aroused to its limits, mouth open as my tongue licked my lips seductively, my legs opening as my feet drew closer to my bum and the fingers of my left hand creeping slowly from the towel by my body, up onto my stomach towards my aching vagina.

I was now on auto pilot as my right hand started to caress my breasts, gently as first, teasing my nipples with the tips of my fingers and thumb but as the sensitivity of my nipples intensified, my action turned to pinching and pulling. My left hand was tracing circles on my mound, working slowly towards my pussy lips, waiting for my legs to open fully and allow better access. Once on my lips, my fingers could move effortlessly up and down them because by then they were well lubricated from my growing arousal. It wasn't long before two fingers had prised apart my swollen lips, starting their journey deep inside my pussy and to find an intoxicating rhythm in and out in long slow strokes. My breathing soon became more and more erratic as my hips began to buck against my hand, I was close to the point of no return, biting my lip to control my moans but then my fingers began working my clit, I was ready to explode. I could feel my pussy contracting hard as my orgasm neared, opening my eyes, seeing the blue sky above me, the reality of what I was doing and where I was, suddenly hit me but it was too late. My body froze, I was unable to breath, this was it! In a sudden release my orgasm hit, hips thrusting high off the towel, unable to contain my moans, I let out a long satisfied audible groan of pleasure as a second and third wave of climax left my body, until finally I started to relax.

I felt very self conscious all of a sudden but thought I'd create even more attention to myself if I was to get up and leave immediately, so tried to relax an enjoy this opportunity to soak up the sun. I lay there for about thirty minutes before having one final dip in the sea and walking naked to the car, once there I put on my sarong and headed home.

Once I arrived back home, I rang the cinema to check on the availability of a gold class seat (seats where you can put up your feet and have a drink before hand in the gold class lounge), had a bit of lunch and a quick shower. What should I wear, I thought as I entered my room? I picked out my white dress, which had a multicoloured paint splattered pattern on it, fastened with press studs up the front and came down to a point just above my knees. I rarely wear a bra, so didn't even consider picking one out but wearing a white dress, it meant that either my undies had to be small and light coloured or I should consider not wearing any. Eventually, I decided on a white thong, which tied nicely on my hips with little bows. I was ready to head off to watch the film.

I arrived at the cinema with thirty minutes to spare before the film was scheduled to start, so, after buying my ticket, headed up to the gold class lounge to have a drink and maybe get something to eat. People were sitting in little groups chatting amongst themselves and once I'd got a cup off coffee and a chocolate bar, I found a seat and table where I could relax and read a gossip magazine which I'd picked up on the way in. A few minutes passed, with me becoming engrossed by and article about some soap star, when I heard a voice say,
    "Were you at the beach this morning?"
Standing in front of me was a gorgeous blonde girl, I'd say, in her early twenties, piercing blue eyes, a little shorter than me, maybe 5'4, in an extremely short skirt, showing off her tanned shapely legs and a tight top, clinging to every luscious curve of her breasts, which I'd noticed were bra free.

Before I could answer, the cheeks of my face started to burn with embarrassment and I stammered out a reply,
    "Yes I was!"
She blurted out in excitement,
    "Oh wow! I thought it was you but wasn't sure, you looked drop dead gorgeous on the beach, not that you don't look as good now, god you do. Do you mind if I sit down, I'm here by myself and it looks like you are too. I'm Melissa by the way."
I smiled and gestured for her to sit down, trying not to die from embarrassment. She was so bubbly, it was     impossible not to like her and yes, I'd say I fancied her straight away.
    "Was it your first time on a nude beach today?" She asked.
    "Yes it was, how did you guess? My name's Joanna by the way."
    "Well, when I got to the beach, I saw you in the water, it looked as though you were trying to hide but then when you were walking, you looked like you relaxed. But then when you lay down, it was like you were very aware of your nudity and couldn't stop being excited."
I was going more red by the second, realising that she had been watching me but I was also very excited knowing that she'd noticed me and had said I was gorgeous, it didn't deter me that we were both the same sex, in fact, it excited me more.
    "How long were you watching me for", I asked nervously.
Giggling, she replied,
    "Oh, all the time, you looked so pretty and I liked that you'd got so turned on and played with yourself, it was incredibly erotic!"
    "Oh my god! I cannot believe you saw me, I can't believe I actually did that but you know, wow, was I horny or what!"
Melissa was laughing as I talked to her about the beach and what happened, I hadn't for one second even considered what her sexual preference might be or dared to tell her what I was thinking about as I'd masturbated on the beach.
    "Hey! What seat are you in Joanna?"
I looked down at my ticket.
    "Fifty seven C!"
    "No way! I'm in fifty seven D. How cool is that, it must be fate or  something, first seeing you this morning, now here and even in the seat next to you. COOL!"

Melissa's enthusiasm was infectious, I don't think we stopped talking, even as we walked side by side into the cinema we were chatting away, right up until the screen curtain drew away from the screen, when we agreed to see each other after the film. I was so happy as I kicked off my sandals and settled back to watch the film but never really got interested in watching the film and began thinking how good it was to have met this girl. Then I started to wonder, why she thought I had looked drop dead gorgeous on the beach, why she thought I looked so erotic as I masturbated, did she actually FANCY me and why didn't I hate the thought of that. In fact, I paused in my thoughts, my nipples are rock hard and oh my god, I was turned on, my thong was definitely wet. I casually looked at her, silhouetted in the dimly lit theatre, reflected colours from the film dancing over her sweet face, glancing lower, I couldn't help smiling, noticing her nipples, now obvious through her top, her skirt had ridden up as she sat cross legged, revealing her undies to my view.

I decided to look elsewhere, looking at Melissa was only turning me on more and was finding it hard to resist the temptation yearning for satisfaction between my thighs. In the seat immediately to my right was a guy, who given the light I thought was maybe, fifteen or sixteen, obviously there with his girlfriend as they were holding hands. This is no good, I thought, I must watch this film and get my mind off sex. For the next fifteen or twenty minutes I managed to start concentrating on the film and was actually feeling pretty normal again.

Hearing shuffling from the seat to my right, I turned slowly to see what was going on. The guys girlfriend was now sitting on his lap, legs curled up as if he was part of the chair and were locked together kissing passionately. Seeing them together inflamed my desires once more, his hand up under her top, obviously caressing her breasts, my own nipples now hard again, my pussy becoming wet again as I saw that her skirt was hitched up, revealing all of her legs and tiny knickers. I was transfixed as I watched their passion develop, seeing her hand disappear between her body and his, oh my god, she was undoing his shorts and the hand that had been working her breasts was now pushing her knickers down her thighs, past her knees, allowing her to kick them on the floor.

I was fully aroused after seeing that, a deep tingling sensation in the depths of my pussy and was almost unaware that I'd undone the bottom half of my dress, my legs parted slightly as fingers massaged my pussy through the fabric of my thong. Seeing the couple to my right was the catalyst sparking me to want to satisfy myself but as in the morning my thoughts were now of something that before that day, had never entered my head, more specifically, they were of Melissa making love to me, our two bodies wrapped together grinding hard as we kissed. My eyes closed as my breathing became shallower, my fingers working my pussy with greater intensity, legs opening wider. Another stud on my dress popped open as I moved my hand upwards, searching for the waistband of my underwear, fingers and hand slipping under the fabric of my thong getting closer to my pussy lips, my heart pounding as my desire increased.

I was in my own little world, the thoughts of Melissa touching me, was driving me over the edge, my eyes were closed, mouth open, tongue writhing between my lips. I felt the top stud of my dress open and seconds later a second revealed more of my body to the world. I could feel a hand slip inside my dress, over my right breast, cupping my flesh tenderly. Fingers and thumb moved seductively to my hardened nipple before teasing gently, pinching, twisting, pulling, to the point where it added to my stimulation, sensitising my breasts to their maximum.

The fingers of my right hand were now deep inside my vagina, finding a steady long rhythm in and out, my breathing extremely erratic verging on moaning, the nails of my left hand digging into the chair as the pleasurable feelings grew inside me. It suddenly dawned on me, who's hand was on my breast, so, nervously opened my eyes. Looking right, towards the couple, thinking it may have been one of them, it was obvious that they too, only had eyes for what they were doing, the girl now straddling his body, moving on and off his cock. Turning my head left, Melissa smiled lovingly at me as her fingers worked harder on my nipple. I beamed a return smile but the knowledge that it was her caressing me sent me over the edge, as my pussy contracted, I let out a long groan as the first wave of orgasm hit, surge after surge followed, before my body could relax.

Melissa got up and moved to stand at the end of my chair, my heart pounding with excitement and anticipation, what was she going to do, oh my god is she going to kiss my, my mind was racing, I was so nervous. She was smiling at me, looking deep into my eyes as she reached forward to pull me further down in the chair, then standing up again, her hands disappeared behind her, seconds later, her skirt fell to the floor, her fingers pulling at the waistband of her panties, easing them over her hips, allowing them to slip effortlessly down her silky smooth sexy legs. Bending forward, she took hold of my dress and with a cheeky grin on her face, a swift tug from either of her hands opened my dress fully. Without hesitation, she reached for the bows of my thong, pulled at them, letting the fabric exposed my sodden pussy to her.

I was paralysed with nervous anticipation as she straddled my open legs, then sitting between them, her pussy millimetres from mine, her legs now wrapping around me easing our bodies together. I let out a gasp as our pussy's touched,  melting into each other, gripping her top, she lifted it over her head, leaving her nude on top of me. Her hands, lead by the seductive touch of her fingers, traced up my stomach, over my breasts, up to my shoulders, pushing my dress off and down my arms, her face, her lips, now only centimetres away from mine, I could feel her warm breath. She continued to move onto me, I felt my hard nipples pressing into her warm soft flesh and her nipples into mine. My hips, involuntarily, began to grind against her rhythmically. She paused as the lips of our mouths touched for the very first time, soft and moist as they pressed harder together, lips parting nervously, almost in hope but then as I pushed my tongue forward, hers was there to meet mine. We were kissing, the passion igniting like a raging inferno, our hips grinding together harder and faster with each passing moment. My fingers digging in to the flesh of her arse cheeks, pulling her as close to me as I could et her. My legs opened wider, which invited her onto me further, my hardened clit now caressing her and then as she shifted slightly, almost expertly her clit touched mine.

Still kissing, we moaned as our clitoris's sent our passions higher, I could feel my orgasm building as my vagina started to contract. Our kiss parted as our bodies froze, neither of us able to breath, I felt her push hard onto me, a sudden rush of moisture leaving her into me, my god, she was cuming but before I could gather my thoughts, my own body  climaxed in ecstatic orgasm, over and over, wave after wave of pleasure, wetness drenching the seat below us. We began to relax, offering each other little kisses, happy to cuddle the other for a  while.

After what seemed a lifetime, Melissa said,
    "We had better get dressed Joanna",
I merely smiled and nodded in agreement, pulling on my dress and fastening the studs, never taking my eyes off her, watching her dress. I picked up my thong and put it into my bag, giggling as the film credits scrolled up the screen and theatre lights switched on. Taking Melissa's hand we walked down the slope out of the cinema. The couple who had been sitting to my right past us, the girl looked at us and said,
    "Good film, wasn't it, you two looked to have enjoyed it as much as  we did!"
The four of us laughed, cuddling our respective partners while walking towards the exit.

As we reached my car we kissed passionately before, still cuddling, Melissa looked at me and said,
    "Do you want to follow me home, we have to get to know each other better, I want us to be lovers!"
What else could I said, I'd known her less than three hours, had the best sex and orgasms of my life so far and felt so at ease with her, I didn't want to let her go, so, it was off to Cottesloe for me.

any feedback welcome
                              joannacharles86@hotmail.com

Hotel Meeting

francis on Fetish Stories

Meeting in the Hotel:

Steve had booked the hotel two weeks ago.  It had been a frustrating time waiting until he and Jane would finally spend time together since they had met at a mutual friends party.  But, she had a teenage son and it had taken time for her to be free – he was going to be at his father's over the weekend.

He had changed after showering – a pale green cotton 'Oxford' shirt, putty coloured chinos and suede loafers.  He lay on the king-sized bed and texted Jane; letting her know the number of the room.  He had an hour left till she was expected.  So he mused as to how he would greet her.  While he gave an air of confidence which women seemed to like, underneath he was nervou
Read More
s; he thought that Jane would be just as nervous as he was, while on her drive from work to the hotel.  He decided what he would do and checked that he had everything ready for her.

His mobile phone buzzed and he found he had a message.  Jane had jut parked her car, and was on her way to the room.  Steve sat on the bed and while his stomach churned, he ran through his opening moves.

There was a knock on the door, and he arose from the bed.  He opened the door and took Jane's over-night bag from her, and with the other hand, took her hand in his and lead her into the room.  He slipped her bag onto the baggage stand.  He turned and faced her and lifting her chin gently kissed her.  

“At last, young lady, I thought you'd never arrive.”

He lead her towards the bed and stood in front of her. He slipped her jacket of her shoulders and tossed it onto the nearby sofa. Her white shirt was semi-see through and he could see her full breasts in the black bra she was wearing.  From the pocket of his chino's he pulled a fine silky scarf; he made it into a loop and slid a wrist into it, and wrapped the other wrist in the  tail that was left and a knot tied in the gap made between the wrist, which securely held them together.

Another scarf was then tied around her head so as to act as a blindfold.

With that he took her over to the bed, and sat on the edge.  Still holding her hand he pulled her so that she started to fall and as she did so, he moved her so she was bent over his thighs.  Jane had moved so as to help Steve have her in this position.

She to had been keyed up for the mutually satisfying reunion with the man that had sparked that special desire in her.  Not just the tingling in her breasts and vulva, but the feeling that he knew how to fulfil the other desire she harboured.  

She had - since a teenager – needed a man to 'take her in hand', and apply a spanking and caning to her.  Now, single again, she had the confidence to find and at last have her bottom given the long awaited 'therapy' it needed.  This was not for 'punishment' but to give her pleasure – just like sex did.  If fact, to her it was now as important as sex.  The idea alone made her wet, and she knew that she would need to cum after she had received her spanking.  It added a frisson which added to the encounter she was about to experience.  Now she was bent over his lap.

Steve had been so keyed up he had not noticed what she had been wearing.  Now he took in the sight that Jane presented to him.  He had helped her pull off the jacket of her black suit.  Her skirt was tight across her bottom, and her legs were covered by black nylons; he was now rubbing her bottom prior to the first spank, and he moved lower on to her thighs, where he felt them to be stockings, with the tell-tale fastenings of her suspender belt.  He felt a slight stirring just knowing she was wearing them.

He raised is hand and brought it down one one of her buttocks, followed by 5 more – alternating between the two curved half of her rump, still tightly covered by her skirt.  He held the hem and eased it up her legs, past the darker band of her stocking tops, the fastenings of her black suspender belt coming into view.  Her skin above the stockings seemed a pale compared with  the dark lingerie.  Pulling the hem further up and over her bottom to the level of her white shirt, her lacy panties were visible, and then completely exposed.  Jane had squirmed so as to help the uncovering of her rear.  Steve again caressed her  bottom.  There was the start of the warming and reddening the spanking would cause.  He now continued to spank each buttock in turn; not hard but allowing the sensation to develop.  He spent time between each series of slaps, exploring the area of her bottom and thighs; some of the slaps had been to the top of her thighs, which had Jane make muffled cries when he did so.  Steve found he was becoming hard as the spanking continued.  He now needed to see the bare bottom of this very attractive woman on his lap. His hands reached the waist-band of her panties, and slowly pulled them down, over the fleshly mounts and along Jane's long legs until they were at her knees.  Her passed his hands up her inner thighs – slowly and deliberately.  Jane let out a guttural sigh.  She too was becoming excited.  He took care to not touch the intimate area of her vulva, he wanted to tease her and bring her to a more heightened level of sexual stimulation before he touched her there; though he was finding it harder and harder not to touch her intimately.    As he reached her reddened globes, he could see Jane was becoming moist as her excitement increased.  

He again started spanking her.  The bareness increasing the pleasure of it for him.  The tactile feel of bare skin was more sensual and erotic, especially with her bottom framed by the stockings and suspender belt.  As he alternated the spanking and caressing, he enjoyed the movements it caused Jane to make .  She kicked her legs and increased the squirming on his lap.  Her cries were becoming more those of pleasure than of pain.  Her panties had slipped down her legs and were now almost completely off, hanging from one ankle.

Steve started to feel dampness on his right thigh.  As he caressed her bottom he moved lower, down on to her thighs; stroking first the left one moving down to the delicate, soft space behind her knee.  Then moving over to the right thigh, staying briefly behind her knee, lightly touching the delicate skin; and the traversing the length of this thigh.  He was careful to bring his finger as close to her labia as he could, but without touching them.  He could though feel the sticky female juices which had dampened his own lap.  

Jane was wet, and as he drew his fingers up her thigh.  She was willing him to touch the delicate petals of her labia; they were ready for the attention.  Her wetness ready to allow even more attention, to allow the invasion of his fingers into her.  But he deliberately did not.  He would, but he was teasing her.  Making her wait, making her even more tense and excited.  She let a deep moan leave her lips.  She would have pushed back so that he touched her labia, but he was again making circular movement over her buttocks, and her opportunity was lost.  Steve continued with the spanking.  A warm glowing had spread.  From the red cheeks though her, so that the warmth was also running through her sex.

As he continued, the warmth was spreading further up her body, up to her breasts, making her nipples stiff.  She could not tell if it was just the spanking or her becoming sexually excited – or a mix of the too.  She didn't care the sensations were delicious.  This was better than she thought it would be – much better.


Throwaway Child: A Love Story

hillarysmuff on Other Stories

Chapter 1-Suffer the Child

Sandra woke with a jolt from a night of fitful sleep. She was cold, but had nothing to cover herself with, save the clothes she was wearing. She looked around the empty clothes donation bin that had been her home for the past several weeks. It was empty, as empty as the stomach that growled for food. She cursed herself, again, for leaving her backpack in the bin the day before. She had gone out to hustle for food. When she returned, someone had emptied the bin, taking with them the backpack that contained all of her worldly belongings. Sandra climbed out of the bin, and recalled how she had come to be in this fix in the first place.

It had all started when her mother got a new boyfriend. She had instantly taken a dislike to the man, and perc

Read More
eived the feeling was mutual. He was fat and lazy. He moved in a week after meeting her mom and instantly made her feel a stranger in the trailer home that she and her mother called home. Sandra remembered the critical moment.

It was a beautiful indian summer day. Leaving the school grounds with a new friend, they walked together to the new friend's house. Her new friend, Lisa, had many things Sandra wished she had-two parents, a real house, cable TV, a computer, and a real nice CD player. Sandra had hung around listening to music while the girls giggled about school gossip. Suddenly, the sixth grader realized she was late and excused herself. Sandra ran all the way home, arriving at the front door at five minutes past five.

When she walked in, her mother and the boyfriend gave her a look. Greg looked at his watch and said: "she needs to be taught a lesson". "I think you're right Greg", her mother added. Her mother and Greg stood up. Greg pulled the belt from his pants. Terrified, Sandra asked:"What are you doing?" as she backed against the door.

Sandra's mother caught the girl. Pulling her backpack away, she began to pull Sandra by the arms over an easy chair. "NO" Sandra screamed as she tried to escape. Greg also grabbed Sandra's arms instructing her mother to take Sandra's legs. Once her mother anchored Sandra's legs, Greg laid into her with the belt, hitting the soon to be twelve year old in the back. Sandra lost count of the strikes, which finally stopped when a winded Greg said "That's enough".

Both adults released the girl. Crying, Sandra jumped up and ran in her room. Throwing herself on the bed, Sandra cried from pain and rage. A moment later, Sandra's mother appeared, throwing Sandra's backpack on the floor next to the bed. Sandra turned to her mother. "WHY?" the girl screamed. "Greg is going to teach us discipline, something you need lots of", her mother replied.

"YOU'RE INSANE!" Sandra screamed.

Sandra's mother slapped her hard, knocking her across the bed. "Don't EVER talk to me that way" the woman ordered. The wounded girl crawled off the bed. Crying, she picked up her backpack. Opening it, she made her way to the cardboard box that contained her underwear. Scooping two handfuls into the nearly empty backpack, she staggered over to the closet where she pulled two jeans and several shirts off hangars.

"Leaving are you?" the woman taunted, "give me the keys. I don't ever want you to come back. You've ruined my life enough as it is".

With trembling hands, Sandra gave her the trailer keyset.

"Now, get out" the woman ordered.

Frightened and confused, Sandra walked hurriedly through the trailer. Opening the door with tear filled eyes, she broke into a run as she got outside. She ran enough to get out of the trailer park.

She wandered for an hour before settling into a city park. Sitting against a tree, she broke into a cry again. She cried for a while before hearing a familiar voice. She looked up to see Peter, a friend from school. "What's up?" he asked. Through sobs, she told her story. "Come home with me" he offered.

Peter also lived in a trailer park, a distance from her own. Peter lived with  his  father, who quickly said yes to Peter's request for Sandra to stay. The man set up a cot for Sandra in the tool room next to his bedroom. Peter's room was on the other side of the trailer.

Right after bedtime, Sandra found out that Peter's father had an agenda. Oscar came into the room and pulled back the blanket. Sandra tried to cover herself, but Oscar pulled the hands away from the thin, 4'11" brunette. Sandra was wearing a T shirt and panties.

Oscar leaned in, "If you're going to live under my roof and eat my food, you're going to have to pay rent" he said tugging her panties down. Sandra tried to resist, but he was too powerful. He forced her legs open. Positioning himself he opened his zipper. Taking out something Sandra had never seen before, he began to force his way into her.

Sandra gasped as the head of his dick entered her. Oscar placed his free hand over her mouth as he continued forcing his way in. Sandra began crying from fear and pain as he pumped her no longer virginal pussy. Suddenly he shook as she felt her pussy fill with hot liquid. A moment later, Oscar pulled himself off of her and left the room. Sandra cried herself to sleep that night.

Oscar's visits were nightly at the same time. Sandra grew used to him, and just laid there as Oscar did his business. Finally, a week later, Sandra saw a chance for salvation. He was leaving for a weekend with his mother and asked if Sandra wanted to tag along. Oscar said no, adding that Sandra had housework to do.

Peter was gone less than a minute when Oscar made his plans clear. "Take your clothes off" he ordered, "I'm going to teach you how to please a man". Sandra did as she was told, undressing in the hallway and throwing her clothes in her room. She joined oscar in his bedroom, where he was undressing.  She climbed up on the bed, lay on her back and spread her legs. Oscar  sat n the bed and told her to sit up. Grabbing her by the head, he pulled her toward his crotch, telling her to open her mouth. He then filled her mouth with dick, showing her how to use her mouth and hand to give head. His orgasm caught her by surprise, most of which spilled out of her mouth as she choked on his cum.

He took a moment to catch his breath, then told her to get on all fours. He entered her from behind. Sandra just responded to his thrusts, but was caught by surprise after he came when he pulled her into him. Pulling her back against his chest, he was quiet for a long moment. Then reaching over, he pulled a rod from the corner. "Open your legs" he ordered. Sandra obeyed. He began striking her hairless pussy with savage strokes of the rod. Sandra screamed and struggled against him as she closed her legs. "Open your legs!" he ordered again as he pulled her long hair with his free hand. Sandra reluctantly opened her legs. He began hitting her pussy again.

After six more strokes, he threw the rod against the wall. He then shifted his grip to her nipples, which he squeezed mercilessly. Sandra screamed and struggled, finally breaking his grip. She jumped from the bed. Oscar lept after her, his left leg landing on a magazine as he grabbed her left arm. Sandra whirled and hit. Oscar, already falling from the slippery magazine under his foot, had his fall accelerated by the fist strike. Oscar struck his head on the nightstand and fell unconcious.

Sandra ran to her room. Ignoring her underwear, she pulled on a T shirt, shorts and shoes. She grabbed her backpack and ran from the trailer.

Sandra ran for a good while before slowing to a walk. She walked for two hours, eventually finding a nice neighborhood. Having left some of her clothes behind, a clothes donation bin drew her interest. Placed alongside a supermarket, she looked around and realized she could get in without anyone seeing her.She climbed in the bin and began looking through clothes. Then, it struck her that the bin could be a good hiding place.

 The bin became her home. For the first several days, she found that she could walk in the supermarket and live off of fruit that she stole. Eventually, a store employee began watching her. Sandra walked out and later that day found that she could beg for change in front of a convenience store.

It was there that things took an odd turn. An old man in a cadillac pulled up to her. Motioning her over, he showed her his dick. He offered her ten bucks for a blowjob. "Show me the money" she said. He pulled out a ten dollar bill and put it in his shirt pocket. Sandra climbed in his car. He drove into an alley where Sandra gave him a blowjob. When he came, he shuddered and moved only to breathe. Sandra took the ten from his pocket, then spied two rolls of quarters in the floor organizer. She took the rolls and ran from the car.

For the next two weeks, Sandra actually lived well on the thirty bucks. but then her luck ran out. She left her backpack in the bin when she went to the convenience store to beg. Worse, the weather turned cold and everyone ignored her. Returning to the bin, she found it empty, and had a long cold night.

In the morning, she climbed out and just started to walk.

Chapter Two: Tribute for the Hero

Desperation had brought John Osten to the city. He looked up at the bridge that spanned high above the river. He decided the fall would be enogh to kill him. He wondered though, if his body could be identified.

He had decided to end his pitiful life. The middle aged man's troubles had started several years before. A persistent backache made the firefighter seek out a doctor. He quietly began treatment knowing that his back problems were part work related, and part hereditary. He was doing OK, but then his shift Captain found out about the treatment. The Captain pushed John out of his job, citing liability he used buracratic rules to end John's career.

John struck back with a lawsuit, winning enough to live comfortably the rest of his life, if he wasn't extravagant. The single childless man began feeling more and more depressed and alienated. Unable to work, estranged from his family, and increasingly lonely, he began to wonder what his life amounted to. Then, a couple of persistant medical problems started. Both problems could be fixed, but without family he didn't see the point.

He decided on suicide. The matter was the method. If he committed suicide at home, someone would have to clean up the mess. He didn't want to inflict that on someone. Car accidents were too tricky, so he drove to the city and began looking around.

Standing on the riverbank, he knew that it was all in a day's work for the river patrol to pull a body out of the river. Yep, he decided, the bridge would be his final exit. It was just then that his privacy was interrupted.

Chapter Three: A New Life Begun

"Got any change mister?"

John looked down to see a shivering girl in a T shirt and jeans. Her long hair was mussed.

"Are you OK?" he asked.

The girl looked down. "Hungry" she muttered. "Are you on drugs?" he asked. The girl shook her head. "You want food?" he asked. The girl nodded.

He ushered the girl to his car. Placing her on the passenger side, he noticed that she took to the warmed interior. He cranked up the heat in the car, then drove to a McDonald's. Taking the girl inside, he ordered a salad and two Big Mac meals. The girl tore into the salad and her meal, woofing it down. Then he noticed her eyes roll back as she became very sluggish. He lifted the girl out of the booth and took her to the car.

Sitting behind the steering wheel, he tried to decide what to do. A voice in his head told him to take the girl home. He obeyed the voice taking her home and placing her on his couch. For several hours he camped out near the couch, then gave up and went to bed.

When he woke up, he found the girl still sleeping. He looked at the clock on the wall and discovered that she had been out for twelve hours. He went into the kitchen and began cooking eggs and bacon. He saw the girl rise up from the couch.

"Hungry?" he asked. The girl nodded. He cooked breakfast for the girl and himself. The girl woofed down the food and two full glasses of orange juice. After eating, the girl stood up. "What do I owe you?" she asked, pointing at his crotch "Do I suck that, or should I just take my clothes off?"

John looked at her in astonishment. "You don't owe me anything. Are you homeless?" The girl nodded. "What's your name?" "Marie" she lied. "Do you want a shower?" he asked. The girl nodded.He found some clean workout clothes for her before she went in the bathroom and locked the door.

Sandra didn't know what to make of the man. Recent history had taught her not to trust men. After the shower she dried herself and put on the workout clothes. It was baggy on her, but it was nice to put on something clean.

She walked out of the bathroom. Finding the man on the couch, she asked where his wife was. "I don't have one" he answered. "Why not?" He told her about the two relationships that had gone wrong in his life. When he finished, he asked why she was homeless. She swallowed hard, then told him her tale. "And your name isn't Marie, is it?" Sandra shook her head, then told him. "Would you like to stay here a while?" he asked. Sandra nodded.

Chapter Four: Because The Night

Sandra didn't know what to make of the man. Although she caught him peeking at her from time to time, he never made any advances towards her. He took her out to eat often. Sandra went from having her ribs exposed to filling out a little in just a couple of weeks. She had never eaten so well.

He didn't force her to go school, and didn't bring up the subject of school.He did take her to a couple of museums and the zoo. They also went to the theater often. Sandra began thinking she could trust John. It was after one important trip that she decided to take a leap of faith.

That morning, after they woke up, he asked her if she wanted to see his hobby. She agreed. First, he drove her to a specialty store where she was fitted for a khaki jumpsuit her size. He also bought her a leather jacket. Then he drove her to a small airport. Pulling up next to a hangar, he got out and opened a large door. Pulling off a large tarp, he exposed an old plane.

"What is this?" she asked.

"An SBD Dauntless, an old warplane. We're going up today".

Sandra trembled with excitement for an hour while he checked the plane and had it gassed up. Finally, they took to the air. Sandra had never been in a plane. She found takeoff and landing exciting and scary. After the flight, she hugged John and thanked him for the trip.

That night, at bedtime, in T shirt and shorts over her underwear, she appeared at his bedside. "What's up?" he asked. "Every night, I sleep on the couch" she started. He cut her off with "That was your decision, remember?" "Yeah", she replied, "but tonight, I want to sleep in a bed".

He moved over and motioned to the bed. She slowly climbed in. Looking him in the eye she warned him, "no touching, and stay on your side of the bed". He responded by rolling over and going to sleep.

The next night it happened. John and Sandra left out early catching dinner in a restaurant before going to a concert hall. Sandra noticed that most of the people there were John's age. She didn't look forward to hearing old people's music, but her attention was riveted the second the music started.

The band was four guys, and a tall girl in black clothes who played guitar and did most of the singing. From her front row seat, Sandra sat until half an hour into the concert when the beat finally got to her. Standing up, she began swaying and moving to the music. The girl singer moved out to Sandra and had her play the guitar by using a pick on the strings. An ear to ear smile crossed Sandra's face and she became a convert to the music.

The final song of the night struck Sandra in a way she never expected. The melody was haunting, but the words struck her between the eyes. She felt her heart swell to twice normal size and tears flowed from her eyes. After the song, the singer went out to Sandra giving her a rose that had been tossed onstage. Sandra was so overcome with emotion, that John had to carry her out to the car.

"Are you OK?" he asked when they got to the car. Sandra nodded, then snuggled next to John. He put his arm around her as they drove home. When they got home, Sandra got out on his side of the car and held his hand all the way into the house. "What's come over you?"

Sandra smiled, blushed, and pulled him all the way to the bedroom. She sat him on the bed, then gave him a long kiss. "Thank you for the most wonderful night of my life" she said, adding another long kiss. Moving the kisses along his chin to his ear she began to sing

"Because the night is made for lovers, Because the night is made for love, Because the night is made for lovers, Because the night is made for us".

She began kissing him in earnest, pushing him back on the bed. They caressed each other. She pulled her shirt off. He rolled her over. He moved his kisses down her neck  to her nipples. As his tongue went around her right nipple, she felt a tingle she had never felt. She began working her pants and panties off. John helped her undress, then moved between her legs, kissing, then licking her hairless pussy.

Sandra gasped, shoving her pussy against him. She felt a funny feeling in her stomach. Then, a shudder went through her body. She let out a wail. She was burning between her legs and wanted his dick in her.

"Put it in me, put it in me, please" she whispered.

He positioned himself and placed his dick next to her pussy. He had never fucked anything that small.

"You have to help me" he said.

She reached down, guiding his dick in. He pushed the head of his dick in. She   gasped, then moaned. He pushed in, her tiny hole gripping his dick. He got five of his six inches in her when he found the depth of her pussy. He began using small strokes. She pushed against him, meeting his strokes. She  caressed his arms. They shared a long kiss, which she broke when her second orgasm hit. He felt his own cum rising up, which filled her hole.

He collapsed next to her. She rolled over on top of him, smothering him with kisses. "Can you do it again?" she whispered.

"We have all night, and the rest of our lives"

She smiled and kissed him. "Yes we do".

The day mum got fucked twice

WPD on Incest Stories

It was a hot summer day me and my friend had been home from school for a week now, my friend Danny was staying over and mum was at work. We had spent most the day just hanging around the house looking at porn from time to time, nothing unusual for 2 teenagers. It was getting late in the day and I had just left Danny looking at porn to go toilet. I herd mum come in from work and she headed for her room to get out of her work clothes. I didn’t think anything about the fact that Danny was looking at porn in my room.

 

Read More
n style="mso-tab-count: 1">            Mom is a 42 year old not very tall about 5ft 3 she is quite a big lady but also has the breasts to go with it. I have never seen mum nude not to my memory. She has blue eyes and light brown hair that has started to go grey. Dad works away every week but comes home on weekend. So he isn’t around much at all anyway,

            I finished in the toilet and headed back upstairs when I herd a bit of noise coming from my room. It was Danny moaning I thought that gits having a wank in my room. So as I got to my door there he was sat in my chair with his back to me I stud there for a bit then thought where’s my mum so I went in her room she wasn’t there but her work cloths where on her bed. So I went back to my room and I herd Danny say “ohh yeah I’m cumming” and he maid a loud groaning noise. Then I herd another voice saying “My turn” and out of no where my mum stands up wearing her bathrobe open to show her breasts.

I duct behind the door frame so not to bee seen then mum heads for my bed lays down and opens her legs. Danny is straight off my desk chair with his limp dick hanging out walking over and lands his face straight into my mums pussy. She maid a yelp in excitement and Danny got busy licking like crazy at her pussy which I could see was very wet. Mum was moaning and feeling her breasts while Danny was licking her. I had the biggest hard-on ever aching in my pants. So I took advantage of the situation and started to have a wank while I watched the show. Danny was hard again himself with his mouth on her pussy one hand groping her left breast and the other wanking himself off. He got up from between mums legs and jumped on top of her. He looked her right in the eyes and said “I want to fuck that pussy” so she pushes him off and gets on all fours Danny gets right back there and shoves his dick hard inside her. She moans out in pleasure “yeah baby fuck mommy hard, I need this young cock so badly” hearing mum say these things turned me on so bad. I walked into the room with my dick sticking out in front walked up behind Danny while he was fucking my mum, and tapped him on the shoulder he looked at me saw my dick and moved to one side. I quickly got in his place and started to fuck my mum with as much force as I could give burying myself inside her. So in a really deep voice I said “how do you like that mum?” she turned her head to look back and was shocked to see her son pounding away at her pussy. “oh baby I didn’t know, Ohhhh keep fucking me, don’t stop” she looked at Danny behind me wanking watching us and told him to lay in front of her, she put her mouth straight onto his dick and started sucking his eyes rolled back into his head and I was feeling amazing with all the wet warm pussy that was grabbing my cock. I felt mum’s pussy tighten around me and she moaned into Danny’s blowjob. Then a rush of pussy juice squirted out of her pussy onto my pubic hairs. I couldn’t take it anymore and I shot one of the biggest loads of cum I have ever shot into her pussy. She felt me cumming and started to push back onto my cock the feeling was mind blowing. After I had finished I took my dick out all soaked with cum and kneeled down to see the mess I had made. At that same time Danny was cumming and mum took his dick out and started wanking him off really fast the cum was shooting all over her face. After he had finished mum was starting to stand up when her pussy full of cum landed right in my face covering me completely she stood up quick and told me she was sorry, picked me up and started to kiss me with lots of tongue action which lead to her licking all the cum off my face. She said thank you to the both of us and walked of down stairs to take a shower. Me and Danny where left dazed and fell to sleep real easy that night.

 

            The next morning I woke and couldn’t see Danny then I herd the moaning sound again. He had got up and gone to fuck my mum in her bed in the morning. I got up and looked round the door, mum was there riding him I went up behind mum and kissed her on the neck put my hands round her front and played with her breasts. She leaned her head back and kept on riding Danny. Then Danny emptied inside my mum she bent down kissed him and looked at me and said “do you want to finish off baby” so I laid down where Danny was and mum straddled me, I felt all the cum squeeze out , she moaned on the first entry and started riding me quite fast. Danny went behind mum and started playing with her ass mum put all her waight on me and was kissing me really deeply as she rode me. Then I saw mums eyes open really wide, Danny had put one of her dildos in her ass. I looked at her and smiled and she melted onto my chest I started to pump really hard and Danny worked the dildo faster and faster she started screaming and I felt her cum all over again like last night and just like last night I erupted following her orgasm.

We laid there for a while me inside her, she laying on me and Danny still working the dildo In her ass for a while longer.

 

After that day me and mum didn’t miss a night without getting together in some way.

Danny stayed over a lot more and some other friends found out about what happened and I have found mum being fucked my 2 guys from my school at the same time as I have come home from football games. Mum has turned into the local slut really but I know I will always be No 1.

My Sexy Little Girls

Drakkar on Incest Stories

                    Daddy's Naughty Daughters
                         by Kain Starbow


                            Chapter 1


Crissy Adams squirmed in bed and sighed. She opened her eyes and
squinted against the morning sun shining in through the curtains of her
bedroom window.

"Oooooh," she murmured softly, gliding her hands under the sheet. A hot
shiver swept over her hot virgin body as her hands settled on her small
plump tits.

Her nipples hardened and a tremor in her pussy made her hips jerk.
Eage

Read More
r and hot, she kicked off the sheet and pulled her pink baby-doll
nightie from her lithe virgin body.

Shaking, she caressed her bare tits, her breathing shallow, raspy. Her
smooth silky flesh felt as if it were on fire.

"Oh, damn," she muttered, writhing on her back. Her glassy blue eyes
stared down at her tits and massaging fingers. It was almost as if she
were watching someone else fondle her creamy tit mounds. She squeezed
them and moaned, her thighs clapping tightly together, the squishy
cream of her pussy soaking the crotch of her panties.

With one hand still caressing and massaging her plump tits, Crissy
moved her other hand to her pink bikini bottoms. Teasing herself, she
slipped her hand into her panties and played with the soft silky hair
of her blonde-thatched virgin pussy. Her breath caught in her throat
and she spread her legs.

"Mmmm," she purred, dipping one finger through the wet slippery gash of
her cunt. "Oooooh!" Her hips jerked up as the tip of her finger glided
over her blood-filled sensitive clit. "Unnnn!"

Trembling, she stroked her pussy, the tip of her tongue flicking over
her Parted lips to keep them moist as she gasped air into her lungs.
Warm pussy-cream drenched her urgent fingers and the sweet scent of her
turned-on pussy drifted up to make her head spin.

Panting, she tore off her panties, exposing her bare pussy. She closed
her eyes, pretending her father was at the foot of the bed watching
her. "Ooooh, Daddy. Look at me." It was a hoarse whisper of
desperation.

She spread her legs wide, parted the satiny folds of her cunt and
rolled her hips. The red glistening slit of her virgin fuckhole was
completely displayed. "I'm so wet, Daddy," she whispered. She pinched
her clit and shuddered as tiny spasms rippled through her writhing
body.

Whimpering, Crissy rolled over onto her belly. She pressed her tits
against the mattress, her nipples pleasurably sore as she rubbed them
against the sheet. "Un ... un ... un."

Keeping her legs spread, Crissy reached around, and she parted the
cheeks of her firm heart-shaped ass. "Look, Daddy," she moaned, her
words muffled against a pillow. She exposed her wrinkled pinkish-brown
asshole and squirmed.

"I'm so hot!" she gasped, writhing on her belly. She brought her hands
under her body, raking her nails over her clit. Spasms caromed through
her virgin fuckhole and warm sticky pussy-cream oozed out over her
frantic fingers.

Dizzy with lust, Crissy rolled out of bed, staggering on wobbly legs to
the closet door. From dilated blue eyes, she stared hotly at her slim
naked body. She pouted, wishing her tits were bigger, her hips more
round, and the silky blonde hair around her pussy were thicker. "Damn,"
she moaned, rubbing her body. She pushed her tits together, making them
appear larger.

"Unnnn." The heat in her pussy spread, exciting her in its sizzling
warmth.

Quivering and panting, she staggered back to the bed, not wanting to
look at her slim body, knowing her father wouldn't be interested in
her. He would want a woman, she knew, and she was only a little girl.

Sprawled out on her back, she played with her wet seeping pussy. Her
body quaked as her fingers groped and massaged her hard pulsing clit.
"Oh ... oh ... oh," she panted, her innocent face flushed with
excitement.

With her small plump tits jiggling, Crissy worked the juices of her
virgin pussy into a frothy lather. Cream soaked her fingers and oozed
down her cunt crack, staining the sheets. She gulped in air, her hips
jerking. "Oooh, I'm so hot."

Her writhing body began to twitch sporadically. The insides of her cunt
pulsed and oozed creamy juices into the empty channel of her virgin
fuckhole.

With her legs slapping frantically up and down, Crissy raced wildly
toward her climax. She clawed her clit with one hand, scratched the
fingers of her other hand through her red sensitive pussy. Her nipples
swelled, jiggling on the peaks of her creamy tits. She humped up,
trembled, her orgasm a breath away.

"Oh, shit!" she gasped, her blue eyes widening. "Ooooh, I'm gonna ...
cum!"

Gulping back her pounding heart, Crissy's fingers devastated her clit
and the opening of her virgin pussy. "I'm cumming," she moaned, trying
to keep her voice down. The last thing she wanted to do was wake her
sister in the other room. "Ooooh ... I'm ... cumming."

Hot spasmodic orgasms swept over Crissy's writhing twisting body. The
muscles inside her wet overheated cunt pulsed, gripping an imaginary
cock. "I'm cumming ... unnnn."

She bucked up from the bed, hot pussycream gushing from her climaxing
cunt. The frothy white cum flowed over her fingers, down her pussy
crack, and widened the dark stain on the sheet. "Ooooh, Daddy. I want
you!"

She thrashed on her back, her head snapping from side to side, her
blonde hair slashing across her face. She strained her neck and arched
her back as another orgasm tore through her pussy like a hot poker.
Tits flopping, hips jerking, she twisted and writhed on the bed, her
little body in the throes of another even more intense orgasm.

Clawing her clit and pussy, she jerked up and flipped over onto her
belly. "Unnnnn," she moaned, her cries lost in the pillow. She slammed
her hips forward, mangling her clit between her fingers. The sweet
tender meat of her asscheeks jiggled, the flesh stained with pussy-cum.

"Oh ... oh ... ahhhh!" She ground her climaxing body over the mattress,
crushing her tits beneath her. Legs flopping, clit mashed against her
fingers, she jerked up, crashed down, her screams lost in the pillow.

Gasping and drooling, Crissy humped her fingers, her ass jerking and
twisting wildly. Hot orgasms washed over her trembling body and she
rocked frantically, the bed squeaking beneath her.

"Ahhhh!" Her young body stiffened, quivered, then relaxed as she seemed
to melt into the bed. Panting, she lay there, tingling sensations
seeping over her as the intensity of her orgasms left her weak, yet
unsatisfied.

                             Chapter 2


Tammy, Crissy's older sister, stood in the doorway separating their two
rooms. She was wearing only a pair of panties. Her tits, larger and
fuller than Crissy's, were tingling. She swallowed the lump in her
throat and giggled.

Crissy lifted her head, her face filling with shock as she stared at
her sister. Quickly, she rolled over, a sheepish grin on her face. "How
long have you been standing there?"

"Long enough to watch you cream all over the fuckin' bed," she said,
coming into Crissy's room. "Damn ... I heard the bed squeaking from my
room."

"You gonna tell Daddy?" Crissy asked, a tinge of fear and excitement
skipping through her young body.

"Why should I tell Daddy?" Tammy said. She plopped on the bed, her
large tits bouncing erotically.

Crissy leered jealously at her sister's plump creamy tits. She began to
tingle all over. She also became aware of her own naked body and her
sister's leering looks.

"Is your pussy all wet?" Tammy asked, her voice husky, her bright green
eyes glassy and dilated.

"My pussy's always wet," Crissy giggled. She spread her legs. "See for
yourself."

Tammy gasped as she leered hungrily at her sister's virgin pussy.

"How 'bout you?" Crissy asked boldly. "Is your pussy always wet?"

Tammy sighed and peeled off her panties. "I wake up the same way every
morning ... hot and wet."

Crissy sat up, her small firm tits jiggling. She licked her lips,
enjoying the sight of her sister's curly red cunt hair. "You still a
virgin?"

Tammy pouted. "I think I'll always be a virgin," she said. "I know you
are."

Crissy stroked her fingers through her own wet steamy cunt slit,
coating her fingers with pussy-cream. "All I think about is getting
fucked," she admitted.

"Maybe if we make it together, we can have some fun."

Crissy sighed as a trickling spasm rippled through her pussy. "I'll
pretend I'm a boy."

Tammy crawled up beside her sister and wrapped her arms around her.
"God, this is going to be fun."

Crissy melted into her sister's arms. "You ever do this before?" she
whispered.

"Never," Tammy said. She rubbed her body against Crissy's. "I'm
creaming."

"Me, too!" Crissy gasped. She pressed her lips to her sister's mouth,
her tongue flicking out into Tammy's open mouth.

Tammy gulped, sucking on her sister's tongue. She squirmed, forcing her
thigh between Crissy's legs. Warm pussy-cream coated her skin.

"Unnnn," Crissy purred. She jerked her hips, gliding her cunt along her
sister's smooth silky thigh. Her mouth came away from Tammy's lips.
"Ooooh, Tammy. This is great."

"It's gonna get better, too!" Tammy gasped. "Christ, you're really
creaming my leg."

"Unnn, I know," Crissy moaned, the inside of her pussy bubbling with
warm sticky cunt cream. She shoved her thigh between Tammy's legs,
pressed it up against her cunt. "Ooooh, you're creaming, too."

They clung to each other, their tits, sensitive and ripe, mashed
against each other's. Their hips jerked and their cunts pulsed, oozing
hot buttery cream. Their mouths locked and their tongues explored, the
spit in their mouths drenching their faces.

Crissy pulled away from her sister. Panting, her blue eyes glowing, she
leered at Tammy's lush body sprawled out on the bed. "I'm tired of
kissing. I wanna do more."

Tammy caught her breath. "If you had a cock, you could break my
cherry."

Crissy brought her mouth to her sister's plump ripe tits. She flashed
her tongue over one swollen nipple. "I don't have a prick, so my mouth
will have to do."

"Ahhhh!" Tammy gasped. She squirmed, waiting for Crissy to devour her
tits. "Suck 'em, Crissy. Suck 'em and bite them like a boy would do."

"I will," Crissy whispered. "I'm gonna suck every part of your body,
then you can do the same to me."

"Yes," Tammy moaned. She spread her legs and reached for Crissy's small
cherry-capped tits. She squeezed, making her younger sister moan. "Make
me crazy."

Crissy's head was spinning. She got comfortable on the bed, fondled her
older sister's tits, and her blue eyes fixed hungrily on the girl's
swollen pink nipples. In the next instant, she brought her mouth to one
jiggling tit and sucked.

"Ahhhh!" Tammy panted. "Bite! Bite!"

Crissy lost her mind. Gobbling on her sister's tits had her crazy. She
feasted on Tammy's cherry-red nipples, making the tips hard. She
slobbered her spit over the girl's soft creamy skin, her tongue working
over every warm inch of her sister's huge tits.

Tammy writhed on her back. Her red-fringed pussy was creaming, soaking
her ass-crack and thighs as she squeezed her legs together. "Ooooh,
bite me, Crissy. Bite my fuckin' tits."

Crissy, her face smeared with drool, used her teeth. She nipped at her
sister's nipples, biting and sucking her white silky skin, turning it
red. In seconds she had Tammy wailing in ecstasy.

"Ooooh, Crissy! Crissy!" Tammy forgot about mauling Crissy's tits. She
dropped her hands to claw the sheet. The inside of her pussy pulsed
each time Crissy took a deep suck on her tits. "I'm creaming ...
unnnn!"

Crissy lifted her head and saw what she had done to her sister's tits.
Panting noisily, she climbed over Tammy's body, straddling one of
Tammy's long outstretched legs. She ground her cunt against Tammy's
knee and whimpered. "I'm so hot, Tammy!"

"Me, too," Tammy moaned, leering hotly at her sister.

Crissy's hips were jerking. Her small tits jiggled, her nipples feeling
as if they were going to burst. "I'm creaming ... Christ, Tammy. I'm
creaming your fuckin' knee."

"I feel it!" Tammy gasped. She jerked up her knee, smashing it against
Crissy's cunt, and watched her younger sister's face twist into a mask
of lust.

"Aghhh!" Crissy wailed, almost toppling off her sister's knee. "Jesus,
Tammy. I'm so fuckin' hot!"

"My pussy, Crissy. Eat my pussy." Tammy was shaking, the inside of her
virgin cunt on fire. "Eat my pussy. Make me cum!"

Drunk with desire, Crissy stared down between Tammy's parted legs,
gazing greedily at the red gash of her cunt. "Then you eat me ...
right?" The words came from her mouth in gasping pants.

"Yes ... yes," Tammy moaned. "Oh, God, get the hell off my leg and eat
my pussy. "

Douglas Adams, having heard noises coming from his daughter's bedroom,
had climbed the stairs. Curious, he peeked into Crissy's bedroom. A hot
jolt of passion churned his gut. He gulped and leered at his two naked
daughters. Instantly, he had a hard-on, a hard-on that ached painfully.
He stared, his gaze traveling over Crissy's lithe body as she climbed
off Tammy's knee.

"Shit," Crissy moaned. "I'm shaking all over."

"Eat me," Tammy begged. "Christ. Make me cum." She rubbed her own
swollen tits.

Crissy enjoyed the power she held over her older sister. "I'll eat your
pussy," she said.

She dragged a finger up through Tammy's wet seeping cunt. "When I'm
ready."

Hot spasms caromed through Tammy's twisting body. "You little bitch,"
she moaned. "Eat my cunt and stop teasing."

Crissy had no intention of stopping her erotic game. She pinched
Tammy's clit, making her sister writhe and scream. "You better stop
howling, or Daddy will hear you."

"You bitch!" Tammy gasped.

"I'm a bitch," Crissy tormented. "I'm the bitch who's gonna suck your
cunt and make you cream. You better be nice to me."

"I will," Tammy promised. "I'll do anything you want."

Crissy massaged her sister's cunt, pinching the girl's hard throbbing
clit and running her finger up and down her sopping cunt slit. "Will
you eat my asshole out with your tongue and suck it?"

"Yes," Tammy moaned. "Anything! Anything!"

Crissy twisted Tammy's clit with her fingers, then dropped onto her
belly. She licked the juice-stained flesh of Tammy's inner thighs, her
head spinning, her own cunt dripping. She sucked and chewed on Tammy's
thighs, her mouth getting closer and closer to her sister's overheated
cunt.

Tammy writhed on her back, her tits flopping, her nails clawing the
sheet. She humped up, whimpering under her sister's mouth. "My pussy,"
she pleaded. "Eat me!"

For a second, Crissy stared at her sister's pussy. It was red, the
velvety folds swollen, glistening with a filmy cream that oozed from
the inside of her cunt. She swallowed hard, her blue eyes glazed with
lust.

"Eat me," Tammy howled. She humped up, her ass coming off the bed. She
twisted her hips, moaning, anxious for her sister's tongue to put out
the raging fire in her steamy pussy. "Eat me!"

Crissy scooted her hands under Tammy's jiggling ass, digging her nails
into the soft flesh. She fused her mouth to Tammy's pussy and sucked.

"Aghhhh!" Tammy wailed, her body trembling wildly. "Ooooh, Crissy!
Crissy!"

Warm pussy-cream flowed over Crissy's face. She sucked, drawing sticky
cream into her mouth. The taste of her sister's pussy made her dizzy
and her cunt contracted sporadically, pulsing, gripping an imaginary
cock.

"Suck," Tammy moaned. "Ooooh, suck me, Crissy!" She thrashed on the
bed, her pussy flowing, her cunt feeling as if it was being sucked from
her body. "Oooh, Crissy!"

                               * * * * *

Douglas watched, not believing what his eyes were witnessing. His
children, both babies in his eyes, were acting and carrying on like two
oversexed whores. It blew his mind. He rubbed his cock through his
pants and pushed the door open another few inches to get a better view.

Crissy wormed her tongue between the velvety folds of her sister's hot
pussy. She lapped hungrily at the flowing juices, swallowing them as
her tongue penetrated the entrance to Tammy's virgin fuckhole. She
raked her sister's ass, making her howl and twist on the bed.

Tammy arched her back, jerked her hips and smashed her cunt into
Crissy's face. "My clit, Crissy! Chew my fuckin' clit!"

Crissy plastered her mouth tightly to her sister's pussy, chewed
sadistically on the loose folds and sucked warm cream into her mouth.
Her fingers scratched the sensitive flesh of her sister's ass as she
sought the crack and the tiny ring of her asshole.

Tammy squirmed, bucking her hips. Her mouth opened as Crissy's fingers
clawed her asshole. "Ooooh, no," she cried. "Don't!"

It was too late. Crissy's finger jabbed viciously into Tammy's asshole.
She twisted it, her sister's cries of anguish turning her on. She
jabbed another finger into her sister's asshole, finger-fucking her
tiny shitter as she gobbled hungrily on Tammy's overflowing pussy.

Tammy's eyes widened. The pain of Crissy's ass-stabbing fingers blended
with the pleasure of Crissy's cunt-sucking mouth. It drove Tammy wild
and she bucked and twisted maniacally on the bed.

Crissy darted her tongue into Tammy's fuckhole, felt the thin skin of
her cherry. Hot cream bathed her tongue as she licked quickly through
her sister's gaping cunt slit. Her own hips jerked, her clit brushing
against the sheet. Spasms rippled through her pussy, spasms that made
her eat her squealing sister at a more frenzied pace.

Tammy lurched up, then slammed down. Her hips rotated in tight quick
circles. "My clit! Make me cum!" She shoved forward, mangled her clit
against Crissy's teeth. "Aghhhh!"

Crissy's face was soaked with sticky cunt cream. She twisted her
fingers inside Tammy's asshole, jabbing them in and out quickly, her
sister's screams and twisting body telling her that she was having a
ball. She sucked hard, ready to give Tammy what she wanted--an orgasm.

"Yessss," Tammy hissed, sensing Crissy was ready to make her cum. "I'm
so close. Bite my clit! Make me cum!" She was delirious, her body
quaking, swirling at the peak, needing only Crissy's teeth to take her
over the edge.

Crissy latched her teeth into Tammy's blood-filled clit. With her
sister's clit a prisoner of her teeth, she lashed her tongue over the
ultra-sensitive tip. Cream gushed from Tammy's cunt.

Tammy wrenched her body, stiffened, then went into wild frantic
convulsions. "I'm cumming! I'm cumming!" she wailed, not caring who
heard her screams of lust. "I'm creaming, Crissy!"

Crissy knew it. Tammy's pussy-cum was drowning her. She held on tightly
to Tammy's clit, her tongue whipping back and forth over the tip. She
sucked, almost tearing Tammy's clit from her twisting body.

"Aghhhh! I'm cumming! I'm cum ... ing!" Tammy went insane. She pounded
the bed with her fists, lifted her legs, grabbed them by the ankles,
stretching them wide as she twisted her hips and ground her cunt into
her sister's mouth.

Crissy buried her face against Tammy's pussy. She chewed on her clit,
sucked it and whipped it with her tongue. Cum flowed into her mouth,
over her face and down her chin. She jabbed hard, stabbing her fingers
in and out of Tammy's shitter as her older sister thrashed and jerked
on the bed, a prisoner of her mouth and ass-ripping fingers.

Tammy arched her back, then dropped her legs. Her neck strained as her
head snapped from side to side. Her hips lurched up, twisted, then
slammed down, driving Crissy's fingers deeper into her asshole.
"Oooooh, Crissy! I can't stop! I can't stop!"

Crissy didn't want her sister to stop. For the first time in her life,
she was really enjoying sex. Even sucking her sister off was better
than playing with herself alone in bed. She ravaged her sister's pussy,
chewing madly on Tammy's throbbing clit, sucking hard and lashing her
tongue.

Tammy ground her ass down onto Crissy's fingers and screamed as
Crissy's nails raked the walls of her tight shitter. She shoved
forward, mashed her clit into Crissy's chewing teeth. "Ooooh! Oooooh!"
She bucked up, grabbed her flopping tits and mauled them with her
hands.

Crissy chewed harder. She jabbed another finger into her sister's
asshole, making Tammy jerk up from the bed. Her free hand came out from
under Tammy's body and she used her nails on Tammy's sizzling flesh,
clawing it wildly, leaving red lines all over her creamy white skin.

Tammy's legs stiffened. A shuddering explosion ripped through her empty
cunt. She fell back on the bed, twitching, whimpering, her clit and
asshole still controlled by her lust-crazed younger sister. "No ...
more! No more," she begged.

Crissy released her sister's clit and sucked one last time, taking a
river of pussy-cum into her mouth. She yanked her fingers from Tammy's
asshole, then lifted her head from between her legs. Cunt-cum coated
her features, dripped from her chin. "Now, it's my turn," she panted.

Douglas watched it all as Tammy ate Crissy's asshole and pussy until
she climaxed. Slowly and quietly, he stepped away from the partially
open door and went back downstairs, his cock aching and his forehead
dotted with sweat.

"I never had so much fun in my life," Crissy moaned. "After breakfast I
wanna come back up here and do everything all over again."

"When Daddy goes out," Tammy said. "Shit, the way we were screaming, it
was a wonder he didn't come up and catch us."

Crissy giggled. "I wonder what he'd do?"

"Beat our asses," Tammy said, climbing out of bed.

Crissy thought about her father whipping her ass. She shivered,
imagining his big hand cracking her bare ass and turning it hot and
red. "Maybe it would be fun."

"You're crazy," Tammy said. "I'm goin' in my room and get dressed for
breakfast. You better get dressed, too."

"I will," Crissy said dreamily. She rolled out of bed, her thoughts on
her father as she dressed.

                              Chapter 3


Crissy lay quietly in bed, the curtains on the window parted, the moon
lighting the room in erotic shadows. Her legs were spread, the sheet
kicked off her slim body.

"Mmmmm," she purred, rubbing her hands over her nightie, squeezing her
tits through the thin sexy material. "Whatta day."

She slipped her hand into her bikini bottoms, stroking her pussy while
thinking of her sister's mouth sucking frantically at her cunt. "Ooooh,
God."

It had been a fantastic day of sex with her sister. They had made it
together in every room in the house after their father had gone out.

Crissy squeezed her thighs together. Warm pussy-cream oozed from her
fuckhole, coating her fingers as she wondered if she should go into
Tammy's room and wake her up. She decided not to. Tomorrow would be
another day and their father would be gone again.

Douglas tiptoed down the hall, and he peeked into Crissy's room. His
gut churned as he watched his youngest teenaged daughter play with
herself. In seconds, his prick was throbbing, aching painfully in the
tight confines of his pants. He found that his breathing was raspy,
shallow. He fought his lust and hunger for his young daughter, but
couldn't tear himself away from the door. He had to watch.

Crissy squirmed on the bed, her hand caressing the velvety folds of her
sizzling pussy. Her eyes widened and she glimpsed the shadow of her
father in the hall. A gasp caught in her throat, and her first thought
was to cover herself up and feign sleep.

Instead, a hot smile spread over her full mouth. This was her chance.
If he was looking, maybe she could turn him on. Her innocent mind never
conceived anything else happening.

"Ooooh," she murmured softly, massaging her small plump tits through
her nightie. "I'm so hot." She spread her legs again and glided one
hand up through her seeping pussy. "Mmmmm."

Douglas almost choked. The palms of his hands were sweaty and his mouth
was dry. He couldn't stand it. All day the image of his two naked
daughters had haunted him, kept his head reeling.

He coughed loud enough for Crissy to hear, waited a few seconds, then
opened the door.

Crissy's breath caught in her throat. She pretended to be surprised and
quickly brought her hand out from her panties. "Is that you, Daddy?"
she whispered.

"Yes, Crissy," Douglas said hoarsely. "Just checking to see if you were
asleep." He started to go, the ache in his groin keeping him from
leaving his daughter's bedroom.

"Sit with me for a minute, Daddy," Crissy sighed. "Please."

Douglas sat on the edge of the bed. His gut was churning as he leered
at his daughter's small tits pressing against the top of her frilly
nightie. He could see the outline of her swollen nipples and the sight
sent a hot jolt of lust through his cum-crammed balls.

Crissy squirmed on her back and stretched. Her nightie slipped up,
baring her soft belly. Her bikini bottoms hugged her slim hips, leaving
an erotic display of creamy virgin flesh displayed for her father's
pleasure.

Douglas stared, his gaze roaming anxiously over Crissy's lithe body. He
stared at her crotch, where only a few minutes ago the child's hand had
been playing. His breath came out as if someone had kicked him in the
stomach.

"I can't sleep, Daddy," she whispered hotly. "I feel all funny inside."
She squirmed, shivering under her father's leering glances.

She wriggled her hips, parted her legs and inched her nightie up
higher, exposing her rib cage. "Will you rub my belly for me? Maybe
it'll help me to relax."

Douglas groaned as he brought his hand to the silky flesh of his
daughter's stomach and began caressing her. Touching her sent a tremor
caroming through his balls, and it took all of his willpower to keep
from ripping her nightie off and raping her virgin body.

"Mmmmm. It feels good, Daddy," she sighed. She rested her hand on his
thigh and felt him stiffen. Hot spasms ripped through her pussy. She
placed her other hand on his as he moved his hand in wider bolder
strokes. "Nnnnn, I like it, Daddy."

As if he were hypnotized, Douglas watched his hand, covered with hers,
skim her sizzling smooth flesh. "Maybe I should let you get some
sleep." His voice was ragged, coated with desire for his virgin child.

"Oh, no, Daddy," she pouted. "Stay with me." She moved her hand slowly
up his thigh, her fingers an inch away from the bulging hard-on in his
pants.

"Rub me 'til I fall asleep." She inched his hand under her nightie,
causing his fingers to almost touch her small sensitive tits. A soft
sigh escaped her lips.

Douglas fought the urge to span the flesh of his daughter's tits. He
choked back a groan and eased his hand out from under her nightie.

"Oooh, Daddy." She licked her lips and sat up, making sure her hand
rubbed over the bulge in his pants. Touching him made her dizzy. "Give
me a kiss goodnight and you can go."

Douglas leaned forward, expecting to give her a peck on the cheek.
Instead, he found her quickly in his arms, her soft urgent lips parted,
then quickly pressed against his own.

Crissy was out of her mind. She had thrown her arms around him, her
lips fused to his. She darted her tongue into his mouth, whimpering as
she rubbed her body against his.

Douglas couldn't fight his desire any longer. He held her, felt her
tremble in his arms. He sucked on her tongue, roamed her squirming body
with his hands, exploring, sampling the silky flesh of her young body.

"Ooooh, Daddy," Crissy gasped, pulling her mouth from his. "Touch me.
Touch me." She threw herself onto her back, pulled off her nightie and
displayed the soft mounds of her small ripe tits.

"Unnnn," Douglas groaned, his jaw clenched, his eyes feasting hungrily
on his daughter's tits.

Crissy was trembling, waiting, praying her father would do what she
wanted. She arched her back, jutting out her tits. "Touch me, Daddy.
Please."

Douglas brought one large hand to his child's tits. The tip of her
nipple burned into the palm of his hand as he spanned her flesh and
began massaging the pliant meat of her tit. "Crissy," he moaned. "We
shouldn't."

"Ooooh, Daddy," she pouted, writhing on her back. "I like it. Don't
stop."

Douglas couldn't stop. He no longer wanted to. He massaged both her
tits, his prick straining in his pants to be free. "Sweet Crissy," he
moaned huskily.

"Ummmm, Daddy." Her cunt was on fire. She rocked her hips gently,
wallowing in the pleasure of her father's massaging hands. "You're
making me so hot."

She brought her hands to his and made him squeeze her tits with more
urgency. "Are you hot, too, Daddy?" she purred.

"Yes, Crissy." He kneaded her small tits, his eyes devouring her body.

"Take off my panties," she cooed. "Touch my pussy."

Douglas' head was reeling. He squirmed on the bed, brought his hands
down to her wriggling hips and eased her panties down until the silky
blonde hair of her virgin cunt came into view. He choked, his prick
ready to burst in his pants. "Sweet Crissy."

Crissy was breathing hard. She lifted her ass and sighed as her father
whisked off her panties. Quickly, she spread her legs. "Touch my pussy,
Daddy. I'm all wet."

Douglas brought his hand to Crissy's cunt, cupped her moist pussy-mound
as she squirmed against his hand. Warm sticky cream soaked his palm.

"Unnnnn, Daddy." She lay completely naked, legs spread, tits jiggling,
hips rolling as her father fondled and caressed her virgin cunt. "Ooooh
... oooh ... aaaah!"

Douglas kneaded her tits and stroked her cunt. The sweet scent of her
pussy invaded his head, making him dizzy. "Baby," he rasped. "Sweet
innocent baby."

Crissy brought her hand to her father's bulging crotch. She rubbed it,
squeezed, then shuddered as his cock throbbed violently through his
pants. "Let me see your cock, Daddy," she whispered hotly. "I've never
seen a cock before."

Douglas was about to lose his mind. Hearing his daughter talk this way
drove him crazy. "You take it out, Crissy," he groaned.

"Mmmmm, Daddy." Reluctantly, she squirmed away from his hands. "Lay
back on the bed and I'll take off your pants."

Douglas dropped to the bed and stared at his naked daughter. He was
tense, a raging fire in his balls spreading through his body. He
gulped, leered, his gaze fixed on her tits as she quickly undid his
belt and pulled down his zipper.

Crissy was quivering. Without speaking, she pulled her father's pants
down. She sucked in her breath, her eyes widening as his cock seemed to
leap up and stab the air. A soft gasp escaped her parted lips.

Eagerly, she shoved his pants and shorts down around his ankles and
gazed hotly at his towering prick. "It's so big, Daddy," she sighed
breathlessly. "So big!"

"Hold it, Crissy," Douglas groaned. He swallowed, moistening his mouth
as his prick throbbed like a toothache. "Touch it like I touched you."

"Oooh, I will," she panted. "I wanna do everything with it." She licked
her lips and brought her small trembling hands to her father's cock.
Her fingers closed around his prick shaft. His cock twitched and
throbbed.

Searing flashes shot up her arm. It felt hot in her hand, making her
swoon.

"Ahhhh," Douglas moaned, his hips jerking under his daughter's stroking
fingers.

Crissy saw a white drop of jizz seep from his piss-slit. "Is that your
cum, Daddy?" she asked innocently.

"Yeah, baby," he groaned. He was no longer thinking of her as his
daughter. He was too hot. "My balls are filled with cum."

"Mmmm," Crissy sighed. She hefted his huge swollen ball-sac in her
hand. "God, they're heavy." She squeezed them gently, enjoying the
sound of her father's groans.

"Nnnn, baby," he rasped. The drop of cum became larger as more jizz
seeped from his piss-slit. He jerked up, driving his prick through her
fingers. His balls rumbled, swelling even larger as Crissy stroked his
cockshaft and fondled his balls.

"Can I lick your cock, Daddy?"

Douglas twisted on his back. His daughter's soft innocent voice rang in
his head. "Yeah, baby. Kiss it. Do anything you want to it."

Crissy was creaming. She brought her mouth to his bloated cockhead,
swiped her tongue over his pisser, scooping the thick white glob of cum
into her mouth. "Mmmm, it's delicious."

The touch of her tongue on his cock was like fire. He jammed up and
more cum seeped out. "Lick it, Crissy."

Crissy licked his cockhead again, savoring the taste of his cum. It was
like a whole new world, a hundred times better than what she had done
with her sister.

She wanted to gobble on his prick forever. She slapped out her tongue,
swirling it over his cockhead, soaking it with her spit. More cum
seeped out and she smeared the sticky ooze over her lips. Tremors swept
through her pussy and her entire body was quaking with lust.

"More, Crissy," Douglas groaned. "Lick it all over."

Crissy squirmed on the bed, the light from the window giving her a good
view of his long thick cock. "Ooooh, Daddy. It's beautiful." She
brought her mouth to it, kissed his cockshaft and enjoyed her father's
groans of pleasure.

"Don't talk, baby. Lick it."

Crissy parted her lips, then clamped them over his hard throbbing
cockshaft. She glided her lips up and down his long piece of hot
cockmeat, drenching it in spit. Her tongue flicked out, caressing his
cockshaft as her head moved up and down.

"Yeah, baby," Douglas rasped. "Lick it. Suck it!"

"Yes, Daddy," Crissy panted. She slobbered spit all over his fat prick
shaft, slapped her tongue over his balls and coated them with her
drool. The rough texture of his ball-sac excited her and she whimpered,
knowing that his balls were stuffed with the tangy tasting cum.

Douglas jerked up from the bed. "Your mouth, baby. Put it in your
mouth."

Breathing hard, Crissy slurped her way up from his balls and over his
prick shaft. She reached his bloated cockhead and opened her mouth. In
a flash, she swallowed his cockhead into her mouth.

"Unnn, Crissy." He squirmed on his back, forcing himself not to lunge
up and rip into his daughter's tight throat with his prick. His gut
churned as the heat of her eager mouth invaded his cockshaft,
tantalized his swollen balls. "Crissy! Baby!"

Crissy inched his prick into her mouth, his cockhead grazing along the
roof of her mouth. She wiggled her tongue and heard her father gasp.
Turning him on and giving him pleasure made her feel like a woman.

"Try to get it all in your mouth, baby," Douglas pleaded. "Take it slow
and easy."

Crissy wanted to please her father more than anything else in the
world. She gripped his cockshaft at the base and sucked. She eased the
head of his prick into her throat, choking back a gag as she breathed
hard through her nose.

"Yeah, baby." He jerked his hips, the head of his prick penetrating her
throat. "Relax, baby. Relax."

Crissy listened. She wanted every inch of his prick in her mouth.
Gulping, she shoved her face forward. His cockhead speared her throat,
throbbing. Eyes bulging, she forced more of his prick into her throat
until her wet clinging lips touched her fingers.

Douglas' balls felt as if they would burst. He jabbed up, smashing her
lips into her fingers. "Baby! Suck! Suck!"

Greedily, Crissy sucked on his cock. It was stretching her throat,
making her hungry for every inch. She pulled her hand away and slammed
her head forward, taking his cock to the root. Gurgling, she mashed her
lips against his groin, his prick completely buried.

"Yeah," Douglas groaned. He stared down at his daughter. He jabbed up,
his cock skewering her mouth. He felt her teeth and tongue on his
prick. His face twisted in agony. His balls rumbled, ready to explode.
He fought his lust for the moment. There was plenty of time to cum.

Crissy loved what she was doing. It was better than eating Tammy's
pussy. She dragged her teeth along his cock as she came up for air.
When her teeth banged against the ridge of his bell-shaped cockhead,
she stopped. She took one hard deep suck, then popped her mouth off.
"Did I do good, Daddy?"

"Jesus, baby. You're a natural. You took it all on your first try."

"I loved it, Daddy. You taste so good." She licked her lips.

Not having his daughter's hot wet mouth on his prick was driving him
crazy. "Don't stop, Crissy. Suck me some more."

"Can I suck it until you cum?" she asked innocently.

He nodded, his spit-soaked cock stabbing the air. "Until you've sucked
out every drop."

"Ooooh, Daddy. Thinking about it makes me all mushy inside my pussy."
She dropped her head, her long blonde hair spraying out over her
father's groin.

"Don't stop until I tell you," he moaned, not wanting her to screw him
up. "You're gonna get an awful lot of cum in your mouth."

Her father's cum was exactly what Crissy wanted and she had no
intention of stopping until she drained his balls.

With her mouth filled with his cock, Douglas jerked up, fucking her
eager mouth with short punching stabs. He groaned as her teeth scraped
along his cockshaft, twisted as her quick tongue whipped over the
sensitive underside of his prick, and lunged up each time Crissy took a
deep hungry suck on his cockhead.

With her arms stiff, her palms flat against the mattress, Crissy held
her head steady, allowing her father to fuck her face. It had her
crazy. Gurgling noises came from her mouth, blending with her father's
groans.

She lashed her tongue over his cockshaft each time he jammed his cock
up into her mouth. When he jerked back, she sucked deep, making him
twist his hips and groan. She used her teeth, gnawing frantically each
time he fucked his cock into her face. Spit dribbled from her lips,
oozed down his throbbing prick shaft, soaked the thick hair that
surrounded his cock, and trickled down his balls.

Douglas' ass lurched up from the bed, his long thick cock stabbing into
her throat. "Baby," he growled hoarsely. "Ooooh, sweet baby!"

Crissy felt his prick swell in her mouth and sensed by his quickening
pace that he was getting ready to cum. The idea swam in her head and
made the inside of her cunt pulse jealously for her father's cock. She
took a deep suck, then whipped her tongue over his prick as he jabbed
it into her throat.

"I'm there, Crissy! Don't take your mouth away," Douglas was in a
frenzy. He lunged up, driving his prick in and out of her greedy mouth.
His balls rumbled, swelled, ready to explode. He balled his fists, his
body settling into a fast rhythmic pace. "I'm ready, Crissy! Jesus
Christ!"

Her father's lust excited the young virgin. She sucked deeper, chewed
harder, wanting him to cream her face as quickly as possible. One deep
suck had her father's growling voice filling the room, and in the back
of her lust-sopped brain, she wondered if Tammy had awakened and was
watching.

"I'm cumming, Crissy," Douglas roared, not caring if his other daughter
heard or not. "I'm cumming!"

Crissy choked as the first thick stringy wad of her father's cum
spurted into her mouth. She swallowed, gulping at his spewing cock.
More cum shot from his piss-slit, filled her cheeks and oozed down her
throat. She tried swallowing it as fast as it spurted from his
cockhead.

"Keep suckin'," Douglas bellowed. "Don't stop! Suck! Suck!" He was out
of his skull. His balls burst again and his prick jabbed her hot
sucking mouth.

Crissy began bobbing her head, giving her father more fantastic
pleasure as he fucked her throat with his climaxing cock. She slammed
her head down and met his upward lunge, her lips smashing into his
groin. A hot squirting wad of cum shot down her throat.

"Keep suckin'," Douglas growled, his hips drilling his prick up into
her gobbling mouth.

"Chew it! Suck!"

Crissy went insane. What she was doing to her father sent her soaring
into bliss. She sucked, chewed and beat his prick with her tongue. Cum
flooded her mouth, choked her, squirted down her gullet. It gushed from
her nose and mouth, drenched his groin, and drooled down his almost
empty balls.

Douglas arched his back and slammed up into his daughter's face. A jet
stream of cum gushed from his pisser, spurting down her throat.
"Aghhhh!" He dropped back to the bed, twisting as Crissy took the
attack to him.

Crissy slammed her face down, spearing her throat with her father's
squirting cock. She dragged her head back and gnawed at his cockshaft.
She sucked, bringing the cum up from his balls and into her hungry
mouth.

Hissing through clenched teeth, Douglas ravaged his daughter's mouth.
He fucked her face, ripping into her throat, banging her lips each time
her face whacked into his groin. He stiffened, fell back, his balls
almost drained.

Crissy, out of her mind, continued to devour her father's cock. Her
head moved rapidly up and down his prick shaft, her lips gliding
effortlessly along his slippery prick.

Faster and faster, she bobbed her head, her blonde hair whipping across
his groin.

She gulped, his cock about empty. She sucked, wanting every drop.
Drawing in her cheeks, she sucked the last remaining drops of her
father's cum into her greedy mouth.

"Oooh, baby. Enough." Douglas groaned, jerking his hips, his cock
spent, his balls empty. "No more, baby!"

Crissy pulled her mouth off her father's cock and gazed up at him from
glazed blue eyes. "Let me lick you clean," she panted. "I don't want to
waste any of it. It's so delicious."

Douglas let out a groan. "Sure, baby. Just don't suck my cock. It's
sore from your mouth." His muscles relaxed and he leered down at his
naked daughter.

Crissy giggled and licked her lips. White globs of cum stuck in his
cock hair. Stringy wads coated his balls. Like a kitten lapping milk,
Crissy cleaned her father's prick and balls. She sucked the globs of
cum from his cock hair, then when he was clean, she lifted her head,
her innocent face flushed with lust. "Did I do good, Daddy?"

"Fantastic, Crissy. Fantastic."

                              Chapter 4


Crissy was thrilled. She crawled up into her father's arms, rubbing her
hot virgin body against his hard powerful frame. "Am I as good as Mommy
before she left us?" she asked.

"Better, baby," Douglas rasped, cradling his child in his arms.

"Oooh, Daddy." She tingled all over, found his mouth and gave him a wet
hungry kiss.

Douglas groaned and sucked on her tongue, his wet limp prick mashed
against her soft belly.

Crissy pulled her mouth away from her father's lips. "Suckin' your cock
was the greatest, but I'm so hot. Will you help me, Daddy?"

Douglas rubbed his child's lithe naked body. His hands cupped the firm
cheeks of her ass, kneading her pliant assmeat. He felt her small tits
mash against his chest, her nipples like hot pokers searing his skin.
"I'll take care of you, baby," he groaned.

"Oooh, Daddy," she sighed. She showered him with kisses, then dropped
her hand down to his limp prick. A hot shiver raced up her arm. "Will
you fuck me, Daddy? I wanna be fucked so bad."

Douglas' head was spinning. He fondled her young writhing body, his
mouth hungry, working frantically over his daughter's neck. He kneaded
her tits, his mouth working down her soft creamy body. "As soon as my
cock's hard again, Crissy," he said.

"Oh, Daddy! I'm burning up!" She lay on her back, her pussy on fire,
juices flowing, coating her cunt in filmy cream. "Suck my titties,
Daddy! Suck 'em!"

Douglas' urgent mouth found the small plump mounds of his daughter's
tits. He sucked hard, making Crissy whimper with glee. He chewed on her
nipples, working his tongue over the hard bullet tips.

Crissy squirmed on her back. She scratched her nails through her
father's hair, then pressed his mouth to her tits. "Ooooh, Daddy!
Daddy!"

Douglas dined on her tits, his hands roaming down to her slim hips. He
dipped one hand between her parted legs, cupping the blonde mound of
her overheated pussy. Juice flowed into his hand.

"Unnnn Daddy!" she gasped, humping her hips and grinding her cunt
against his hand. "Lick me. Lick my pussy before you fuck me."

Douglas was drunk with passion. He chewed his way down his daughter's
virgin body, crawled between her long slender legs. "You a virgin,
baby?" he panted.

"Yes, Daddy. I want you to break my cherry." She squirmed her hips. "I
wanna feel your cock up inside my fuckhole."

Douglas groaned and stared at her pussy. It had been years since he had
broken a cherry and his cock throbbed, growing again, stiffening.

"Lick me, Daddy. Make me hotter." Crissy clawed her way down her slim
body, and she parted the velvety folds of her cunt, exposing her
fuckhole. "I wanna cum, Daddy. God, I'm so hot."

Douglas wanted to fuck her this instant. His cock was hard enough, but
he wasn't going to lose the chance of sucking out a virgin pussy. He
brought his mouth to his daughter's cunt, moaning as his lips clamped
to her wet seeping pussy. His cock, pressed against the mattress,
throbbed, anxious to fill Crissy's virgin fuckhole.

"Ooooh, Daddy!" She humped, twisting her hips, her cunt grinding
against her father's face. "Suck! Suck!" She was out of her skull.

Douglas sucked, using his tongue. She tasted sweet, innocent, and it
drove him crazy. He slipped his hands under her jiggling ass, cupped
her cheeks and squeezed. Warm cream flowed over his face.

Crissy was like a firecracker ready to go off. She whimpered, her hips
rolling, her hands skimming over her flesh. It was like a dream.

Her father was eating out her cunt and soon he would be shoving his
gorgeous cock up inside her virgin pussy. She would truly be a woman.

With her father licking her cunt, and her mind spinning with thoughts
of being fucked, Crissy's pussy exploded. "I'm creaming, Daddy. Ooooh,
I'm cumming!"

Crissy humped up, rolling her hips. Her small creamy tits jiggled.
"Ooooh, Daddy. I'm cumming! Lick me! Lick me!"

Douglas slapped his tongue up through her cunt. Hot virgin pussy-cum
flowed over his face. Hearing his daughter squeal with pleasure drove
him wild. She was delicious and he sucked deeper, drawing her cuntlips
into his mouth.

Orgasms swept through Crissy's writhing body. Her cunt muscles pulsed
against an empty channel. She shoved down and ground her cunt into her
father's mouth. "I'm creaming you, Daddy! Ooooh, God!"

Douglas held onto her ass and feasted on her virgin pussy. Twisted and
bent, his cock ached. He gobbled on her pussy, found her clit and
captured it between his teeth.

Crissy arched her back, slamming her pussy into her father's mouth.
"Bite. Daddy! Make me cum again!"

Spit drooled from her open mouth. Cum gushed from her cunt, drenched
her father's face and soaked the cheeks of her ass.

Douglas chewed, sucked and used his tongue. He nipped her clit with his
teeth, made Crissy screech with joy. His own hips were jerking, his
cock jabbing into the mattress.

Crissy stiffened and fell back to the bed, a quivering mass of flesh.
"Oooooh, Daddy!" She squirmed. "Fuck me! Fuck me!"

Douglas came up from between his daughter's legs. He was crazed with a
desire to ravage his child's body. He pulled his powerful frame up over
Crissy's slim figure and stared down at her flushed passion-filled
face. "Did I eat you as good as Tammy?" he asked with a grin.

"Oh, Daddy!" she gasped. "You know?"

"Yeah, baby. I saw the whole thing this morning."

She felt his cockhead against her stomach. "You mad?"

"No," he panted, his prick throbbing, ready to rip into his daughter's
virgin pussy.

She was too hot to talk about her sister. "Stick it in me, Daddy," she
panted. She humped up and rocked her hips as his cock pressed against
her stomach. "Oooooh, fuck me!"

Douglas brought his lust under control. "It'll hurt, baby."

"I don't care!" she gasped. "I want your cock." She raked his thick
arms with her nails. "Fuck me. Make me a woman."

Douglas eased the bloated head of his cock between the puffy folds of
his daughter's pussy. Hot buttery pussy-cream flowed over his cockhead,
making him groan. He pushed, the head of his prick pressing against the
thin skin of his daughter's cherry.

"Ooooh, Daddy! I feel it. Fuck me. Take my cherry!" She was delirious,
screaming at the top of her lungs.

Douglas stared at her contorted face. He jabbed forward, the head of
his prick ripping through her cherry as if it were tissue paper.
"Baby," he roared, plunging through her virgin fuckhole until his cock
was buried to the hilt. "Sweet, baby!"

"Ayieeee!" Crissy screamed. "Daddy!" She bucked up, twisting, her
teenaged body impaled on her father's stiff cock. "It hurts so bad!"

Hissing through his teeth, he kept his prick buried. The muscles of her
cunt were tightly wrapped around his cockshaft, pulsing, milking his
prick instinctively. "Relax," he whispered. "Relax."

Crissy bucked like a wildcat under her father's cunt-splitting prick.
She twisted her hips, squirmed, but couldn't get free. Her father was
too strong and his cock was too deep. "Take it out!" she cried in a
moment of terror. "Oooooh, please!"

Douglas ignored her pleas, knowing the pain would go away. He moved his
hips slowly, allowing her pussy to adjust to having it stuffed with his
prick. "Easy, baby," he soothed, keeping his raging passion in check.
"The pain will go away."

Crissy thrashed beneath her father, whimpering, the pain unbearable.
She bucked up, jerking her hips. She clawed his arms, her blue eyes
bulging. "Daddy ... it hurts!"

Douglas eased back, pushed forward, his cock slipping easily into her
pussy. "Unnn, baby."

"Aghhhh!" Crissy wailed. She twisted her hips as her father stuffed her
cunt. This time when he stabbed into her cunt, the pain disappeared and
a hot sizzling warmth took its place. Pain gone, her passion quickly
returned, turning her back into a hot crazed sex kitten. "Daddy!
Daddy!"

"Yeah, baby!" He grinned. "I told you." He eased back, leaving only the
head of his bloated cock buried inside his daughter's pussy. "Ride it,
Crissy."

"Yes, Daddy," she panted. Crissy lifted her hips, her stretched cunt
gliding wetly over her father's buried prick. "Unnnn. Oooooh, it feels
so good! So damn fuckin' good!"

Douglas' balls swelled. He leered down, watched as his lust-crazed
teenaged daughter fucked herself madly on his stiff prick. "Enjoy,
baby. Fuck yourself blind."

"I am," she squealed. "Ooooh, Daddy. It's the best feeling in the
world." Crissy bucked up. The syrupy juice in her pussy bathed his fat
cockshaft. Her muscles pulsed rapidly against his prick. She twisted
her hips and ground her clit against his hard groin. "Ooooh, Christ,
I'm goin' crazy."

"Not yet, baby," he assured her. "It gets even better." To give her an
example, he drove his hips forward, pounding her wriggling body back
into the mattress. He eased back, lunged again, then twisted his hips,
his cockhead gouging the tight wet walls of her sizzling cunt.

"Ahhhh! Yessss!" She bucked up and met his thrusting stabs, her clit
mashed by his groin. "Aghhhhh! Don't stop! Keep fuckin' me, Daddy!"

Douglas fucked hard, smashing his daughter's body between his hard
driving fame and mattress. With his cock buried, he jerked his hips,
twisting his long fat prick inside her fuckhole. His teeth clenched,
his jaw tight, his cock throbbed inside her tight steamy pussy. "Baby."

With her pussy filled with her father's prick, Crissy went wild. She
thrashed beneath him, her tits jiggling, her fingers kneading his stiff
muscled arms. "I'm in heaven, Daddy. Make me cum."

"Soon, baby," he rasped, stabbing her gulping cunt with long teasingly
slow strokes. "When you can't stand the pleasure anymore."

Tammy opened the door and stared into Crissy's bedroom. A gasp caught
in her throat and her knees went weak. "Oh, God," she whispered,
watching her father slam his cock into Crissy's pussy. "Ooooh, God."

Neither Crissy nor her father heard or saw Tammy. They were too busy
fucking.

Crissy trembled. Hot spasms rippled through her pussy each time her
father plunged his cock into her sopping-wet hole. She quivered, using
her cunt muscles every time her father eased back and dragged his cock
from her cunt hole. "Faster, Daddy! I'm going crazy."

Douglas was going crazy, too. Fucking his daughter's tight wet pussy
had his balls rumbling and his cockshaft thickening with blood. "How's
this, baby?" he growled, shortening his strokes and adding more power
behind the quickening thrusts.

"Oooooh, my God! Yes! Yes!" She felt his fat throbbing cock inside her
cunt. Her hips bucked and she thrust her cunt forward. "You're so deep,
Daddy!"

With the next plunge, Douglas smacked his groin against her trembling
body. The head of his cock stabbed deep. "Unnn, Crissy!"

"Fuck me, Daddy!" she wailed, her cunt gliding wetly along his cum-
swelled hard-on. Her hips came ramming up, her pussy gobbling on his
buried cockshaft. Her ass crashed back to the bed as her father pounded
her into the mattress. She moaned, matching his quick stabbing thrusts
with her own jerky moves.

Douglas fucked into her juicy pussy with fast-paced lunges. "Baby." His
broad chest heaved as his breathing grew more intense. Hard jabs drove
his cock into her squiggling body. He drilled her pussy, fucking the
entire length of his prick into her frothy cunt.

"Daddy! I'm so close!" She lunged up, twisting her hips.

Douglas rammed back, his cock slicing through her mushy fuckhole. He
felt her gripping cunt muscles squeeze his stabbing cockshaft. "Baby
... you're dynamite!"

"Ooooh, Daddy!" His words made her head spin. She banged her cunt onto
his cock and ground her clit against his hard groin. "I feel so full!"
Her slim sizzling body wiggled frantically on the bed as whimpering
sobs escaped her drooling mouth.

"Daddy!" The last hard driving fuck-thrust triggered her orgasm. She
began to shake. Her legs came around his back and locked, her heels
digging into his hips.

"I'm cumming! I'm ... cumming!" Orgasms ripped through her pussy. Her
cunt flooded with her pussy-cum, bathing her father's stabbing prick.
Her pussy pulsed rapidly, eager for the load of cum buried in her
father's swinging balls.

"I'm cumming, Daddy. I'm creaming all the fuck over!" Crissy went
insane.

Douglas saw his daughter's face twist into an expression of lust. He
knew she was creaming, felt the orgasms in her pussy attack his cock.
It blew his mind. He fucked her harder, making her scream.

"Cum, Daddy!" she squealed. "Cum! Cum!"

With his next stabbing thrust, Douglas' balls erupted. Hot thick cum
shot up through his pounding prick, spewing from his pisser. Thick
globs of cum whitewashed his daughter's tight cunt. "I'm cumming, baby!
Jesus Christ. I'm cumming!"

Crissy arched her back. The hot squirting cum from her father's prick
sent her screaming into another series of fantastic orgasms. She lunged
up, rocking her hips, craving more of his spewing prick. "I feel your
cum, Daddy! Oooooh, keep cumming! Fuck me!"

Hot sticky cum poured from her pussy each time her father rammed his
cock into her wiggling body. She felt his cum fill her body and it
drove her mad. "Harder, Daddy! Faster!"

Her ass hammered the bed. Her tits shook, the nipples sore and swollen.
"I'm still cumming!" She bucked up, twisting her clit against his groin
as he slammed her back to the bed.

Douglas pounded her violently. His hips jabbed forward at blinding
speed, driving his cock to the root each time. "Baby," he roared, his
muscles straining, his arms weakening.

Crissy's cum greased her father's drilling cockshaft. It mixed with his
cum inside her fuckhole, gushed out down her cunt crack and formed a
puddle on the sheet. A gurgling moan escaped her mouth. It was as if
her father's cock had stabbed into her throat. "Your ... cock ...
ooooh, Daddy! I ..." She was delirious.

Douglas stared from glazed eyes at his daughter's beautiful face. In
the throes of passion, her face had lost its innocence. His gut knotted
as his cum-stained balls slapped against her quivering body with each
stab into her squishy cunt.

Crissy was in bliss. Her hips moved at the same frantic pace her father
had set. Her ass came off the bed, her hips bucked, and she moaned when
he drove her squirming twisting body back onto the bed. "Ooooh, Daddy!"
She stiffened, raking his chest. "Ahhhh!"

Douglas fucked hard, his balls about drained. His arms crumbled and he
crushed her beneath him, his hips still stabbing, slicing his cock in
and out of her climaxing pussy.

Crissy found his neck with her mouth and chewed. Her arms circled his
back, and she held him tight. She lunged up, moaning, her tits crushed
against his chest. "Ooooh, Daddy!"

Douglas ground her back onto the bed, his hands skimming under her
body, clutching the cheeks of her jiggling ass. Panting, his groans
lost in her throat, he fucked her maniacally until she lay limp and
weak beneath him.

Crissy purred like a contented cat. She stroked his back lovingly. Her
hips twitched and her legs fell away from his body. She lay there,
savoring her cum-stuffed cunt. "I'm a woman, Daddy," she whispered.

Douglas rolled off his daughter's body and panted as he caught his
breath, his prick limp, sticky, lying like a slab of meat against his
thigh. "You're better than your mother ever was."

"Mmmm, Daddy," she cooed, rolling into his arms. It was then that she
spotted Tammy standing at the door. "Tammy!"

Douglas lifted his head. "How ... long have you been there?"

"Long enough to want you to do the same thing to me," Tammy sighed. She
ran into the bedroom and joined them on the bed.

"I'll never make it through the night," Douglas groaned happily.

"I think you will," Tammy said, scampering down to his limp cock.

Crissy licked his chest. "I know you will."


                              Chapter 5


Tammy licked her father's prick, tasting the juices of Crissy's pussy.
"You gonna break my cherry, too, Daddy?" she cooed.

"When you get me hard," he groaned. He stroked Crissy's hair as she
nibbled on his chest.

"Ooooh, I'll get you hard," Tammy giggled. She wanted her father's cock
as badly as Crissy had wanted it. She crawled between his legs, then
lapped her tongue over his balls. She was trembling, knowing once his
prick was hard, her father would rip away her cherry.

"You want any help?" Crissy sighed. She nibbled her way across her
father's chest. She licked him, her tongue burning a path to his groin.

"Sure," Tammy said. "We'll make him crazy and then he can bust me open
like he busted you."

Crissy giggled. It was the first time in her life she had beaten her
older sister at anything. "You'll love it, Tammy," she said, bragging.
"It hurts, but, oh, does it feel good."

Douglas moaned under the hot licking mouths of his two daughters. He
heaved a sigh, knowing it would be a long night. "Have fun, kids."

"We will, Daddy!" Crissy giggled. She joined her sister at her father's
limp prick. "He sucked my cunt, too," she boasted.

Tammy contained her jealousy. They had all night and she was sure that
whatever their father did to Crissy, he would do to her. She licked her
tongue up over his balls.

Crissy sucked the head of his cock into her mouth. She swirled her
tongue over his prick-head, skimming into his pisser.

"Jesus," Douglas groaned, wondering if he would survive the night.

"I sucked him off first," Crissy continued to taunt. "His cum was
delicious!"

Tammy ignored her and licked her father's balls.

"Get on your side, Daddy," Crissy said. "I'll lick your ass while Tammy
sucks you hard again." She winked at her sister.

Douglas did as his daughter asked, eager to feel Crissy's mouth on his
ass. "Ream me, baby."

"Mmmmm, you look great, Daddy," she mewled. She licked his hips, then
slithered her tongue over his ass. "Mmmmm."

Tammy feasted on her father's limp cock. She brought his meaty prick
into her mouth and gently chewed, enjoying his moans of pleasure. She
had to admit, even to herself, that Crissy's boldness and oversexed
personality was making this all possible. She didn't know how it had
happened, she only cared that it did.

Douglas jerked his hips, his cock filling Tammy's mouth. He jerked
back, slammed his ass against Crissy's face. "God, I must be the
luckiest man alive," he moaned.

Crissy plunged her tongue into his ass, working her spit into his
shitter. Already, the passion her father's cock had satisfied her with
earlier began to tickle her again deep in her pussy. She sucked hard,
snaking her tongue deep, her hands clawing his back.

Tammy felt the strength return to her father's cock. It spurred her on.
She chewed hungrily, feeling it begin to throb in her mouth.

"Keep suckin', Tammy," Douglas groaned. His gut churned and his balls
began to swell with a new load of jizz.

Crissy pulled her tongue from her father's asshole. She sucked on his
asscheeks, turning his flesh red and blotchy. Moaning, she writhed on
the bed, her hot little pussy getting all creamy. She rubbed her body
against the back of his legs, mashing her tits against him. "Ooooh,
Daddy. I love sucking your ass."

Douglas groaned, thrashing between his two sex-crazed daughters. "I'm
getting hard, Crissy. Tammy's good."

Tammy swelled with pride. She popped her mouth off his cock and chewed
his prick shaft. Warm spit soaked his cockshaft, dribbled to the sheet.

Crissy didn't care that Tammy could suck cock. She knew she was
terrific and she had been to her father's prick first, had her cherry
busted first, and now she was sucking on his ass. Another first. It was
all that mattered.

Tammy fondled his balls and, slipping her hand between his legs, she
played with Crissy's tits. Her virgin pussy was soaked, pulsing, greedy
for her father's cock. She lathered his prick with spit, trembling as
it grew thicker and longer.

Crissy gasped under her sister's manipulating fingers. She spread the
cheeks of her father's ass, buried her face, and plunged her tongue
back into his asshole. She reached around, her fingers finding Tammy's
pussy. She stroked her virgin cunt slit, enjoying the sticky warmth of
her sister's cream as it flowed over her fingers.

Tammy moaned, humping her sister's fingers as she gobbled hungrily on
her father's almost stiff cock.

Douglas was sandwiched between them, Tammy on his prick, Crissy on his
ass. He jerked, slamming his prick into Tammy's mouth.

Tammy gagged, pulled her mouth away. Panting, she stared at his prick.
It was jutting out from his groin stiff as a board. "It's hard."

Crissy came away from her father's ass, rolled him onto his back and
stared at his prick. "Let's share him for awhile," she panted.

Tammy, greedy for it all, gobbled his cock into her mouth. She wasn't
going to give up his cock unless she had to. She plunged her head down,
forcing the entire length into her throat. She sucked, her head bobbing
up and down.

Crissy watched. "I can do that, too," she said smugly.

Douglas could only groan. He slammed up into Tammy's mouth and looked
at Crissy. "For once, Baby ... no fighting."

Crissy giggled. "There's only one of you. What else can we do?" She
joined her sister, chewing on the base of his prick as Tammy gobbled
greedily on his bloated cockhead.

Both girls licked, sucked, and nibbled on their father's cock. Their
lips met and they kissed each other, their tongues swirling around
their father's throbbing hard-on. Up and down his cock, their hot
greedy mouths worked their magic, meeting at his bell-shaped pricktip,
where they kissed again, their spit dribbling down all over his balls.

"Jesus Christ," Douglas groaned. His hairy balls ached. He jerked up,
writhing in the hot sucking mouths of his two sex-crazed daughters.
"You two little bitches are fabulous."

Crissy, having sucked her father off before, relinquished his cock to
Tammy. "You suck him," she purred. "I'll take care of the rest of his
body." She nibbled her hungry mouth all over his groin, worked her way
up to his chest. Her hot mouth slobbered over his heavy chest, chewed
and sucked on his nipples.

With Crissy gone, Tammy feasted on her father's cock. She sucked it
into her mouth, whipped her tongue over his bloated prick-head, then
gobbled it into her throat. Cock hair tickled her nose as his prick
throbbed deep in her gullet. Her pussy, virgin and wet, pulsed as she
realized that soon his cock would be ripping through her cherry and
making her a woman like Crissy. It drove her wild. "Unnnnn," she
moaned, her throat stuffed with his cock.

Crissy was panting, her young body on fire. She writhed, rubbing her
soft flesh against her father's hard frame. "Ooooh, Daddy. Everything
is so wonderful."

"I know, baby," Douglas groaned. He caressed Crissy, his hips jerking,
driving his cock in and out of Tammy's hot sucking mouth.

Crissy fused her mouth to her father's, plunged her tongue and
explored. Her tits mashed against his chest, and she pressed her cunt
against his jerking hips, enjoying the friction against her clit.

Douglas sucked his daughter's invading tongue. He squirmed against her
young soft body. His hips lunged up, his cock slamming into Tammy's
throat as he enjoyed both his children to the fullest.

Crissy pulled her mouth from her father's. "Fuck Tammy now," she
panted. "Let me watch you rip out her cherry." She was trembling,
overheated and eager to watch Tammy get fucked.

Douglas groaned. Two cherries in one night. He jerked as Tammy's mouth
gnawed on his hard throbbing cock. "I'm ready. Jesus, am I ready."

Tammy dragged her teeth up the length of her father's cock. "So am I,
Daddy," she whimpered. She looked at his prick and shivered. It would
soon be buried in her pussy. "Ooooh, shit, I'm creaming already."

"So am I," Crissy purred.

Tammy threw herself on her back, spread her legs and moaned. "Fuck me,
Daddy. Make me a woman, like Crissy." She brought her fingers down to
her virgin cunt and parted the slippery folds of her turned-on pussy.
"Rip me open."

Douglas stared at Tammy's red silky pussy hair. Frothy white cunt-cream
oozed from her virgin pussy. "You're sopping wet, baby."

"Stick it in me, Daddy!" she gasped, trembling with anticipation. "Fuck
me!" Her hips wiggled frantically as she stroked her own cunt.

Crissy stared at her sister, remembering how great she had tasted. She
licked her lips. "Not that way, Tammy. Get on your hands and knees."
She giggled. "Pretend you're a dog."

"Yeah," Tammy moaned. She scrambled onto her hands and knees, wiggling
her ass. "Fuck me, Daddy."

Crissy crawled over in front of her sister, got on her hands and knees,
and shook her ass. "You can lick my cunt hole while Daddy fucks you."

Tammy swooned, her head reeling. She looked back at her father,
wondering if he minded.

"He knows, Tammy," Crissy giggled. "He watched us today when we were
fuckin' around together."

Douglas leered at his two children. It was wild. His gaze fell to
Tammy's virgin cunt and his prick seemed to grow another two inches. He
rubbed her ass, his fingers gliding down between her creamy asscheeks.

"Ooooh, Daddy," Tammy sighed. The inside of her cunt contracted. "Stick
it in me."

Crissy crawled around behind her sister. She gripped her father's huge
cock. "Let me put it in, Daddy."

Douglas groaned, jerking his cock through Crissy's fingers. His fingers
still caressed the tiny wrinkled crack of Tammy's shitter. He looked at
Crissy and saw the lust in her innocent blue eyes, then stared at
Tammy's virgin fuckhole. "Whewww, whatta night this is goin' to be."

Crissy tugged on his cock, pulling him closer to Tammy's jiggling ass.
Douglas stroked his cock across her virgin pussyslit, watching as hot
buttery cunt-cream coated the head of his cock. "God, Tammy's really
creaming."

"Ooooh, Daddy!" Tammy wailed. "Don't tease me." She was shaking,
anxious for her father to fuck her.

Douglas ignored his daughter's pleas and continued to torture her. He
reached under, grabbed one of Tammy's large tits and squeezed. "You'll
get it, Tammy."

He was seething with desire. "No more fooling around, Tammy," he
grunted, taking his hand off his prick. He stroked his cock through
Tammy's puffy cuntlips while Crissy pulled on Tammy's tits. "You ready,
baby?"

"Yes, Daddy!" Tammy squealed. "Fuck me!"

Douglas pushed the head of his cock into his daughter's cunt. His
prick-head pressed against her cherry and he paused, savoring the
moment.

"Ooooh, Crissy, I feel it!" Tammy began to tremble.

"Hard, Daddy," Crissy urged. "Ram it in her!"

Douglas groaned, the heat of his daughter's cunt sending hot jolts of
passion through his cock shaft. He held her hips, bringing Tammy to a
feverish pitch before ripping his cock through the thin skin of her
cherry.

"Do it, Daddy!" Tammy screeched. She shoved back, moaning as the
pressure on her cherry increased.

Douglas held his lust in check, the hot fire in Tammy's pussy driving
him wild.

Crissy stared, first at Tammy's flushed face, then at her father. "Fuck
her, Daddy. Make her howl."

Douglas couldn't take the strain any longer. Like an enraged lion, he
slammed forward,his cock cutting through her cherry. He didn't stop
until his groin was flush with her quivering asscheeks.

Tammy's eyes bulged and her face twisted in agony. "Ayyieeee!" she
screeched, thrashing her hips in a desperate effort to free her body of
the terrible pain that her father's cock was causing.

Crissy saw the pain on her sister's face. "Fuck her, Daddy!" she
shrieked. Seeing her sister thrashing in agony turned her on. "Fuck her
hard!"

Douglas ignored Crissy's shouts. He held his cock deep in Tammy's
pussy, feeling the muscles of her cunt trying to dislodge his prick.
"Easy, Tammy. Easy!"

Tammy jerked, her eyes filling with tears. Her mouth twisted, and she
began to pant like a puppy, hoping the horrible pain would go away. "It
hurts, Daddy!"

Crissy giggled. She grabbed her sister's tits, squeezed them hard,
adding to Tammy's pain. "You'll be begging for his cock in a minute,"
she moaned.

Tammy jerked forward, twisting her shoulders. The pain in her pussy and
the pain in her tits had her head spinning. She screamed and jerked her
hips, but her father's cock stayed buried to the hilt.

Douglas eased back, then pushed slowly forward, allowing his screaming
daughter to adjust to his thick prick. He fucked her slow and felt the
juices in her pussy begin to flow again. A grin of triumph spread over
his face. Tammy was just like Crissy. They were both hot for cock.

Tammy's pain-racked face changed to a mask of lust. "Ooooh, Daddy!" she
wailed, feeling his cock begin to glide painlessly in and out of her
pussy. "I like it. Oooooh, Daddy!"

Crissy creamed as she watched Tammy enjoy their father's prick. "Fuck
him back, Tammy. Ride his cock."

Tammy rocked on her hands and knees. The pleasure in her pussy was
mounting. "Ooooh, it feels so good!" She jerked back, her now-drenched
pussy gobbling hungrily on her father's prick each time he eased it
into her pussy.

Douglas felt the muscles of her cunt clamp around his thrusting
cockshaft. His balls ached, slapping against the backs of her thighs.
He filled her cunt with his cock and moaned. "You're tight, baby. Nice
and tight. Just like Crissy."

"Ooooh, Daddy," she crooned, swaying back and forth. "I never knew it
could feel so good."

Crissy felt a tinge of jealousy, but quickly erased it. She was going
to have to share her father and there was nothing she could do about
it. "Make her cum, Daddy!"

"Not yet!" Tammy cried out. "Let me enjoy my first fuck!" She rotated
her hips and the hungry muscles of her cunt pulsed against the stiff
bloated meat of her father's cock.

Crissy crawled back in front of her sister's face and presented her
with the cheeks of her ass. "You can start licking my asshole anytime
you want, Tammy." She wiggled her ass, her body tingling.

Tammy stared at her sister's ass. When her sister's cunt was stuffed
full of her father's prick, Crissy's fuckhole looked even more
delicious than it had this morning. She flicked out her tongue,
slapping it over the creamy flesh of Crissy's ass. She soaked it with
spit, then began to chew on the sweet meat of her asscheeks.

"Oooooh, Tammy," Crissy moaned, wiggling her hips. "Go in my asshole.
Ream me, Tammy! Tongue my shitter."

Tammy was in bliss. She thrived on her father's groans as she massaged
his slowly pumping cock with her cunt. She used her tongue on Crissy's
ass, enjoying her sister's whimpering sighs of joy. Everything was
fabulous.

Douglas explored Tammy's body with his hands, his gaze flowing over her
asscheeks, up her smooth back, over her head to Crissy's ass. "Jesus,
whatta sight." He jabbed, twisting his hips, his cock gouging at the
spongy walls of his daughter's sopping wet pussy.

"Fuck her, Daddy!" Crissy shouted as she mashed her ass onto Tammy's
face. Her head snapped back. Tammy's tongue had plunged deep in her
asshole. "Oooooh, Tammy!"

Tammy was out of her mind. She was getting fucked by her father, and at
the same time, she was eating her sister's asshole. Things couldn't be
better.

Crissy collapsed on the bed, her ass high in the air, Tammy's exploring
tongue driving her wild. Spittle drooled from her panting mouth and she
clawed the sheets, whimpering and writhing in bliss. "Ooooh, Tammy. I'm
creaming." She struggled, reached under, grabbed her own pussy and
began to fondle it roughly.

Douglas eased his cock from Tammy's tight pussy. He felt the tremendous
pressure of her wet grease-lined cunt hole try to keep him captive.
With only the head of his prick inside Tammy's cunt, he slammed
forward, drilling his prick to the root. He fucked her over and over
again.

"Baby," he groaned, each time he whacked his cock into her cunt.
"Unnnn, Tammy!"

Each slamming thrust of her father's cock made Tammy howl. At the same
time, it drove her face against the cheeks of Crissy's ass and her
tongue into her asshole. Both Crissy's screams and her father's grunts
had her swirling on a cloud of lust.

Douglas held his daughter's hips in his big hands, his fingers sinking
into her pliant assmeat. He moved slowly, with long powerful strokes,
stuffing her cunt with his cock, then pulling out, torturing Tammy
until she was sobbing hysterically for him to quicken his pace.

Tammy's screams were muffled against Crissy's ass. Lights flashed
behind her fluttering eyelids. Her father's cock was the most wonderful
thing in the world and he was driving her insane. His expert jabs were
keeping her head spinning and she was glad that she had never given a
boy her cherry. It would not have been as exciting.

Crissy was writhing maniacally on the bed, her ass plastered against
Tammy's face and her own fingers pulling and clawing at her own clit.
She jerked, gasping for air as she strained her neck to lift her head.
"Deeper, Tammy! Go deeper!"

Tammy gobbled hungrily on Crissy's ass, her tongue plunging deep each
time her father stabbed his cock into her pussy. She shuddered, waiting
for each thrust of her father's cock. The agony between each stab felt
like an eternity and she wanted it faster.

She pulled her face from Crissy's ass. "Faster, Daddy! Please!" She
rocked her hips, lunging back, using her natural instincts to drive her
father crazy.

Douglas, his lust boiling in his balls, picked up the pace, stabbing
his cock faster into Tammy's spongy wet cunt. He was greeted with more
soupy cunt-cream. It bathed his prick, oozed out from between her
cuntlips and ran down his swinging balls.

"Yeses, Daddy!" Tammy screamed, thrilled with the quickening pace.
"Oooooh, harder, Daddy! Harder!"

Douglas obliged his screaming child. He fucked her with hard lightning
jabs. His cock skewered her cunt deeply. Muscles tugged rapidly on his
pounding cockshaft. "Baby," he grunted, his balls rumbling in agony.

With her father fucking her the way she wanted, Tammy went back to
gobbling Crissy's asshole. She reamed her sister's shitter with her
tongue and chewed viciously on her soft tender asscheeks, repaying her
sister for mauling her tits so roughly. Spit slobbered from her mouth
each time she licked and chewed Crissy's asscrack.

Crissy moaned and slammed back, her own fingers urgently pulling and
rubbing her pulsing clit. She jabbed a finger into her pussy, smeared
the creamy juice over her clit and sobbed with passion.

Tammy was being battered by them both. Douglas was pounding her pussy
and Crissy was mashing her face. She rocked on her hands and knees,
drowning in the pleasure of her father's jabbing prick. Her huge tits
swelled, hanging like heavy weights, ready to explode. She bit Crissy's
ass and enjoyed her sister's screams.

Douglas watched the fantastic sight of his two naked daughters. His
balls rumbled, aching to be rid of the thick cum that churned like
lava. He brought his gaze back to Tammy's jiggling ass, spread her
cheeks and gazed hotly at her wrinkled asshole. "Soon, baby," he
groaned, his cock swelling, ready to burst.

Douglas' ears were bombarded by the screams and moans of his two lust-
crazed children. He stared at his cock, enjoying the sight of his prick
shaft skewering her tight pussy. Warm sudsy cream clung to his jabbing
cockshaft. The squishing sounds of her pussy blended with his
daughter's wails of pleasure. He groaned and jabbed faster, his groin
whacking against the cheeks of her ass.

Tammy went insane. Never in her young life had she expected this. She
swooned, her young mind conjuring up an image of what she looked like
with her father fucking her pussy and her mouth plastered to Crissy's
ass. It overwhelmed her.

"Unnnn," she moaned, the garbled sound of her voice lost in Crissy's
asshole. Her body responded to her erotic image. She jerked, twisted,
and bucked under her father's driving cock. Spasms rippled through her
body. Spit gurgled in her throat. She choked, forcing her spit into
Crissy's asshole. Her hips matched her father's pace as she climbed
toward a mind-blowing orgasm.

Douglas slammed his prick into her pussy, his groin slapping noisily
against the cheeks of her jiggling ass. Each thrust sliced his cock
through the buttery ooze of her cream as it flowed from her pulsing
cunt walls. His balls ached, each slap against her body reminding him
that his cum needed to be released. He groaned and bit his bottom lip,
fighting the urge to empty his balls.

"Cum, Tammy," he groaned, wanting his child to cream first. "Cum!"

Tammy pulled her drooling mouth from Crissy's asshole. The room was
spinning, her body felt as if it were on fire. "I'm ready, Daddy. I'm
ready!"

Crissy wasn't going to miss the best part. She rolled away and watched
as her father fucked Tammy with hard demanding thrusts. Each stab
brought a tremor to her pussy and she writhed and whimpered frantically
on the bed, slobber oozing from her mouth.

"Fuck her, Daddy! Make her cream!" Crissy was insane. "Cream him,
Tammy. Drown his fuckin' cock!" She sat up and stared at them both, her
tits jiggling as she wiggled her ass on the bed.

"Daddy! Daddy!" Tammy went into spasm. "I'm cumming! Oooooh, I'm
cumming!"

Her orgasm gripped her, sent her swirling into a screaming twisting
fit. Hot orgasms ravaged her pussy, making her screech at the top of
her lungs.

Douglas slammed into her climaxing pussy. The hot pulsing muscles on
his jabbing cockshaft made the cum rumble in his balls. He could no
longer hold back the fire in his prick. His jabbing hips became a blur.

"I'm cumming," he roared. Hard demonic fuck-stabs forced the cum from
his balls. Thick globs of white jizz sprayed from his cock head,
spurting into the bubbling furnace of Tammy's climaxing cunt.

"I'm cumming," he bellowed. "I'm creaming you, baby!" His cock swelled,
his pricktip spewing out great globs of jism. It gushed into her
exploding cunt. "Aghhhh ... baby!"

Crissy watched. It was like seeing herself. She felt each stab of her
father's cock as it cut into Tammy's climaxing cunt. She licked her
lips, feeding on the lust created by her father and sister. "Fuck her,
Daddy! Harder!"

Douglas fucked Tammy with vicious jabs. His cock, still spurting jizz,
reached deep inside Tammy's cunt hole, stretching it, flooding it. He
looked at Crissy, a lewd grin on his lust-contorted face.

Crissy pawed her own clit, sending hot orgasms through her empty pussy.
She rocked on her ass and watched Tammy cream. "Cream Daddy, Tammy.
Milk his fuckin' cock."

Tammy was out of her head. She met each pounding thrust, absorbed it,
shuddering and squealing as their bodies clashed. "I'm still cumming,
Daddy! Oooooh, God!"

Tammy twisted her head around saw her father behind her. It sent her
reeling and another orgasm shot through her cunt like a red-hot bullet.
Her head dropped, snapping from side to side, her red hair lashing
across her twisted face.

Hot cum spurted from Douglas' dilated pisser. Cum flooded her pussy,
greased her cunt hole, his cock fucking faster and faster through the
soupy mixture of both their juices. He mauled her hips, every muscle in
his body straining, bulging as he fucked his squealing daughter
mercilessly.

Tammy battled back as Crissy cheered, her voice blending with their
screams and howls. She felt each squirt of her father's cum. Each wad
ignited another orgasm in her pussy. She tossed her head around, stared
at Crissy. "Ooooh, Crissy. I'm in heaven."

She shoved back, almost collapsing. "More, Daddy! More!" She was as
greedy as Crissy had been. She wanted every drop. "Harder! Harder!"

Her green eyes floated in her head. "He's creaming me, Crissy. I'm
drowning!" Tammy was hysterical. Her arms crumbled and her face crashed
onto the mattress, her pussy still impaled on her father's drilling
cock. She raked the sheets, stretching, twisting, wrenching her body
maniacally as her father pounded her.

Douglas was just about drained. His stabbing thrusts slowed, his balls
just about empty. The last few squirts oozed from his piss-hole without
any power. He groaned and stopped, his chest heaving as he caught his
breath.

"Enough, baby," he rasped. His prick was still trapped inside Tammy's
pussy. It began to shrink, the muscles of her cunt refusing to let it
go. He groaned again and rode the last of Tammy's orgasms, then fell
back, his prick popping from her body.

"Ahhhhh!" Tammy cried, her body empty. She fell to the bed, whimpering
and writhing in ecstasy. She was exhausted, sated like never before in
her life. "Ooooh, Daddy. It was fantastic!"

Crissy, crazed with passion after seeing Tammy cream, crawled over to
her father. She licked his balls, her tongue swiping off gobs of cum.
She sucked on his limp prick, cleaning it with her sucking lips and
swishing tongue.

Douglas groaned, finally pushing his daughter away. "No more, Crissy.
Christ!"

Crissy giggled and attacked Tammy. She rolled her sister over and
stared at her fucked-out pussy. Cum oozed freely from her cunt hole.
"Oooooh, are you gonna taste good now."

"No, Crissy," Tammy protested. "I couldn't take it!"

Crissy didn't care. She forced her sister's legs apart and plastered
her mouth to the girl's pussy. She sucked, getting great thick globs of
cum into her mouth. She swallowed the cum greedily, then reamed Tammy's
pussy, searching for more delicious cum. If Tammy tasted good this
morning, she was fabulous tonight with cum oozing from her cunt hole.

Tammy screamed as another orgasm almost made her faint.

Crissy feasted for what seemed like an hour, but was only minutes. With
her face covered with cum, she sat up, looked at them both. "We're
gonna have more fun together than anybody else in the world."

Douglas hauled his two daughters into his arms. "You two kids are
fantastic."

"We know, Daddy," Crissy said, giggling.

Douglas cradled their heads. In minutes they were all asleep.


                             Chapter 6


Douglas opened his eyes, and he felt his two naked daughters' warm
bodies next to his. He heaved a sigh. It had been quite a day. Except
for eating, they had spent the whole day in bed. He rolled over and
looked at the clock. "Your Uncle Harry will be here soon," he said.

Crissy lifted her head and smiled. She rubbed her hand down over her
father's hard frame and found his cock. "He'd shit a brick if he found
us all in bed like this." She stroked her father's prick.

Douglas moaned. His kids were sex-crazy and he wondered how long he
would be able to handle all of their passion.

Tammy, awakened by their talk, cuddled closer to her father, her mouth
already licking at his chest while her hand joined Crissy's at his
cock. "Maybe he'll go away if nobody answers the door."

Douglas lay on his back, savoring the light caresses of his daughters'
hands and their warm urgent mouths. "Maybe it would be a good idea if
we did invite him to join us," he suggested. "You two little nymphos
are going to kill me."

Crissy giggled, slipped down under the covers and gobbled her father's
limp prick into her mouth. She sucked, lathered his cock with her spit.

"Baby," Douglas groaned. "God, don't you get enough?"

"Never," Crissy giggled, coming up from under the sheets. "Maybe I
should go down and entertain Uncle Harry."

Douglas grinned while he fondled Tammy's large creamy tits. "Harry
always has had a thing for you, Crissy. I think he'd love sticking his
cock in you."

"Ohhh, shit," Crissy sighed. She scrambled out of bed, her small tits
jiggling. "You two play. When I'm done getting Uncle Harry to fuck me,
I'll bring him up here for a party."

Tammy kicked the sheets off, exposing her naked body. She scrambled
into her father's arms. "Now, I've got you all to myself."

Douglas held her, the ache in groin returning. "Put on something real
sexy, Crissy. Blow his mind."

Crissy tingled. Her whole life had changed since yesterday morning. She
grabbed a pair of tight shorts and slipped them on. The cheeks of her
ass peeked out and the crotch dug erotically into the gash of her
pussy. "God. I'm creaming already."

Douglas, his hand cupping Tammy's wet pussy, watched as Crissy slipped
on a skimpy halter. "Your uncle will have an instant hard-on when he
sees you."

Crissy looked at herself in the mirror and liked what she saw. Quickly,
she combed her hair, sweeping it into a long ponytail. "I hope Uncle
Harry likes 'em young, hot and willing."

"You described my brother perfectly," Douglas said, his cock throbbing
under Tammy's manipulating hands. "Tease him good and proper, baby."

"I will, Daddy." She glanced back over her shoulder and saw Tammy
feasting on her father's cock, her pussy directly over her father's
face. "Chew her up, Daddy."

Douglas groaned, pulled Tammy's pussy to his mouth and sucked.

Crissy left the bedroom. Her sister and father were too busy eating
each other to talk. She hurried downstairs to wait for her uncle, her
young body sizzling, eager to sample another cock.

Crissy was sitting on the couch when the doorbell rang. She almost
jumped out of her skin. "Oooooh, shit," she sighed, bouncing up from
the couch and hurrying to the door.

"Hi, honey," Harry said when Crissy opened the door. His breath caught
in his chest as he leered hotly at his young sexy niece. "Your father's
expecting me."

"Come on in, Uncle Harry," Crissy purred, tingling under his hot
glances. She went into his arms, rubbing her body against his, her lips
grazing wetly over his open mouth. "You haven't been around in weeks."

Harry's groin turned to cement and he held her for a moment, aware of
her soft young body pressed against his. He forced her out of his arms,
his face flushed, his cock growing rapidly in his pants.

Crissy took his hand, and she pulled him toward the couch. "You get
comfortable. I'll make you a drink."

Harry plopped on the couch and leered at his niece's ass as she
strolled over to the bar. "Whewww. I wonder how Doug manages to keep
his hands off her," he mumbled under his breath.

"Did you say something?" Crissy cooed.

"Nothin', honey." He stared at her ass as the soft creamy flesh of her
asscheeks peeked out from under the tight-fitting shorts. His cock had
stiffened into a raging hard-on. It happened every time he came over to
visit his brother, but today, his hot sexy little niece seemed to be
even sexier than ever.

Crissy felt his stare on her ass. She bent over, gave him a good view
as she picked up a piece of lint from the rug. She heard his breath
suck in, and it turned her on.

"Here's your drink, Uncle Harry," she said, walking toward him, her
small tits jiggling under the loose skimpy halter.

Harry devoured her with his eyes. "Where's your father?"

"He'll be home in a few hours. He said to wait, and for me to keep you
comfortable." She licked her lips and winked. "You don't mind, do you?"

"Not at all, honey," Harry said, his voice raspy.

"I'm glad," Crissy mewled, cuddling up against him on the couch. "I
know I'm only a teenager, but maybe we can find some things to do while
we wait for Daddy."

Harry's cock ached in his pants. He felt the pressure of her tit
against his arm and the sweet scent of her perfume invaded his head.
The things he wanted to do, he knew for sure Douglas wouldn't like at
all. He took a large gulp of his drink.

"Can I have some?" Crissy asked, rubbing her tit against his arm.

"Aren't you a little young to be drinking?" he said as Crissy took the
glass from his hand.

"I've been drunk before," she purred, gulping down the drink. "Mmmmm,
tastes good."

"You better be careful who you get drunk with," Harry said, watching
her go to the bar to make another drink. "Some boy might take advantage
of you."

"Oooooh, I don't like boys," Crissy said, bringing him a much stronger
drink. She stood in front of him. "I like men."

Harry's eyes focused on her crotch and the seam of her shorts cutting
into her pussy. He took the drink, then swallowed half of it. It was
going to be a long two hours.

Crissy glanced down at his crotch and saw the bulge. It turned her on,
knowing she could make a man hot. "Do you like young girls, Uncle
Harry?" She took his half empty glass and drained it.

Harry stared, his mouth drying up and the bulge in his pants growing
larger. "Every man likes young girls," Harry said, his voice husky, his
gaze riveted to Crissy's plump tits straining against her sexy halter.

"As young as me?" she purred, taking a deep breath, her nipples
swelling, outlined erotically against the pink material of her top.

"You're just a baby," Harry said, a lump growing in his throat.

She spun around, and swinging her ass, went back to the bar and made
another drink. "The boys don't think I'm a baby," she said, handing him
another drink. "They're always trying to get fresh with me."

"Do you let them?" he asked hoarsely, gulping thirstily on the fresh
drink.

"Never," she said, enjoying her teasing game. "I don't want some dumb
boy pawing at my tits." Her blue eyes brightened. "They're always
trying to stick their hands down my shorts and touch my pussy, too,"
she added breathlessly.

Harry's mind filled with an image of Crissy naked. "You can't blame
them," he said. "You're a very sexy girl."

She leaned over, planting a wet kiss on her uncle's mouth. "Thank you,
Uncle Harry."

Harry's eyes gazed into the top of her halter and saw the plump creamy
flesh of her tits. It took all of his willpower not to grab her and
haul her into his arms.

Crissy knew where he was looking and she stayed bent over, giving him a
real good look.

"Maybe I should go," Harry said, finding it difficult to keep his hands
off his young niece. "I'll come back when Doug's here."

"No," she pouted. She moved his arms and plopped on his lap. "Daddy
would never forgive me if I didn't keep you entertained while he was
gone."

The entertainment Harry had in mind, he was sure, Doug would never
approve of. He tried getting her off his lap, but she locked her arms
around his neck.

"Am I too young for you, Uncle Harry?" She brought her mouth to his ear
and flicked out her tongue.

"Jesus, Crissy," Harry moaned. She was squirming on his cock and the
pain filled his groin.

"Drinking all that whiskey made me high."

"Come on, honey," Harry rasped, the temptation to rape his hot sexy
niece growing stronger.

She rubbed against him and wiggled her ass. "I think your cock is
sticking me in the ass," she giggled. "I think you have a hard-on."

She grabbed his drink, stood up, and gulped it down. "Did I get you all
hot and bothered, Uncle Harry?"

Harry leered hungrily at his niece. His cock was throbbing and the
taste of her warm wet lips lingered in his mind.

"You didn't answer me," she teased. "Am I too young for you?"

"You're a baby," he said, his voice low, laced with desire for his sexy
blonde niece.

"Oooooh, Uncle Harry." She smoothed her hands over her tits, her hips
rocking gently from side to side. "I'll bet we could have a lot of fun
together before Daddy gets home."

"You better stop fucking around, honey," he warned. "I'm not some punk
kid you can tease."

"I don't wanna tease you," she said. "I want to make love to you, like
a woman."

He stared, watched her fondle her tits through her halter. "You're a
virgin, Crissy. Jesus Christ! I'm your uncle."

"I'm not a virgin," she said, licking her lips. In the next instant,
she whisked off her halter, bared her tits proudly, and enjoyed the
shocked expression of lust on her uncle's face.

"God, Crissy. I can't take much more of this." He ogled her tits. They
were beautiful, creamy, capped with pink rosy nipples.

"You like looking at them?" she asked breathlessly. She hefted them in
her hands. "Not as big as Tammy's, but nice enough, huh?"

The palms of Harry's hands were sweaty. He reached for his niece, his
lust raging like a fire in his balls. He spanned her creamy tits as she
stepped eagerly toward him. "Unnnn, Crissy!"

"Aaaaah!" she gasped, her knees buckling as she allowed her uncle to
fondle her tits. "Ooooh, Uncle Harry. You're making me cream."

Harry didn't believe what was happening. He was playing with his
brother's young teenaged daughter and he couldn't stop himself.
"Crissy," he groaned, his fingers sinking into the pliant meat of her
sweet succulent tits. "We gotta stop."

"Noooo, Uncle Harry. I don't wanna stop. It feels too good." She
stepped back out of his grasping hands. "You want me to take off my
shorts?"

Harry could do nothing but nod his head in agreement.

"Then you can prove it to yourself that I lost my cherry." She peeled
off her shorts, kicked them across the room, then displayed her young
naked body blatantly for her uncle's delight.

"Jesus, honey. You're gorgeous."

She stood close, legs spread, her breathing shallow. Her blue eyes
glowed with the passion that raged in her hot moist pussy. "Touch my
pussy, Uncle Harry. Stick in your finger."

"Unnn, Crissy." He brought his hands to his niece's lithe naked body.
He caressed her hips, her slim narrow waist, and her silky thighs. His
cock felt as if it were going to bust. "Crissy. We gotta stop."

"No, Uncle Harry," she cooed, knowing he was only talking. "Stick your
finger in my pussy." She wiggled her hips. "I'm all gooey inside."

Harry cupped the cheeks of her ass with one hand and slipped his other
hand between her legs. The sweet scent of her overheated pussy met his
nostrils as he stroked his finger through her wet sticky cunt gash.

"Inside!" she gasped. "Finger-fuck my pussy." She jerked, pulling his
head to her stomach. "Finger my pussy."

Harry jabbed a finger deep into Crissy's cunt. Nothing blocked his way.
"Damn," he muttered under his breath as her hot spongy cunt muscles
began to pulse and contract around his buried finger.

"Oooooh! I told you!" she cried. "Finger me. Do it fast and make me
cream. I'm ready to explode." Teasing her uncle, and knowing they would
end up fucking on the living room floor, had her crazy hot.

Harry jabbed his fingers in and out of her fuckhole. Warm squishy cunt-
cream coated his fingers. Her cushiony pussy muscles gripped tightly
around his fingers. He kneaded the cheeks of her ass, his head reeling.
"Goddamn, you're a hot little bitch."

"Yessss," she hissed through clenched teeth. "Hot for cock. Your cock,
Uncle Harry!" She jerked her hips, rotating them, and ground her cunt
down on her uncle's jabbing fingers.

"My asshole, too," she moaned, then realized what she had said.
"Finger-fuck my asshole, too."

Harry didn't believe it. His baby niece was creaming his fingers,
begging to have her asshole fingered. It blew his mind.

"Please, Uncle Harry. Finger my asshole while I cum."

Harry obliged his horny niece. He jabbed one finger into her asshole,
twisting it. At the same time, he jabbed another finger into her pussy.

"Ahhhh!" she wailed, jerking and thrashing on her uncle's stabbing
fingers. "Ooooh, I love it!"

An explosive climax ripped through her pussy. Her head jerked back,
snapping from side to side, her ponytail swishing across her crimson
face. Her knees buckled and she almost collapsed.

"I'm cumming, Uncle Harry. I'm creaming your fuckin' fingers." She
humped forward, driving his fingers into her pussy. Her ass rotated
frantically, her uncle's finger in her asshole, sending her squealing
into another mind-bending orgasm.

"Ooooh, I'm cumming. Oooooh, shit! I can't stand up." She fell against
her uncle, clawing her nails through his hair.

Harry kept her from falling. He fucked her pussy with his fingers, fed
her tight narrow shitter with another finger. The child's screams had
him crazy and he thought for sure he was going to cream his pants like
some damn kid. "Crissy," he groaned as hot frothy pussy-cum oozed from
her cunt and dribbled down his hand and wrist. "Sweet little Crissy."

Crissy grabbed him as her legs turned to rubber. She swayed, a high-
pitched scream rushing from her mouth. "I'm falling. Ooooh, Christ!"

With Crissy thrashing and twisting in his arms, Harry did his best to
keep her on her feet, but she was wiggling and twisting too much even
for him. "Jesus Fucking Christ!"

A shuddering spasm ripped through her cunt. Her back stiffened, then
her entire body went into spastic twitches and she seemed to melt to
the floor, Harry's fingers popping from her hot sizzling body.

Harry stared down at his young niece writhing on her back. He wanted to
tear off his clothes and rape her, but he controlled himself. She was
his brother's daughter and only a baby. His cock thought differently.
It throbbed for the heat of Crissy's pussy, making him groan in agony.

Crissy writhed lewdly on the rug, her glassy blue eyes staring up at
her uncle. She knew he was fighting the urge to fuck her. She also knew
he wouldn't be able to control his desire much longer. Knowing this
made her cream again, and she let out a low moaning rasp as another
orgasm caromed through her cunt.

"You're something, honey," Harry mouthed. Unconsciously, he rubbed his
cock through his pants.

"Let me do that, Uncle Harry," she whispered. "I love playing with
cocks." She pulled herself up, crawling over between his legs. "I love
sucking cocks, too."

Harry groaned and allowed his niece to attack his zipper. "Do whatever
you want, honey." He decided that if he were going to lose his battle
with his conscience, he might as well enjoy it.

Crissy pulled down his zipper and she fished inside his pants. Her hot
anxious fingers gripped the thick stem of his throbbing cock. She
pulled it out and stared wide-eyed at his long fat throbbing cock.
"Oooooh, Uncle Harry. It's gorgeous."

"Maybe too big for you," he said, figuring it was some kid who popped
her cherry.

"Oh, no," she sighed. "It's perfect." She held his cock in her hands
and looked up at his lust-crazed face. "It was a man who broke my
cherry, Uncle Harry." She licked her lips, smiled. "His cock was just
as big as yours."

"Christ!" Harry gasped, wondering what man had been lucky enough to get
between Crissy's beautiful legs and make her a woman. He stroked her
flushed face with his fingers. "Let me see how good you are with your
mouth, honey."

"I'm real good," she boasted. "I can take it all." She opened her
mouth, then closed it over the bloated head of her uncle's cock.

"Ahhhhh, Crissy," Harry groaned. The heat of her wet mouth shot down
through his prick shaft and churned the cum rumbling in his balls.
"Suck it, honey. Suck it all!" He no longer cared that she was his
brother's child. All that mattered was that the hot little bitch suck
him off.

With the head of his cock against the roof of her mouth, Crissy stroked
his fat veiny prick shaft with her hands. She sucked, getting a tasty
drop of cum in her mouth. Her tongue swirled around his pisser and warm
drooling spit oozed from her mouth, drenching his cock shaft and her
stroking fingers.

Harry jerked his ass up from the couch, driving the head of his cock
into her throat. He groaned, his chest heaving as Crissy's teeth
clamped into his thick prick shaft. He dropped back, grunting as she
released her viselike grip. "Christ, Crissy, don't bite it off."

"Oooh, I won't bite it off," she giggled, popping her mouth off his
prick. "If I did that, you wouldn't be able to fuck me."

Harry moaned as he imagined himself between his niece's legs, ramming
home his cock. "Give it a good suck and I'll give you good fuck."

"Promise?"

He reached down, placed the palms of his hands on her innocent face and
brought her mouth to his prick. "Stop talking and suck."

Crissy closed her lips around his prick. She sucked hard, drawing in
her cheeks. She used her tongue, whipping it across the underside of
his prick as she eased his meaty cock into her throat.

"Unnnn, Crissy!" He squirmed on the couch, his prick swelling inside
his niece's mouth. "Suck it, honey. Chew your uncle up real good."

Crissy gurgled, stifling a gag as the head of her uncle's prick
stretched her throat. She used her teeth, scraping them along his
sensitive prick shaft as she gobbled every hard inch of his cock into
her gullet.

Her mouth and throat stuffed with cockmeat, she slammed her face
forward, mashing her lips against his zipper. His hard thick cock
throbbed and she felt as if it had stabbed into her belly. Eyes bulging
and breathing hard through her nose, she kept his prick buried in her
throat, wallowing in the strength of his throbbing prick and the joy
she experienced in giving her uncle pleasure.

Harry looked down and groaned deep in his throat. She had gobbled his
entire cock into her mouth. It was unbelievable. He couldn't wait until
he fucked her pussy. He had found in his young niece a hot lustful
woman, and he intended to make the most of it before Douglas found out
and busted his head open.

Crissy gulped and eased back, her teeth dragging along the length of
his cock shaft. She gasped, spittle drooling from her clinging lips.
She stopped, only the head of his prick in her mouth.

She pulled off for a second. "Fuck my face!" she gasped, then plunged
her mouth back down over his cockhead.

Harry lunged up, driving his prick into her face. His cock fucked her
gullet, his groin whacking against her lips. He lunged up again,
slamming his prick over and over again into his niece's gobbling wet
mouth.

Crissy savored each thrust of his cock, shuddering each time his prick
stretched and filled her throat. She used her tongue like a wet whip,
lashing it over his cock shaft as he plowed her face with hard
lightning fuck-stabs.

"Crissy," Harry growled, drilling her sucking mouth with his cock.
"Jesus ... Christ!" He jerked his ass off the couch and twisted his
hips. His cock skewered her throat. "Aghhh!"

Crissy sucked. Her uncle's prick was delicious. Her young mind swirled
with lust. She felt each fuck-stab, loving it when his zipper scraped
against her wet clinging lips. Gurgling, she felt his cock grow thicker
in her mouth and she knew it wouldn't be long before hot cum flooded
her throat.

"Unnn, Crissy," Harry groaned deep in his throat. He battled her
sucking mouth, not wanting to cream his niece's face. He didn't want it
to end in her mouth. Her pussy was where his cock belonged. He jerked
on the couch, holding the rumbling cum in his balls in check.

Crissy was out of her mind--first her father, now her uncle. She sucked
wildly, taking his long thick cock into her throat. Her head started to
bob up and down, matching her uncle's pace. She pulled at his pants,
clawing his hard groin with her nails.

Harry's balls began to rumble. His face twisted in agony. "Crissy," he
rasped. His back stiffened and his muscles tensed as he found it almost
impossible to stop his balls from erupting.

Crissy, sensing his reluctance to cream her face, pulled her mouth off
his cock. "Cum in my mouth, Uncle Harry. I'll suck you hard again so
you can fuck me." She licked her lips. "I love cum."

Harry nodded, knowing his little niece could do what she said. "Then
eat it, honey, and I'll give you every fuckin' drop I have."

"Ooooh, sounds good." Like a vulture, she brought her lips back to his
prick and gobbled it into her mouth. She took his prick to his balls,
his cock hair now tickling her nose. She felt his prick swell in her
throat and knew it wouldn't be long now. Swooning, she jerked her head
up and down, her sucking mouth churning the cum in her uncle's balls.

"Un ... un ... un!" Harry grunted, his ass humping up and down. He
fucked her face, his balls ready to burst.

With her mouth covering his prick, Crissy used her tongue and licked
his jabbing cock shaft. She sucked hard, her cheeks drawing in as she
urged the cum in his balls to erupt. Her teeth gnawed, her jaw working
rhythmically from side to side. She felt her uncle tense and she went
wild.

"I'm cumming," Harry roared, his voice filling the living room. He
slammed up into her mouth. "Aghhhh! I'm cumming!" His balls burst,
shooting a blast of thick white cum into his niece's tight wet throat.
It squirted deep. "Aghhh, Crissy!"

Crissy gulped the first thick wad. Her eyes bulged and she used her
mouth, meeting his upward thrusts, slamming her mouth down over the
length of his cock. She gulped, taking the steady squirting stream of
thick cum into her mouth and throat. It flooded her cheeks and she
gagged, but never stopped. She was hungry, needing it all to satisfy
her passion until he fucked her.

Harry fucked her throat, his hips jerking, his balls churning out cum
as fast as Crissy sucked it into her mouth. "Crissy!" he howled,
lunging up, his cock fucking deep into her throat. "Aghhh!" His balls
ached, the suction from his niece's mouth draining them.

Cum gushed from Crissy's clinging lips and her nose. It poured down her
throat and made her gag. Her nails raked the thick wrinkled skin of his
balls, making him roar like a lion.

She sucked maniacally, wanting every drop of her uncle's cum. Her head
bobbed up and down at a faster pace. She used her teeth, her tongue and
her lips. One deep suck filled her cheeks with a thick load.

Harry's slamming thrusts slowed as his balls emptied. He grunted, his
ass jerking, his prick still spurting, but with less force.

Crissy wouldn't stop. She grabbed the base of his prick shaft. It was
sticky with cum and spit. She jerked her fist up and down, her mouth
meeting her lips. Moaning, she sucked and jerked his cock until he
howled for her to stop.

Harry plunged up one last time, smashing his prick into her mouth. "No
more, Crissy." He dropped back to the couch, groaning, his prick still
trapped in his niece's mouth.

Crissy sucked the last few drops from his spent prick and she pulled
her mouth off. Cum dribbled from her lips and down her chin. A thin
stringy gob dropped to her nipple. "How did you like that, Uncle
Harry?" she panted as she licked her lips clean.

Harry rubbed his cock. "You're better than any woman I've ever had."

"I'm even better with a cock up my pussy."

"I'm counting on it, honey," he said. "I'm counting on it."


                              Chapter 7


Seething with lust, Crissy pulled her uncle down to the floor. Her
breathing was noisy and rapid, like a bitch in heat. She pulled at his
clothes, stripping him completely. Her hot glassy blue eyes devoured
her uncle's naked body. "I'm gonna get you hard again," she panted.

Harry ogled his lust-crazed naked niece. Her face was {rushed, eyes
bright, spit dribbling from the corners of her panting mouth. He rubbed
his limp sticky prick. "I'm sure you can."

Crissy straddled his thick hairy leg. She pressed her cunt down on his
thigh, soaking his skin with warm pussy-cream. "Oooooh, Uncle Harry.
I'm burning up inside."

Harry moaned. The heat of her cunt-cream seared through his thigh and
attacked his balls. The little sex maniac would have him hard in record
time. He was positive.

Gasping, Crissy glided her wet seeping cunt over her uncle's thigh and
down across his knee. She paused, ground her hips, and mangled her clit
against his knee. Her head snapped back as she screamed. "Ahhhhh!"

Harry jerked his knee and watched her face contort in bliss. He rubbed
his prick. It was beginning to grow. Just looking at the wild teenager
was enough to give any man a hard-on, no matter how many times he had
been fucked.

"It's getting hard," she moaned, delighted with the sexual power she
possessed. "God, it'll be stiff as hell any minute."

"I know," Harry grunted, jabbing his knee into her sopping-wet pussy.

"Oooooh, Uncle Harry!" she wailed, twisting her hips and mangling her
cunt against his knee. "Holy Christ!"

Crissy greased his shin and banged the cheeks of her ass against his
foot. With a glazed drunken expression on her flushed excited face, she
lifted her cunt. "Watch!" she gasped.

Harry groaned, his eyes fixed on his horny niece.

"Mmmmm," she hummed, trembling as she thought about what she was going
to do. In the next instant, she slammed her pussy down, driving her
uncle's foot into her cunt. "Aghhhh!"

"Jesus Christ, Crissy!" Harry growled.

Gasping, Crissy rotated her hips. Hot buttery pussy-cream coated his
toes and drooled down his foot. "It feels fantastic. Wiggle your toes."

Harry grunted and did what she wanted. "You hot little bitch."

"Oooooh, I'm creaming!" Her head snapped back, her blue eyes floating.
"I feel your fuckin' toes!"

Jerking and twisting, Crissy fucked herself on her uncle's foot. Tits
bouncing, her nipples ready to burst, she slammed her pussy up and
down, her uncle's toes jabbing deeper with each downward plunge.
"Ahhhhh!"

A spasm ripped through her cunt. She shuddered and stiffened, then
toppled off her uncle's foot. "I'm so hot, Uncle Harry," she babbled as
she squirmed on the floor. "So fuckin' hot."

She reached for his cock. It was thick, yet still not rock-hard the way
she wanted it. Moaning like a bitch in heat, she pushed her hands
against her uncle's hips. "Roll over. I wanna eat your ass."

Harry rolled over willingly. It wasn't everyday that hot some nympho
wanted to chew on his ass. The fact that it was his teenaged niece made
it that much more exciting.

Drooling, her blue eyes flickering with the lust raging in her pussy,
Crissy crawled over her uncle. She attacked him like a wild tigress,
nipping her way down his back to the cheeks of his ass.

"Jesus, Crissy," he groaned, his cock mashed into the carpet. He jerked
his hips, twisted and groaned under her attacking mouth.

Crissy reached his ass and chewed. She crawled between his legs, gnawed
on his thighs, and licked the back of his thick-skinned ball-sac. She
coated his balls with warm spit, soaked his thighs, then whimpering,
she chewed hungrily on his asscheeks.

"Honey," he groaned, jerking under Crissy's hard snipping bites. "Easy,
for Christ's sake!"

Crissy was too involved and hot to hear her uncle's groans. She spread
the cheeks of his ass, slapped her tongue up through his crack and
soaked his wrinkled shitter with her spit. "Mmmmm, it looks so
delicious."

"Honey ... suck it ... out!" He jerked his hips, smashing his ass
against her face.

"Unnnnnn," she moaned as her uncle smashed her face. She reached under,
grabbed his cock with both hands and squeezed.

"Aghhhh," Harry growled, his prick a prisoner of his niece's gripping
fingers. He thrashed on the floor, jabbing his thickening cock through
Crissy's hands. He slammed back, bucking his hips as Crissy's tongue
tormented his asshole.

Crissy chewed greedily on the soft flesh around his asshole, then
plunged her tongue into his shitter. She reamed his asshole, her
fingers mauling his cock. Her own body writhed, her tits scraping
against the carpet. Her clit, swollen with blood, scratched against the
nap of the rug.

She jammed her hips forward, mashing her clit into the rug and moaned,
her cries of lust lost in the flesh of her uncle's ass. She wormed her
tongue deep, slobbering spit into his shitter, and roughly played with
his prick.

Harry's cock stiffened into a rigid beam. He jerked back, whacking his
ass against his niece's face. "Honey," he groaned. "I'm ready! Christ!"

Panting and gasping for air, she pulled her face away from her uncle's
ass. She released his cock and scrambled up onto her haunches, waiting
like an insane animal for her uncle to roll over onto his back.

"Get on your back, Crissy," Harry said. "I'm goin' to fuck the shit out
of you."

Dazed, her head reeling, she laughed lewdly. "You'd have to fuck my
asshole if you want my shit." She stared at his prick stabbing the air.
"I need it in my pussy."

She scrambled over her uncle's body, straddling his hips. His cock
jutted up hard and inviting. She squiggled her hips, rubbing his hard-
on against her belly. "Oooooh, I think I'm crazy, Uncle Harry."

"I know you are," he rumbled, his voice deep, coated with lust. "Stick
it the fuck in."

Lewd animal sounds escaped her drooling mouth. Crissy leered hotly at
her uncle. She released his prick, jerked her hips, then slammed down,
pressing his cock against his groin. The puffy lips of her overheated
pussy wrapped around his cock shaft and warm sudsy pussy-cream flowed
out, drenching him in its sticky heat.

"Oooooh, it's throbbing. I feel it." She glided her cunt back and forth
over his prick, soaking it in pussy-cream. She lowered her head,
watched her tits jiggle and saw Harry's cockhead peek out as she jerked
her hips back.

"Unnnnn." She moved forward and felt his cock slide through her cunt
gash. "Oooooh, I'm ready for it!" she squealed. "Ready to be fucked!"

So was Harry. His niece had turned his balls into hot coals. His prick,
engorged with blood, ached to be buried up inside her teenaged pussy.
"Me, too, Crissy. Climb on and fuck yourself to death."

Trembling, her tits shaking, her mouth open, her eyes wide and glassy,
Crissy lifted her pussy from her uncle's cock. His prick twitched and
stabbed the air. "Oooooh, here I come!"

Harry stiffened, his body rigid as he waited for his niece to plunge
herself down onto his cock.

Crissy slammed down, impaling herself on his prick. "Ahhhhh!" Her head
snapped back and her face turned beet-red. "It's in me! Oooooh, Christ
in heaven! It's in me!"

Harry groaned. Her hot pussy muscles surrounded his prick, clutching
and pulsing against his cock shaft. Warm cream oozed out, flowing over
his cum-stuffed balls. "Crissy!" He jerked up, then dropped back, his
cock buried to the hilt.

Crissy twisted and screamed as she fucked herself blind on her uncle's
prick. Swaying, she leaned back, balancing herself on stiff arms as she
rotated her hips. "It's gonna rip through my belly!" she cried out.
"Oooooh, God. I'm going crazy!"

With Crissy wriggling her hips, Harry felt as if his cock were going to
break inside her pussy. He lunged up, jabbing his cock hard into her
cunt. Her screams drove him on and he lunged up again, drilling his
bent prick into the cushiony walls of her oozing cunt. She was
fantastic.

"Crissy," he groaned, slicing up into her pussy. "Gimme your tits." He
jabbed up again, stabbing her fuck hole.

Crissy struggled, brought herself up and ground her cunt down on his
cock. She jutted out her tits and leered at her uncle. "Pull 'em.
Squeeze 'em. Make 'em hurt." She lifted up, then slammed down, a lewd
expression on her face as she made her uncle grunt.

If she wanted it rough, Harry wanted to please her. He grabbed her tits
in his big hands and twisted the soft flesh until Crissy screamed in
pain. "Enough?" he rasped.

"Noooo!" she screeched. "More!" She slammed down on his prick again,
jerking her hips and tugging on his cock shaft with the greedy muscles
of her cunt.

Harry mauled her tits and humped up with his hips, his cock piercing
her spongy wet pussy. He yanked on her tits and felt her nipples burn
into his palms. His cock was throbbing, the steamy juice of her cunt
greasing his prick shaft, oozing out and coating his balls.

Crissy went wild on her uncle's cock. She leaned forward, mangling her
clit against his hard groin. "Oooooh, shit!" she squealed.

"You're rippin' my fuckin' tits off!" She slammed down, making her
uncle groan.

Harry released her tits, and he kneaded her quivering body until his
big hands spanned her wiggling hips. He jerked her back and forth, his
cock gliding in and out of her wet pulsing cunt. "Cream, honey. Cream
my fuckin' prick."

"Yessss, Uncle Harry!" she wailed, swinging her tits back and forth.
She dangled her small fleshy tits over his mouth and twisted her hips.
"Bite! Bite off my fuckin' nipples."

Harry lifted his head, latched his teeth sadistically onto one swollen
nipple and chewed. Crissy screamed. He lifted his ass from the rug,
fucking his cock into her cunt. Crissy howled.

"Yeahhhhh!" she cried out, the pain from Harry's chewing teeth fanning
the flames of passion raging in her cock-stuffed pussy. "I love it.
Oooooh, holy Jesus! I love it!"

Harry turned Crissy's creamy tits to a glistening red. Teeth marks
blotched her flesh. He sucked one nipple, chewing the tip, his hands
mauling her jiggling hips. His cock felt as if it were going to burst.
"Crissy," he groaned. "Cream!"

Crissy was bouncing crazily on her uncle's cock. Each fuck-stab felt as
if he were ripping into her belly. She jerked her shoulders and
screamed as Harry's teeth sunk into her sensitive nipple.

Harry grabbed his niece, held her lithe trembling body and rolled her
over onto her back. Grinning, he stared down at her face. "Now, you're
gonna cum, you crazy little bitch."

"Fuck me," she whimpered. "Fuck me." She lunged up and ground her clit
against his groin. "Make me cum all over your cock."

Harry eased his cock from her pussy, then jabbed forward, the head of
his prick spearing the hot scalding depths of her pussy. He did it
again, watching his niece writhe in ecstasy beneath him. "How's that,
Crissy?" he rasped, his voice ragged.

"Unnnn, more!" She clawed his shoulders and chest, her hips grinding
her clit against his groin. "Fuck me!"

Harry slammed her back onto the carpet. Crissy's screams followed each
vicious jab. Lust ate away at his brain and he fucked her young body
blindly, carrying them both to the peak.

"Harder! Harder!" she shrieked, battling her uncle, meeting his thrusts
with upward humps. "Oooooh, Uncle Harry!"

Crissy twisted and squirmed, her ass scraping against the nap of the
rug. She caught his rhythm, fucking herself insanely on his skewering
prick. Her small tits, still red and sore, jiggled with each gasping
breath she took. "I'm almost there!"

Harry obliged his niece's shrieking cries. He fucked into her pussy,
his cock a battering ram, slamming her twisting hot sizzling body back
onto the rug. "Crissy," he grunted. "Sweet ... Crissy!"

His cock swelled, ready to burst. It throbbed, the blood surging
through his prick shaft at the boiling point. His balls rumbled, ached
with the heavy load of cum that churned inside. "Cum!"

Twisting and squirming her hips, she clawed her uncle's arms. For a
second, she seemed to freeze, then went into her orgasm. "I'm cumming!
I'm creamin' ... Uncle Harry!"

Her climax ripped through her cunt as she slammed up against her
uncle's pounding groin. Cum gushed from the pulsing walls of her
exploding pussy, bathing Harry's hard throbbing cock. "I'm cumming!
Oooooh, keep fuckin' me!"

Harry rode the fury of his teenaged niece's orgasm. He fucked her, his
cock keeping her in a wild state of screaming bliss. The hot cum of her
pussy and the pulsing muscles that attacked his stabbing cock shaft
brought him to the edge. His balls erupted.

"I'm cumming," he roared, his deep ragged voice filling the room. "I'm
cumming!" Hot white cum spewed from his pisser, splattering the steamy
depths of Crissy's climaxing cunt. He jabbed, grinding her into the
carpet as another hot spraying stream of cum shot from his cock and
flooded his niece's fuck hole.

They slammed against each other, their pounding bodies slapping noisily
together each time Crissy lunged up and Harry slammed her back. Harry's
deep grunts blended with Crissy's wailing screams. His cum squirted
into her cunt, mixing with the gushing cum from her pulsing pussy
walls.

"Oooooh, I'm still cumming!" Crissy cried. The hot sticky mixture of
their cum gushed from her pussy. "Fuck me! Fuck me!"

Harry drove her twisting body back onto the floor. His cock sliced
through the oozing goo, fucking deep, his balls still churning out more
of his white thick jizz.

"Ooooh, I feel your cum!" she screamed. "I'm so full!" She went insane.
Her young lithe body wrenched and twisted beneath her uncle's powerful
frame. She clung to him with her arms, wrapped her legs around his
jabbing hips, and pounded his back with her heels.

"Keep making me cream!" She jerked up, slamming her young body against
his hard frame. Her hips bucked and rolled while her cunt exploded
again. "I'm still cumming!"

Harry's balls rumbled, his grunts turning to gasps as the child beneath
him tried to drain his body. His hips lunged forward and his arms gave
out. He crushed her beneath him, his cock fucking violently in and out
of her cunt. "Crissy! Crissy!"

Crissy threw herself against his pounding body. Another jolt of passion
caromed through her pussy. She stiffened and trembled, her entire body
feeling as if it were going to break. Her mouth opened, but nothing
came out except garbled gasps of joy. "Aghhh!"

Harry groaned, his prick and balls empty. His hot sexy niece had
drained him completely. He rolled off, his chest heaving as he sucked
air into his lungs.

"Ooooh, Uncle Harry," she purred. She squeezed her thighs together and
felt the cum squish inside her pussy.

"We better get dressed," Harry said. He sat up, reaching for his
clothes. "Your father will be home soon."

Crissy giggled. "We have plenty of time." She scrambled to her feet,
spread her legs and offered her uncle her hand. "Come on up to my
bedroom. I got a surprise for you."

"Better make it quick," Harry said, getting to his feet. "Your father
will bust my head open if he catches us."

Crissy took his hand, and she led him to the stairs. "I think you're
going to like my surprise."

Harry nodded, his gaze glued to her small wiggling ass as they climbed
the stairs. "Just make it quick, honey."

Crissy threw open the door to the bedroom, then led her uncle inside.
"Say hello to Daddy, Uncle Harry." She giggled and stepped aside.

"Holy Christ!" Harry groaned. He stood dead in his tracks, staring at
his brother, who lay on the bed between Tammy's parted thighs.
"Goddamn!"

Tammy waved, her face flushed and her tits jiggling. "Hi, Uncle Harry,"
she cooed, her hips squirming as her father licked his tongue up
through her pussy.

Douglas pulled his head out from between Tammy's long parted legs. He
leered at his brother, a wide lewd grin on his juice-stained face.
"Glad you could join us, Harry. These two hot little nymphos are too
much for just one man."

Harry groaned, his head reeling as he plopped into a chair. "I always
wondered if you were making it with your kids."

"We just started last night," Crissy giggled, dropping into her uncle's
lap. She rubbed her bare ass against his limp prick. "Let's watch. When
Daddy's done, you can fuck Tammy."

"Mmmmm, I'd love that," Tammy purred, her tongue flicking out over her
lips.

Douglas stroked his fingers through Tammy's wet pussy. Hot cream coated
his fingers. "How did you like making it with Crissy?" Douglas asked.

Harry fondled Crissy's small plump tits. "She's fantastic." He dropped
his hand between her thighs. "I sure would have liked bustin' her
cherry."

Douglas grinned. "No more cherries in this house. I took care of them
last night."

"Ooooh, Daddy," Tammy moaned. "Lick me off while I look at Uncle
Harry." She squirmed on the bed. "You wanna watch me cum, Uncle Harry?"

"I sure do, Tammy," he said, ogling the teenager's large tits. "Then
I'll fuck you."

"Ooooh, Uncle Harry," Tammy crooned. She humped up, her pussy pulsing
against her father's jabbing fingers. "Eat me, Daddy."

"Eat her, Doug," Harry groaned. "Prime her pussy for my cock."

Crissy squirmed on her uncle's lap and rubbed her tits against his
chest, her mouth showering his face with kisses. "Eat her, Daddy, then
I'll suck you off."

Douglas pulled his fingers from his daughter's cunt. "I'll make the
little nympho scream her fuckin' head off." "Yes, Daddy. Make me
crazy!" Tammy writhed on her back, her pussy dripping, overheated and
pulsing for her father's tongue.

Douglas forgot about Harry and Crissy. He turned around and stared at
Tammy's cunt. "Now where was I?"

"You had your mouth on my cunt and your tongue in my fuck hole," Tammy
said.

"Ummmm, I remember now." He dropped his head back between Tammy's
juice-stained thighs. The sweet succulent scent of her pussy attacked
his nostrils. "Nice tender cuntmeat."

"Ooooh, stop teasing me, Daddy," Tammy moaned. "Eat me!" Her green eyes
flashed, leering at her uncle. "I'm so hot for your cock, Uncle Harry."

Douglas plunged his tongue into his daughter's pussy, sucking the puffy
folds into his mouth and chewed. Warm sudsy pussycream flowed over his
face and into his mouth. He chewed harder, making his daughter wail
with pleasure.

"I'm creaming, Daddy!" Tammy wailed, her eyes fixed on her uncle. "I'm
creaming!" She humped, her tits jiggling, her ass squiggling on the
bed. "Ooooh, Daddy! You're chewing me up!"

Douglas' tongue flashed up through Tammy's wet seeping cunt gash. A
glistening flow of pussy-cream drenched his tongue, his face, and
dribbled down his neck. He swirled the buttery ooze around Tammy's
swollen cuntlips, then sucked deep. She was delicious. It wasn't every
man who had two young girls to fuck and suck.

Orgasms skimmed through Tammy's pussy. The inside of her cunt
contracted, gripping an imaginary cock. She rotated her hips and ground
her cunt into her father's mouth. "Ooooh, Daddy! I'm cumming all over
your face."

Douglas whipped his tongue over her clit, then sucked it into his
mouth. As he chewed, Tammy's squeals of pleasure grew louder. Holding
her clit with his teeth, he lashed the tip with his tongue.

Tammy was out of her skull. Having an audience drove her wild. "I'm
creaming!" she screamed. "Watch me!"

Douglas slipped his hands under Tammy's jiggling ass. He mauled her
flesh and chomped on her pussy. Cum flowed over his face, into his
mouth. He chewed harder, his head shaking from side to side, her clit
trapped between his teeth.

"Daddy! Daddy!" Tammy's big creamy tits were flopping. She grabbed
them, squeezed, then screamed as her father's teeth sunk into her
pulsing blood-engorged clit. "Aghhhh! Don't stop now, Daddy!"

Saliva drooled from her panting mouth. Her green eyes stared at Crissy
and her uncle. Her hips twisted, her ass humped, and she clawed the
sheet with her nails. "Oooooh, don't ever stop, Daddy!"

Douglas gnawed roughly on her clit. The taste of his daughter's pussy
was fantastic. He sucked her clit, plunged his tongue into her fuck
hole and felt her muscles try to capture him. He dug his blunt fingers
into the cheeks of her ass, found her crack and shoved one finger in.

"Aghhhhh, Daddy!" Humping wildly, Tammy bucked her hips, mashing her
cunt into her father's mouth as she jerked back and twisted on his ass-
stabbing finger. "I'm cumming, Daddy! Oooooh, I'm so fuckin' hot!"

She arched her back and shuddered. "Ahhh!" Another spasm racked her
young overheated body. She lifted her ass, jerked, then crashed back to
the bed. "Now, Uncle Harry."

Douglas pulled his cum-stained face away from his daughter's pussy.
"She's all yours, Harry. Fuck her to death."

Crissy leaped off her uncle's lap, and Harry hurried to the bed, his
cock stiff, throbbing for the hot red-haired cunt of his niece.

Douglas sat in the chair, allowing Crissy to lick his face clean.

Ten minutes later, Tammy and her uncle screamed as their bodies
exploded in orgasm. Douglas' voice joined in the chorus as Crissy's
gobbling mouth sucked his cum from his balls.

The two men spent the day in bed, sharing and enjoying Crissy and her
sister, Tammy.

Chapter 8


Crissy tingled with excitement as she stood in the shower, the hot
water beating against her tits. She lathered her pussy and ass with
sweet-smelling soap. "Ooooh, shit!" she gasped, the rough washcloth
rubbing against her sensitive clit.

She soaped her tits, sighing as her nipples swelled and ached for her
father's mouth. Leaning back against the tiled shower stall, she rinsed
her tits. Spasms rippled through her hot young body as she rinsed her
cunt and ass.

By the time she had stepped out of the shower and dried herself, she
was sizzling hot, her pussy frothy with juice. She padded into the
bedroom and looked at her naked body in the mirror.

Five days ago she had thought no man would want a child. She had
learned differently. Her father and uncle were crazy about her body and
couldn't get enough of it. "Mmmm," she purred. "Today, I'll have them
all to myself."

"Ooooh, God," she sighed. It was what she had wanted since recruiting
her uncle into the sex games with her father and sister. Tammy, she
knew, would be gone all day and her father and uncle were downstairs
waiting. It blew her mind.

She fluffed her blonde hair, then slipped a pair of black-lace
crotchless panties on. The lace tickled her exposed clit, sending goose
bumps up and down her spine. She slipped on the matching bra, the front
cut out so that her pink nipples could peek out erotically. She had
bought the sexy things yesterday, knowing she would have her father and
uncle to herself today.

To keep her surprise a secret, she pulled a robe on and left the
bedroom, tying the sash tightly around her slim waist as she hurried
down the stairs for an afternoon of fantastic sex.

Douglas was at the bar, sipping beer. Harry was on the couch, a drink
in his hand. Both turned to face Crissy as she strolled into the living
room.

"What took you so long?" Doug asked, leering hotly at his young
daughter.

"Yeah, honey," Harry said. "You getting yourself off in the shower?"

Crissy giggled, shivering under the ogling gazes of her father and
uncle. "I was washing my pussy and asshole," she said with a wink. She
joined her father at the bar, poured herself a stiff drink, then gulped
down half of it.

"Don't get drunk, baby," Douglas said. "It dulls the senses." He leaned
over and kissed his little daughter on the mouth.

Crissy sucked his tongue, then pulled away. "Just a little buzz," she
giggled. "It makes fuckin' around more fun."

"You hiding anything under that robe?" Harry asked, his hand on his
crotch.

"A surprise," she cooed, finishing her drink. She rubbed her father's
crotch. "Mmmm, you're hard already."

"I get hard every time you come into the room," Doug said. He finished
his beer and joined Harry on the couch.

"You hard, too, Uncle Harry?" Crissy purred. She stood in the center of
the living room, both men giving her their undivided attention.

"Hard as a rock, honey," he said. "You can check anytime you want."

"I will," she giggled. "Soon." Crissy swooned. Today was going to be
the best day of her life.

She parted her robe, giving the two horny men a peek at what was
underneath. Her heart was pounding and her pussy was on fire.

Doug gulped back the lump in his throat, his eyes fixed on his luscious
daughter as the robe opened completely. "Crissy. God, you're gorgeous."

Crissy licked her lips and slipped the robe off her shoulders. It
melted to the floor and she shuddered as tiny orgasms rippled through
her cunt.

"Damn," Harry groaned. "You're better than any woman, Crissy." His eyes
bugged out as he leered at his young sexy niece.

Crissy paraded around the room, modeling for her father and uncle.
"There's no crotch," she said, parting her legs. "You can fuck me with
my panties on if you want."

"My cock feels like a rock," Harry said, his eyes devouring his niece.

"Mine, too," Doug said, enjoying the sight of his beautiful daughter.

"I'm creaming," Crissy moaned. "God, the way you two are looking at me,
I can't help but cream."

She walked over to them. "Rip off my bra, Daddy." She took a deep
breath and waited.

Douglas grabbed the flimsy material and yanked. It came away in his
hand, baring her plump creamy tits. "Baby," he rasped.

She shook her tits and rubbed them against her father's hand. "Play
with 'em," she moaned, enjoying the attention of both men. "Pinch 'em."

Her father pinched her nipple. He grabbed her creamy flesh, pawing her
as his cock throbbed in his pants.

"You, too, Uncle Harry." She trembled as her uncle mauled her other
tit. It was great not having to share her father and uncle with Tammy.

She wiggled her hips, her blonde hair swishing across her face. "Make
me hot!" she gasped, tingling under the pawing hands of her father and
uncle. "Make me cream."

Harry kneaded one plump tit, his cock aching. "Come on, honey. Let's
get down to some action."

"Yeah, baby," Douglas said. He grabbed her panties in a fit of passion,
tearing them from her hot little body. The sight of her blonde-haired
pussy made his balls rumble.

"Ooooh, Daddy," she giggled, stepping back out of their pawing hands.
"Look what you've done." She turned around, jiggling the cheeks of her
ass.

Harry reached out, mauling her ass, his finger teasing at the crack of
her asshole. "I'm gonna fuck your ass today, Crissy."

Crissy gasped and shoved back, allowing her uncle's finger to invade
the tight narrow canal of her shitter. "Oooooh, I know! I know!"

She moved away and faced them. "Take off your clothes," she squealed.

Quickly, both men stripped, their long thick cocks stabbing out from
their hairy groins.

Crissy gasped, feasting her eyes on their cocks. Today, they both
belonged to her and she intended to savor every minute of it. She was
in her glory.

"I'm gonna suck you both off," she said, her blue eyes glowing with
passion. Crissy dropped to her knees, and she crawled to her father and
uncle. She straightened up, grabbed both pricks, one in each hand, and
stroked them. "Ooooh, so much cockmeat for me to eat."

Harry groaned as he felt her hot breath on the head of his bloated
cock. "Suck it, Crissy. Get it nice and hard for your asshole."

"Me, too," Douglas groaned, his hips jerking his prick through his
daughter's fist.

Crissy brought her mouth to her uncle's cock, closed her lips around
his bloated prick head and sucked. A thick drop of precum oozed into
her mouth and she smeared it over her lips and the head of her uncle's
prick. "You're seeping, Uncle Harry," she cooed, after taking her mouth
off his prick.

She brought her mouth back to her uncle's prick, then sucked deep,
enjoying his groans of pleasure. She squeezed her father's prick,
jerking his cockshaft with long sensuous strokes.

Douglas looked down at his daughter as she sucked his brother's prick.
It seemed like only yesterday that she was an innocent baby. Now she
was more of a woman than anyone he had ever known. "My turn," he
rasped. "Don't forget me."

Crissy popped her mouth off her uncle's prick. "I could never forget
you, Daddy." She tugged on both pricks, then squiggled over to her
father's cock and soaked it with her tongue. "Mmmm, delicious."

Douglas jerked, driving his prick into her mouth, his cockhead spearing
her throat.

Crissy sunk her teeth into his cockshaft. She pulled back, dragging her
teeth along his prick. "Get on the floor. It'll be easier for me."

Douglas dropped to the floor on his back, his prick stabbing the air.
"Come and get it, baby."

Crissy crawled over between his legs. She looked back at her uncle.
"Play with my pussy and ass," she purred, "while I suck Daddy."

"Whatever you want, honey. It's your party." Harry got down on the
floor, fondled his niece's ass and slim hips. He smoothed his hands
over her back and watched as she lowered her head to his brother's
prick.

Crissy gobbled the head of her father's cock into her mouth. One deep
noisy suck brought his bell-shaped cockhead into her throat. She didn't
stop. Gobbling voraciously, she took his prick to the root, stopping
only when her lips were mashed against the hair of his groin.

"Ahhh, baby," Douglas groaned. He lunged up, stabbing his prick into
her gullet. Each jab mashed his daughter's lips onto his groin.

Crissy scratched her nails like a cat over her father's hairy stomach.
She gulped on his lunging prick, breathing hard through her nose each
time he pierced her throat. She used her teeth and gnawed on his
drilling cockshaft.

Harry dipped his hands between Crissy's thighs, stroking his fingers
along the wet puffy gash of her pussy. Warm sticky cunt-cream flowed
over his hand. "She's soaked, Doug," he groaned. "A fuckin' furnace
ready to be fucked."

Crissy popped her mouth off her father's prick. "Not yet, Uncle Harry.
Finger me first. Make me crazy!" She tilted her head and gobbled on the
length of her father's prick.

Harry jabbed three fingers into his niece's cunt, then twisted his
fingers, the blunt tips gouging at the spongy walls of her fuckhole.

"Ahhhh!" Crissy gasped, her head snapping back. "Keep fingering me! My
asshole, too!"

Harry grinned and shook his head in amazement as he watched her writhe
under his jabbing fingers. "You got a great daughter, Doug." He jabbed
the sopping walls of her cunt, his prick aching to be in her ass.

Crissy was in heaven. "Ooooh, Daddy. Uncle Harry is making me crazy!"
She wiggled her hips and jammed back. "Tell him to finger my ass! Get
it ready for your cock, Uncle Harry!"

Doug reached down, grabbed her thick blonde hair and forced his prick
into her mouth. "Eat it, baby. Make me harder." He lunged up, fucking
her throat. Groaning, he collapsed back on the floor, twitching as her
teeth gnawed away at his throbbing cockshaft.

Crissy sucked, gnawed and whipped her tongue over and around his
cockshaft. She was in bliss as she enjoyed both her father and uncle.

Working her ass in tight jerky circles, she ground back at her uncle's
plunging fingers. She feasted on her father's prick, eager for her
uncle to ream her ass and prime it for his cock.

Harry jabbed a finger into Crissy's tight asshole. He twisted his
finger, gouging at the dry walls of her narrow shitter. He raked both
his niece's fuckholes, watching her hips jerk and twist as his cock
throbbed to take the place of his fingers.

Doug humped up, blindly fucking his prick in and out of his daughter's
throat. "Baby," he groaned. "Chew me! Aghhh!"

Crissy lost her mind. She sucked, sinking her teeth into her father's
cockshaft, shoved back and massaged her uncle's buried fingers with her
pussy and asshole muscles. Gasping moans gurgled deep in her throat.
Spittle dribbled from her mouth, down her father's prickshaft as she
bobbed her head rapidly up and down.

Harry pulled his fingers from her body and watched as she went into
spasms. Grinning lewdly, he took his juice-stained fingers and rammed
them into her ass, stretching her shitter wide, preparing it for his
long thick cock.

With three fingers stuffed in her ass, Crissy snapped her head away
from her father's cock. "Ayieeee!" she squealed. She stared at her
father, her face red with passion, her blue eyes glassy and dilated.
"He's fingering my asshole, Daddy!"

"Chew me, baby. Get me ready for your pussy."

"I'll prime her, Doug," Harry groaned. With his fingers still buried in
Crissy's asshole, he aimed his throbbing cock at her pussy. "Here,
Crissy, feed on this awhile." He jabbed, stabbing his prick in to the
root with one fast lunge.

Crissy almost collapsed. She dropped her head, swallowing her father's
prick into her mouth. She chewed, pulled back and gasped for air.
"Ooooh, Daddy. He's fuckin' me! He's fuckin' me!" She swooned, her blue
eyes glazed.

Harry ripped into her pussy, cunt juice greasing his prickshaft. It
flowed over his jabbing cock, bathing it, greasing it for her asshole.
"I think she's ready," he grunted, fucking his prick in and out of her
cunthole, his fingers plunging into her ass.

"I am ready!" Crissy gasped. "Ready for both your cocks." Dazed,
passion bubbling in her veins, she jerked forward, forcing her uncle's
cock and fingers to pop out of her cunt and asshole. "A double fuck!"
she cried. "Ooooh, God!"

Crissy began to shake. She stared first at her father's spit-soaked
prick, then at her uncle's cream-coated cock. She straddled her father,
then plunged down, burying his cock to the root. "Ahhhh!" Her cunt
contracted, gripping her father's prick. "Ooooh, Daddy! Daddy!"

Douglas grabbed his daughter's plump tits and squeezed. He pulled her
forward, his cock throbbing inside her steamy pussy. "Now, baby. It's
time you really learned what it's like to be a woman."

Crissy's eyes popped. Her mouth dropped open. "Yessss!" she wailed.
"Ooooh, yesss!"

Harry crawled behind his niece, his prick swinging, coated in the soupy
froth of her pussy. He grabbed her jerking hips and saw the base of his
brother's cock, the rest buried up inside her pussy. Warm cream oozed
out from her clinging cuntlips, down over Doug's balls.

"Hurry, Uncle Harry!" she sobbed drunkenly. She wriggled her ass, the
frantic action grinding her clit against her father's hard groin.

"Ooooh, Daddy! Make him hurry!" She rolled her hips from side to side,
twisting her clit against his groin. "Make him hurry!"

"Stop jerkin' your fuckin' ass," Harry groaned, his prick throbbing,
his cockhead seeping.

"Ooooh, Uncle Harry," she moaned. "I can't stop. Daddy's cock feels too
good!" She humped on her father's cock, her cunt muscles twitching
around his buried hard-on.

Harry pawed her hips, gripping them tightly in his hands, holding her
steady for a second. He jabbed, the head of his cock slicing through
the tight wrinkled crack of her asshole. He stabbed again, burying half
his cock in her shitter.

"Aghhhh!" Crissy jerked like a wildcat. "All of it! Every fuckin'
inch!" She shoved back, trying to capture his prick.

Harry slammed in again. The juicy cream of Crissy's pussy had done the
trick. His entire cock ripped into her asshole, his groin now flush
with her creamy asscheeks. He eased back, then drove forward again, his
cock fucking easily through the tight ring of her ass.

Crissy leered at her father's face. "Ooooh, Daddy! He's so deep! Ooooh,
it feels so good." She was drunk with passion, reeling under the double
pleasure of having both her uncle's and father's cocks buried up inside
her scalding body. "Oooooh! Fuck me! Fuck me!"

Doug mauled her tits, his cock throbbing up inside her pussy. "We're
gonna cream you, baby."

"I know, Daddy!" she gasped. "I know!" She was delirious. Spit drooled
from her mouth. "I love it!" It was fantastic and she couldn't wait
until their hot cum flooded her body.

Harry's head was spinning. His cock was buried to the hilt, the muscles
of her ass clutching his prickshaft like a hot vise. He parted her
creamy asscheeks and leered at his buried prick and the tight muscle of
her asshole wrapped around his cockshaft. He jerked back and felt her
muscles tug greedily to keep him buried.

"Put it back!" Crissy wailed hysterically. She worked her hips in a
flurry of frenzied circles. "Rip open my ass!"

Harry glanced down at his brother and nodded. He lunged forward,
driving his cock deep into her ass. At the same time, Douglas slammed
up, ramming his prick deep into her pussy. The two vicious jabs almost
split the screaming teenager in two. They fucked her violently, her
screams of joy filling the living room.

Crissy snapped her head from side to side, her blonde hair whipping
across her crimson face. "Ooooh, Daddy! Uncle Harry!" She absorbed
their hard punishing jabs, thrived on them, battled back, squeezing
every ounce of pleasure from her first double fuck. "Faster, Daddy!
Harder, Uncle Harry! Fuck me! Oooooh, God, I'm goin' crazy!"

Harry ravaged his niece's asshole with hard stabbing thrusts. His
balls, crammed with cum, slapped painfully against her quivering body.
He growled, his face twisting into a mask of sheer lust. He gritted his
teeth, his lips drawing back, giving his face a maniacal look. Harder
and harder, he plunged his prick in and out of her tight gripping
shitter, grunting with each powerful fuck-stab.

Douglas lunged up, slamming his prick into her hot pulsing pussy. With
his brother's prick jabbing her asshole, it made his daughter's pussy
that much tighter. His ass lifted off the floor as he groaned, then
thudded back as Crissy ground her clit against his groin. "Baby. Sweet
... Crissy!" He drilled his prick into her pussy as hot sudsy cream
greased his cockshaft and soaked his balls.

Crissy twisted and churned, bucking like a crazed animal between them.
She saw the passion in her father's face, then turned her head and saw
the same lust in her uncle's eyes. "Oooooh, God!" she cried, knowing
she was turning them both into madmen bent on ripping her apart.
"Ooooh, God in heaven!"

"Harder! Harder!" she screamed as they fucked her with fast demanding
thrusts. She went wild, her body jerking frantically under the
devastating attack. "Oooooh, Christ! I'm goin' out of my fuckin' mind!"

At the mercy of their stabbing cocks, Crissy found their rhythm, caught
the demanding pace and climbed screaming to the peak. "Ooooh, I'm
getting close! So damn fuckin' close!"

Douglas fucked his prick into her pussy, slamming in and out of her
gripping cunthole, his ass whacking into the carpet each time she
slammed back down on his cock. He held her tits, twisted them and made
her scream. He watched her face contort with lust. It swelled his cock,
rumbled the cum in his balls.

Harry thrust forward, driving Crissy against Douglas' lunging body,
mashing her clit on his groin. Each jab brought him closer to emptying
his balls. "Soon, my hot little bitch!" he roared, his prick engorged
with blood and throbbing in the narrow hole of her shitter. "Soon!"

Crissy was swooning. She felt the pressure of her climax mount in her
cunt. She felt each fuck-stab of their cocks. She felt them swell
inside her holes, stretching her beyond anything she had ever dreamed
of. It was going to happen and it blew her mind. "Oooooh, cream me!
Cream me!"

She stared at her father as his hands kneaded her tits. "Uncle Harry's
gonna cum, Daddy! He's ready to cream my ass!"

Harry let out a deep roar. His balls rumbled, then exploded. The hot
cum churning in his balls shot through his bloated cockshaft. It
squirted from his pisser like a hot geyser, flooding the narrow canal
of Crissy's shitter. "I'm cumming! Aghhhh, Crissy!"

"He's creaming me, Daddy! He's creaming my asshole!" Her virgin asshole
gulped at Harry's squirting cock. "He's squirting me, Daddy! Ahhhh ...
a ... hot ... enema!"

She bucked under her uncle's spurting cock, using her muscles to milk
his plowing prick. "More! More!" she screamed greedily. "Drown me!"

Harry was out of his skull. He pounded his niece with hard blind fuck-
stabs. His balls rumbled, then erupted again, spewing thick stringy
wads of jizz into her asshole. "Crissy!" he bellowed, his cum greasing
her shitter for faster speed. "I'm creaming!"

Harry lashed at her twisting body, his balls sore as they whacked her
ass. He went faster, his cum keeping her asshole slippery. He held her
hips and fucked, his prick constantly squirting her ass as he grunted.

Crissy crashed forward, her clit a mangled mass of raw meat. She
twisted and ground her clit against her father's groin. Spasms racked
her body. "Cum, Daddy! Cream my pussy!"

She worked her ass in quick frenzied jerks, keeping her uncle's cock
buried and squirting hot cum into her asshole. She used her cunt
muscles to make her father cream her pussy. Hot contractions swept
through her cunt and she felt her father's body stiffen and knew he was
ready. She was, too.

"Daddy! Daddy!" An orgasm erupted deep in her cunt. "I'm cumming!
Creaming!" She bucked as her orgasm caromed through her cock-stuffed
cunthole. "Cum! Cum!"

Douglas saw the lust twist his daughter's face. He felt the fury of her
climaxing cunt against his fucking prick. He glanced at his brother
fucking her ass and enjoyed the shuddering spasms that shook his
daughter.

Douglas lunged up. His cock exploded. Hot cum spewed from his pisser.
Thick globs flooded her cunt. "I'm cumming, baby! I'm cumming!"

"Ahhhh!" she wailed, her cunt filling with cum, mixing with her own hot
creamy juices. His cum squirted into her pussy, triggering another
explosive orgasm in her. Thrashing and screaming, she climaxed again.

"I'm cumming all over your cock, Daddy!" She bucked. "Oooooh, I'm
creaming!"

Douglas' cock blasted out thick wads of cum. He flooded her overheated
pussy, mixing his sticky cum with her bubbling juices. Squishy noises
blended with her cries of joy each time he fucked his cock through her
cum-stuffed cunt.

Their thick spurting cocks slammed into Crissy's climaxing body. They
fucked her, grunting and panting as she creamed. Two thick cocks
sprayed her fuckholes with cum. Jizz oozed from her pussy and seeped
from her jiggling ass. Cum trickled down her crack, coated both sets of
thick-skinned balls.

"I can't stop cumming, Daddy," she shrieked at the top of her lungs.
"Oooooh, I can't stop!" Her head snapped from side to side, her blonde
hair lashing across her father's face and her own. She twisted her
shoulders. Her father's hands pulled and mauled her tits. Her clit,
mashed against her father's groin, was raw and pulsing, sending hot
spasms through her cunt.

Harry matched his niece's bucking jerks. He lunged hard, fucking his
prick into her ass at a reckless pace. His balls rumbled, their spewing
load of jizz almost gone. He mangled the soft flesh of her hips and
plowed her hot body with all the strength he possessed.

Harry's back stiffened. He shuddered, gulping for air, his chest
heaving. His cock was buried to the hilt, her ass keeping him a
prisoner.

"Don't take it out!" she screeched, her hips rotating frantically. She
wrenched her body and slammed her pussy down on her father's cock,
grinding her clit on his groin. Another orgasm rifled through her
pussy.

Harry was exhausted. He dropped back, his cum-coated cock popping from
her tight ass. He saw his cum dribbling from her ass. "Jesus," he
rasped, falling back on the floor to watch her ride her father.

With her asshole empty, Crissy rode her father's cunt-splitting cock
with wild abandonment. Quick jerks and frenzied twists had her howling
as Douglas spurted wad after wad of cum into her pussy. Her head
twisted, her eyes glazed, she stared at her uncle while she continued
to grind her clit on her father's groin.

Tammy came in the door and froze in her tracks. Her eyes took in the
scene at a glance. It blew her mind. "Jesus," she mumbled, stripping
off her clothes as quickly as possible. She joined her uncle on the
floor, saw his spent cock, knew where it had been, and gobbled it into
her mouth.

Crissy was too busy cumming to notice. She pounded her body against her
father's, almost tearing her tits from her chest in her crazed wild
contortions. "Daddy! Daddy!" she wailed.

Douglas arched his back. "Baby!" His hands slipped to her gyrating
hips. He drove his hips up, fucking her cunt as his strength began to
ebb. "Ooooh, baby!"

Cum gushed from her cushiony pussy walls. It drenched his prick.
"Daddy!" She hammered her body onto his, then collapsed, panting and
drooling, her mouth fused to his neck.

Douglas held his daughter as she trembled in his arms. "You're a woman
now," he whispered, stroking her back.

Tammy pulled her mouth from her uncle's cock and she crawled over to
Crissy and her father. She pushed Crissy off and attacked her father's
cock, sucking him clean.

Crissy fell back onto the floor, cum oozing from both her fuck holes.
She sighed, stared blankly up at the ceiling.

Tammy finished with her father, then turned her attention to Crissy.
"Now you!" she gasped.

"Oooh, no," Crissy moaned, but it was too late. Tammy was already
between her legs, sucking her father's cum from her pussy.

Tammy's mouth gobbled hungrily, drawing out every wad of her father's
cum from Crissy's pussy. Crazed with what she had seen, she rolled
Crissy over, attacked her ass and feasted on her uncle's cum as it
oozed from Crissy's ass.

Finished with them all, she sat up. "Now, it's my turn."

Both men groaned.

Crissy staggered to her feet. The day had been perfect. She didn't care
if Tammy enjoyed the same pleasures. She giggled, blew them all a kiss
and left. Today, she had really become a woman.


                                 The End

Me, the beach, the cinema and Melissa

Rob-ed01 on Sex Stories

My name is Joanna, I'm from central England, I'm about 5'6 tall, with shoulder length dark hair, hazel or green eyes, an English size 10 in clothes, with 34 'b' cup boobs. I was on holiday in West Australia, visiting my brother and for the first week or so, nothing out of the ordinary had happened.

I woke up that morning, with everything as normal, my brother and wife had left for work way before I'd woken up, the sky was its usual clear blue, the sun beating down as the temperature rapidly raced to thirty degrees. With nobody else home I got out of bed around 9.00 am, not bothering to put anything on, I sauntered into the kitchen naked and made my breakfast. I always preferred to be nude, it made me feel free and uninhibited, also a touch horny, so allowed me easy access to my
Read More
body, giving me freedom to touch myself all over and to eventually masturbate. After breakfast, I headed into the shower, feeling somewhat aroused by the water cascading down my body and me washing myself but managed to resist the urge to masturbate. I wanted to get to the beach and then that afternoon I'd planned to go to the cinema and watch a film.

I put my bikini in my beach bag with a towel, slipped on a sarong and got into my car to head off to the beach. I hadn't  decided which beach to go to but passed my usual haunts, feeling a bit daring, I pulled up at the nude beach, reached onto the back seat and grabbed my bag, opening it to look for my bikini. What was I thinking about, I was at the nude beach, I wasn't going to need anything to wear. My heart was pounding with excitement, this was a first for me as I locked the car and headed down the sandy path to the beach.

The further down the path I walked, the wider it became, until I found myself on the beach, being the middle of the week, it was fairly quiet, just a sprinkling of people here and there, a good day for me to begin bearing my entire body for the world to see. Most people said that I had a nice body and as I swam a fair bit and went a run most days, I'd say that I was in good shape, a flat stomach, nice legs I thought, my breasts could have been bigger but then they wouldn't hold their rounded shape as well as they do, my stomach was flat, which moves down to a cleanly shaved pussy, something I'd been shaving even since my pubes began to grow.

I found a spot within twenty metres of the sea, taking my towel out of my bag, lying it neatly on the sand, before kneeling on it, looking around nervously to see if anybody was watching me. I took in a deep breath and took off my sarong, putting it in my bag, leaving me naked for all to see as I sat down looking out to sea. I squirted a streak of sun tan lotion down each leg, rubbing it slowly all over each leg, from my toes right up to my thighs. Holding out the fingers of my left hand, I squirted out some more lotion, this time rubbing it from my neck downwards, as I circled each breast, in a way similar to when I was about to masturbate, I noticed that my nipples were fully hardened and as  I applied the lotion couldn't help letting out a pleasurable moan, my arousal making them very sensitive to the touch. More lotion was put on to my body, over my stomach and finally over my pubic mound and pussy, I wasn't that surprised to find that my clit was hard and pussy soaked by my excitement.

I lay down and tried to relax, trying to ignore how turned on I was but as the sun beat down on my naked flesh, it was virtually impossible to refuse giving my body the attention it was desiring. In an act of desperation I decided to go for a swim in the sea, so, standing up I walked down towards the calm azure blue waters of the Indian Ocean, until step by step I moved into the sea, with every stride forward the water became deeper, cooling my warm body. As the water rose to a level just below my pussy, I dived forward, immersing myself completely before jumping up five metres further into the ocean, so able to stand neck deep in water. As I stood cooling down, I noticed there were more people on the beach, all naked, seemingly unaware of their public nudity or anybody else and realised that I was as anonymous as they were, so decided to return to the sand and go for a walk to dry off.

Standing on the shoreline, letting the water drain off my body, I felt so alive and was growing in confidence, so turned and began walking slowly along the waters edge, making an effort not to look too obvious as I eyed the naked bodies lying on the sand. It wasn't as though they were all gorgeous, the guys had a certain appeal as I looked at their flaccid cocks lying innocently in the warm sunshine but then I became aware that I was seeing some of the females in a new light, almost as though I wanted to touch them sexually, my god, what was wrong with me. I walked for about thirty minutes before making an about turn, to head back to my towel and to sunbathe.

Finally I arrived back at my towel, which was now surrounded by other nude sun worshipers but by now, I didn't care as I lay down on my back and closed my eyes, allowing the sun to cares my body. It wasn't long before I'd totally relaxed, almost forgetting where I was, my nipples soon sprung to life again as my thoughts wondered what it would be like to touch another girl or to be touched by one. My pussy started to moisten as I started to lose myself in my fantasy, of being kissed passionately, being kissed and licked slowly down my body, my breasts being sucked, nipples licked, bitten and pulled, all by another woman. By now, my mind was a blur, my body aroused to its limits, mouth open as my tongue licked my lips seductively, my legs opening as my feet drew closer to my bum and the fingers of my left hand creeping slowly from the towel by my body, up onto my stomach towards my aching vagina.

I was now on auto pilot as my right hand started to caress my breasts, gently as first, teasing my nipples with the tips of my fingers and thumb but as the sensitivity of my nipples intensified, my action turned to pinching and pulling. My left hand was tracing circles on my mound, working slowly towards my pussy lips, waiting for my legs to open fully and allow better access. Once on my lips, my fingers could move effortlessly up and down them because by then they were well lubricated from my growing arousal. It wasn't long before two fingers had prised apart my swollen lips, starting their journey deep inside my pussy and to find an intoxicating rhythm in and out in long slow strokes. My breathing soon became more and more erratic as my hips began to buck against my hand, I was close to the point of no return, biting my lip to control my moans but then my fingers began working my clit, I was ready to explode. I could feel my pussy contracting hard as my orgasm neared, opening my eyes, seeing the blue sky above me, the reality of what I was doing and where I was, suddenly hit me but it was too late. My body froze, I was unable to breath, this was it! In a sudden release my orgasm hit, hips thrusting high off the towel, unable to contain my moans, I let out a long satisfied audible groan of pleasure as a second and third wave of climax left my body, until finally I started to relax.

I felt very self conscious all of a sudden but thought I'd create even more attention to myself if I was to get up and leave immediately, so tried to relax an enjoy this opportunity to soak up the sun. I lay there for about thirty minutes before having one final dip in the sea and walking naked to the car, once there I put on my sarong and headed home.

Once I arrived back home, I rang the cinema to check on the availability of a gold class seat (seats where you can put up your feet and have a drink before hand in the gold class lounge), had a bit of lunch and a quick shower. What should I wear, I thought as I entered my room? I picked out my white dress, which had a multicoloured paint splattered pattern on it, fastened with press studs up the front and came down to a point just above my knees. I rarely wear a bra, so didn't even consider picking one out but wearing a white dress, it meant that either my undies had to be small and light coloured or I should consider not wearing any. Eventually, I decided on a white thong, which tied nicely on my hips with little bows. I was ready to head off to watch the film.

I arrived at the cinema with thirty minutes to spare before the film was scheduled to start, so, after buying my ticket, headed up to the gold class lounge to have a drink and maybe get something to eat. People were sitting in little groups chatting amongst themselves and once I'd got a cup off coffee and a chocolate bar, I found a seat and table where I could relax and read a gossip magazine which I'd picked up on the way in. A few minutes passed, with me becoming engrossed by and article about some soap star, when I heard a voice say,
    "Were you at the beach this morning?"
Standing in front of me was a gorgeous blonde girl, I'd say, in her early twenties, piercing blue eyes, a little shorter than me, maybe 5'4, in an extremely short skirt, showing off her tanned shapely legs and a tight top, clinging to every luscious curve of her breasts, which I'd noticed were bra free.

Before I could answer, the cheeks of my face started to burn with embarrassment and I stammered out a reply,
    "Yes I was!"
She blurted out in excitement,
    "Oh wow! I thought it was you but wasn't sure, you looked drop dead gorgeous on the beach, not that you don't look as good now, god you do. Do you mind if I sit down, I'm here by myself and it looks like you are too. I'm Melissa by the way."
I smiled and gestured for her to sit down, trying not to die from embarrassment. She was so bubbly, it was     impossible not to like her and yes, I'd say I fancied her straight away.
    "Was it your first time on a nude beach today?" She asked.
    "Yes it was, how did you guess? My name's Joanna by the way."
    "Well, when I got to the beach, I saw you in the water, it looked as though you were trying to hide but then when you were walking, you looked like you relaxed. But then when you lay down, it was like you were very aware of your nudity and couldn't stop being excited."
I was going more red by the second, realising that she had been watching me but I was also very excited knowing that she'd noticed me and had said I was gorgeous, it didn't deter me that we were both the same sex, in fact, it excited me more.
    "How long were you watching me for", I asked nervously.
Giggling, she replied,
    "Oh, all the time, you looked so pretty and I liked that you'd got so turned on and played with yourself, it was incredibly erotic!"
    "Oh my god! I cannot believe you saw me, I can't believe I actually did that but you know, wow, was I horny or what!"
Melissa was laughing as I talked to her about the beach and what happened, I hadn't for one second even considered what her sexual preference might be or dared to tell her what I was thinking about as I'd masturbated on the beach.
    "Hey! What seat are you in Joanna?"
I looked down at my ticket.
    "Fifty seven C!"
    "No way! I'm in fifty seven D. How cool is that, it must be fate or  something, first seeing you this morning, now here and even in the seat next to you. COOL!"

Melissa's enthusiasm was infectious, I don't think we stopped talking, even as we walked side by side into the cinema we were chatting away, right up until the screen curtain drew away from the screen, when we agreed to see each other after the film. I was so happy as I kicked off my sandals and settled back to watch the film but never really got interested in watching the film and began thinking how good it was to have met this girl. Then I started to wonder, why she thought I had looked drop dead gorgeous on the beach, why she thought I looked so erotic as I masturbated, did she actually FANCY me and why didn't I hate the thought of that. In fact, I paused in my thoughts, my nipples are rock hard and oh my god, I was turned on, my thong was definitely wet. I casually looked at her, silhouetted in the dimly lit theatre, reflected colours from the film dancing over her sweet face, glancing lower, I couldn't help smiling, noticing her nipples, now obvious through her top, her skirt had ridden up as she sat cross legged, revealing her undies to my view.

I decided to look elsewhere, looking at Melissa was only turning me on more and was finding it hard to resist the temptation yearning for satisfaction between my thighs. In the seat immediately to my right was a guy, who given the light I thought was maybe, fifteen or sixteen, obviously there with his girlfriend as they were holding hands. This is no good, I thought, I must watch this film and get my mind off sex. For the next fifteen or twenty minutes I managed to start concentrating on the film and was actually feeling pretty normal again.

Hearing shuffling from the seat to my right, I turned slowly to see what was going on. The guys girlfriend was now sitting on his lap, legs curled up as if he was part of the chair and were locked together kissing passionately. Seeing them together inflamed my desires once more, his hand up under her top, obviously caressing her breasts, my own nipples now hard again, my pussy becoming wet again as I saw that her skirt was hitched up, revealing all of her legs and tiny knickers. I was transfixed as I watched their passion develop, seeing her hand disappear between her body and his, oh my god, she was undoing his shorts and the hand that had been working her breasts was now pushing her knickers down her thighs, past her knees, allowing her to kick them on the floor.

I was fully aroused after seeing that, a deep tingling sensation in the depths of my pussy and was almost unaware that I'd undone the bottom half of my dress, my legs parted slightly as fingers massaged my pussy through the fabric of my thong. Seeing the couple to my right was the catalyst sparking me to want to satisfy myself but as in the morning my thoughts were now of something that before that day, had never entered my head, more specifically, they were of Melissa making love to me, our two bodies wrapped together grinding hard as we kissed. My eyes closed as my breathing became shallower, my fingers working my pussy with greater intensity, legs opening wider. Another stud on my dress popped open as I moved my hand upwards, searching for the waistband of my underwear, fingers and hand slipping under the fabric of my thong getting closer to my pussy lips, my heart pounding as my desire increased.

I was in my own little world, the thoughts of Melissa touching me, was driving me over the edge, my eyes were closed, mouth open, tongue writhing between my lips. I felt the top stud of my dress open and seconds later a second revealed more of my body to the world. I could feel a hand slip inside my dress, over my right breast, cupping my flesh tenderly. Fingers and thumb moved seductively to my hardened nipple before teasing gently, pinching, twisting, pulling, to the point where it added to my stimulation, sensitising my breasts to their maximum.

The fingers of my right hand were now deep inside my vagina, finding a steady long rhythm in and out, my breathing extremely erratic verging on moaning, the nails of my left hand digging into the chair as the pleasurable feelings grew inside me. It suddenly dawned on me, who's hand was on my breast, so, nervously opened my eyes. Looking right, towards the couple, thinking it may have been one of them, it was obvious that they too, only had eyes for what they were doing, the girl now straddling his body, moving on and off his cock. Turning my head left, Melissa smiled lovingly at me as her fingers worked harder on my nipple. I beamed a return smile but the knowledge that it was her caressing me sent me over the edge, as my pussy contracted, I let out a long groan as the first wave of orgasm hit, surge after surge followed, before my body could relax.

Melissa got up and moved to stand at the end of my chair, my heart pounding with excitement and anticipation, what was she going to do, oh my god is she going to kiss my, my mind was racing, I was so nervous. She was smiling at me, looking deep into my eyes as she reached forward to pull me further down in the chair, then standing up again, her hands disappeared behind her, seconds later, her skirt fell to the floor, her fingers pulling at the waistband of her panties, easing them over her hips, allowing them to slip effortlessly down her silky smooth sexy legs. Bending forward, she took hold of my dress and with a cheeky grin on her face, a swift tug from either of her hands opened my dress fully. Without hesitation, she reached for the bows of my thong, pulled at them, letting the fabric exposed my sodden pussy to her.

I was paralysed with nervous anticipation as she straddled my open legs, then sitting between them, her pussy millimetres from mine, her legs now wrapping around me easing our bodies together. I let out a gasp as our pussy's touched,  melting into each other, gripping her top, she lifted it over her head, leaving her nude on top of me. Her hands, lead by the seductive touch of her fingers, traced up my stomach, over my breasts, up to my shoulders, pushing my dress off and down my arms, her face, her lips, now only centimetres away from mine, I could feel her warm breath. She continued to move onto me, I felt my hard nipples pressing into her warm soft flesh and her nipples into mine. My hips, involuntarily, began to grind against her rhythmically. She paused as the lips of our mouths touched for the very first time, soft and moist as they pressed harder together, lips parting nervously, almost in hope but then as I pushed my tongue forward, hers was there to meet mine. We were kissing, the passion igniting like a raging inferno, our hips grinding together harder and faster with each passing moment. My fingers digging in to the flesh of her arse cheeks, pulling her as close to me as I could et her. My legs opened wider, which invited her onto me further, my hardened clit now caressing her and then as she shifted slightly, almost expertly her clit touched mine.

Still kissing, we moaned as our clitoris's sent our passions higher, I could feel my orgasm building as my vagina started to contract. Our kiss parted as our bodies froze, neither of us able to breath, I felt her push hard onto me, a sudden rush of moisture leaving her into me, my god, she was cuming but before I could gather my thoughts, my own body  climaxed in ecstatic orgasm, over and over, wave after wave of pleasure, wetness drenching the seat below us. We began to relax, offering each other little kisses, happy to cuddle the other for a  while.

After what seemed a lifetime, Melissa said,
    "We had better get dressed Joanna",
I merely smiled and nodded in agreement, pulling on my dress and fastening the studs, never taking my eyes off her, watching her dress. I picked up my thong and put it into my bag, giggling as the film credits scrolled up the screen and theatre lights switched on. Taking Melissa's hand we walked down the slope out of the cinema. The couple who had been sitting to my right past us, the girl looked at us and said,
    "Good film, wasn't it, you two looked to have enjoyed it as much as  we did!"
The four of us laughed, cuddling our respective partners while walking towards the exit.

As we reached my car we kissed passionately before, still cuddling, Melissa looked at me and said,
    "Do you want to follow me home, we have to get to know each other better, I want us to be lovers!"
What else could I said, I'd known her less than three hours, had the best sex and orgasms of my life so far and felt so at ease with her, I didn't want to let her go, so, it was off to Cottesloe for me.

any feedback please at
                                 joannacharles@hotmai.com

Aunt Joyce turns into a slut for Pounder

sugaray on Animal Stories

Aunt Joyce had gone from a simple older woman that was content with sitting at home, reading a book to where she wass now.  There is where I came along, with my fertive desire to stick my hard rod into her  honey pot.  I had been wanting to fuck her for the longest time, but how do you approach your aunt and ask her if she would like to have sex?  I can't think of a way; but the opportunity presented itself and I went for it.  When I first slid my  hard cock inside her unused pussy, she didn't know what to feel.  At first, I'm sure that it hurt- with her vagina not having any action for many years.  But then, I suppose all the feelings that she used to have whenever her husband used to plow through her cunt, came back to her.  You could tell the

Read More
moment that it started feeling good, because she began to shiver with every lunge of my dick inside her.  Then, she began to let her emotions take control of her body, and she began to move her large body in order to meet my undulating cock.

She shouted that she couldn't believe that she had missed this feeling for all these many years.  But, then something happened that would change both of our lives- a dog named Pounder.  I had this crazy and wild idea that I would love to see Aunt Joyce getting fucked by a dog.  Just the thought of this possibility gave me the hardest erection that I have ever had.  "Yeah, I would love to see her being fucked by a rapid fire dog's cock- with it banging her ass as fast as he could go", I thought to myself.

Well, I devised a plan where I would be in the bed with Aunt Joyce, fucking away and bring Pounder onto the bed and let him take over my place in her fucking.  This plan did more than work- it screwed up our lives.  In the process of fucking her, I patted my leg to signal Pounder to hop up on the bed- which he obeyed to the tee.  As I quickly moved over, Pounder began humping Aunt Joyce with a desire that I had not ever seen.  At first, she  knew that something was up, and, in fact, scolded Pounder to get off her, but to no avail, because Pounder just kept up his rapid fucking of Aunt Joyce's large pussy.

After several lunges from Pounder, she began to feel the incredible sensation of having  a 10 inch dog's cock sliding quickly in and out of her vaginal entrance.  Aunt Joyce began to shout at the top of her lungs, "FFUUCCKKK  GODDAMNIT!!!!  UUUUHHHH  AAAAHHHHH He's so big inside me!!- but it feels so good!!  This is the best feeling that I have ever had!!  OOOHHH  SSSHHHIIITT- I can feel his cock getting hot.  I think he is going to cum in me.  OOOHHH YYYEEEAAYY  Here it comes- FUCK, his cum is

hot!!!  OOOHHH YYEEAAHH!!!

With those few words, Aunt Joyce had just become a dog lover.  She got to where she would no longer fuck me, but wanted Pounder, instead.  I had no one to use my horny prick on, except on the floor, while using my hand.

Each day, you could hear Aunt Joyce and Pounder fucking like there was no tomorrow; however Pounder got to where he wanted to fuck Aunt Joyce almost all the time.  They would have just completed ttheir sex act, and then 15 minutes later, Pounder would come over to her and begin sniffing her crotch and trying to get her to get on all fours so that he could fuck her from behind.  Finally, Aunt Joyce began telling Pounder "NO"; but this didn't sit well with him.  He would try again, and again she would turn him down.  Finally, Pounder would hop down and sort of growl at her, because of her rejection.

Aunt Joyce would ask me how to solve the situation, and all I would do is laugh and tell her that it was her problem and she had no one to blame but herself.  Of course, this pissed her off; but I was just standing aside and letting her deal with it herself.  It got to be somewhat ugly, with Pounder sometimes getting some pussy and other times being told "NO".  He got to where that if he was told "NO", he would begin to bellow this low growl and bare his teeth.

Aunt Joyce got to where she was afraid to turn him down, but there were times that she was so red and sore from Pounder's fucking her that she had to say, "NO"  The situation got to where Pounder would  bite her on the neck and claw her with his front feet if she turned him down.  He was becoming extremely violent, and she didn't know what to do; she was afraid to turn him down for fear of getting really hurt.

The next day, the door bell rang and to Aunt Joyce's surprise, it was her daughter, Dawn.  She had not seen her in almost two years, so both of them were excited to be together.  Dawn (who was 38) was down to spend a couple of weeks with her mom.  At first, Aunt Joyce was tickled to have her daughter home with her, but then she realized the major problem.  What about Pounder?  

He will want to continue his fucking and for God's sake, she couldn't let Dawn know what had been going on between them.  That's all she needed- to tell her daughter that she had become a dog slut.  That would go over well.  Maybe if she just closed and locked the door to her bedroom, maybe that would half-way take care of the problem for tonight.

At 11:00, we all went to bed, with me sleeping in a separate room, Aunt Joyce, in another room, and Dawn, by herself in the third bedroom.  Just as I was about to doze off, I heard Pounder howling about the fact he could not get into Aunt Joyce's bedroom.  He was making an extreme pest of himself, with all the howling and growling and whining he was making outside the door.

Dawn spoke up, "Mom, why don't you let Pounder in your room, so we can all get some sleep?"

Aunt Joyce couldn't tell her daughter the truth, so she told Dawn that he was such a pest and would be hopping on and off her bed, and would be constantly bothering her.

"Well, at least some of us would get some sleep", Dawn replied."

"You don't understand", Aunt Joyce    said.

About that time, Aunt Joyce heard Dawn get up and open her door.  Pounder happily ran into Dawn's room and began wagging his tail.  It seemed that everything was back to normal, but boy was I wrong.  Within a few minutes, I could hear Dawn's voice asking Pounder, "What do you think you are doing.  Get your nose out of my crotch!!  Stop licking me there!  You need to get off this bed.  What is that thing?  OH MY GOD!! What a cock!! NO NO !! Don't put that thing in me!  OWW  That hurts.  STOP THAT!!  QUIT! GET OFF ME!!"

Next, you could hear a low moaning coming from Dawn.  "OOOHH OOOHHH- OH YEAH!!"

You could hear Dawn's voice as it got louder and more excited.  I had to slip out of my room and see what was going on with Dawn and Pounder.  I got out of bed and eagerly approached  her bedroom and, with it being dark, I had to allow my eyes to get adjusted to the darkness.  As my eyes began to adjust to the darkness, there was Dawn on all fours, with the dog behind her, with his ass firing his swollen cock into Dawn's aching pussy.  She was, by now, screaming at Pounder, to fuck her hard- that it felt so good.  With Pounder's every lunge, Dawn would back her ass up so that she could feel the entire length and girth of his cock.

While I was standing there watching, Dawn saw me, but she couldn't speak- her body was shaking and trembling so bad.  The only words that I could make out was, "Please don't tell."

I thought to myself, "You're going to fit right in."       

   

The Bath

Blazerr501 on Incest Stories

It was a satruday not unlike any other saturday in mid June, the weather warm and fresh, the blossoms of summer just getting under way, everything green and bright. I was merely twenty then, still living at home with my parents and my two sisters. Darla was a year older and attending a local university. Liz was two years younger, and just finishing high school. I was in my second year of a university across state, and was home visiting for the summer. It was then that a friend of my parents was about to get married, and i had just finished a morning five mile jog, and felt a nice hot bath would be just what would was needed for my aching muscles. I came in, quiet as i could, as I figured that Darla was still asleep, after spending a late night out with her friends. My parents were go

Read More
ne for the day really, helping to prepare for their friends wedding day, and Liz had gone with them. So then and there would be a good time for a nice quiet bath, afterwhich I could get ready to go to the ceremony. I quietly went thru the house, and undressed in the guest room that was my room while I visited. Taking only the bathrobe that I was wearing, I went in and started the water, checking the temperature that i wanted...as hot as i could tolerate. I knew it was going to feel so good once I was soaking in it. I thought for a moment that some music might be a good thing, but then again thought of my sleeping sister and thought differently about it. I sat on the edge of the tub, waiting patiently for the water to fill it, letting my thoughts wander aimlessly. Soon enough the tub was ready...I slipped off the robe and sank into the hot tub. My muscles seemed to immediately soak up the heat of the water, and I relaxed, leaning back and let reality melt away.

I must have dozed off for a brief period, what just seemed like a few minutes...when i woke to hear the door to the bathroom open. In stepped my sister, Darla, wearing a sheer sleeveless top, and a kind of net like skirt, embroidered with beads and lace. Her long dark hair was down around her shoulders and she just stood there staring at me.

"Yes?" I asked, my voice felt unsteady but I tried not to let it slip. Darla and I have always been somewhat close, enjoying each others company when times were that we were both bored and there was nothing else to do. Trivia games, going to movies or some play at a local community college. Nothing ever happened between us, and I never even gave it any consideration...until that moment when she stepped thru the bathroom door, looking as sexy as any guy could imagine. Her nipples poked through the fabric of her top, as she brought her arms up and crossed them just under them, lifting them slightly.

"Liz just called...she said that we're needed at the church as soon as possible." she said, continuing to stare. She was not looking anywhere near my eyes.

"Well let me finish up my bath real quick and then you can have the bathroom." I said, offering what seemed the most likely plan I could think of at the moment.

"There isn't time for that." she said, stripping off her clothes. "We'll just have to share your bath to save time. It seemed they needed us as soon as possible." I watched her as she lifted off her top, exposing a pair of the most exquisite breasts imaginable. Not too big, not too small, full and firm, her nipples standing erect. She then slipped off that braided skirt, standing fully nude in front of me. She turned to lay her clothes across the sink, giving me an ample view of her sweet round ass. All this time my cock had surged to attention, but ached and throbbed when she turned at that moment. Without hesitation she slipped into the water, facing me. The tub was certainly large enough for the both of us. She eyed my hard shaft, smiling. "Nice hard on there." She said, my eight inch shaft bobbing back and forth in the water. She wasted no time, taking a washcloth and some soap and began washing herself...all it seemed i could do was sit and watch in wonder. She proceeded without so much as batting an eyelash, and other than an occasional slight smile, she seemed to bath as if i weren't even there. Then she shifted and turned around, her backside to me. I watched in rapture as that ass swung around, so close to my face, i could make out her pussy easily. She settled back into the water, the cheeks of her ass pressing against the tip of my cock. "Wash my back please?" she asked. She handed me the washclothe and the soap and i set about lathering the washclothe, and soon was sliding it along her back. I worked up around her neck, and she bent her head forward slightly, as I worked around and up and down...then slid it down her shoulders, and then down her arms. I could hear her moan softly as my hand moved on to a new area. I dont know why I did it, but before I could stop myself, my hands were around her front, sliding up across her breasts, pulling her back against me...letting my cock slip between her thighs. I could feel it slid up along her pussy...and she didnt resist. In fact she reciprocated and snuggled right back against me. Feeling a bit more bold, i slid my fingers along her tummy, down between her thighs, and began stroking her clit slowly, gently. She moaned more considerately, wiggling against my fingers, sliding a hand up to hold my other hand firmly against her breast. On the one hand, I could scarcely believe this was my own sister, sitting here naked with me in a bathtub, getting turned on by what I was doing, letting me touch and caress her in such an intimate and personal manner. Yet on the other hand, such considerations were quickly slipping from my mind, the fogs of lust and passion quietting any such concerns.

I could feel my own cock throbbing harder against her lower backside...I made it throb a few times against her, eliciting even more soft noises from her. She was definitely enjoying this.

I let my hand slide lower between her thighs, stroking her soft lips slowly, feeling them slide between them. Darla wiggled against me even more, sliding her other hand down holding mine to her warm folds, pressing it harder against her. The angle was difficult, but not unmanageable as I glided my fingers up into her warm pussy. She absolutely melted against me. I could feel her body start to quiver and shudder as my fingers slid in and out of her faster, struggling to thrust deeper into her. I began to kiss and nibble along the back of her neck, along her shoulders, which seemed to push her over the edge, and I could feel her body quiver uncontrollably as she came on my fingers fucking her pussy beneath the waters surface. She was breathing heavily, but I didnt stop what I was doing. After a moment of this she took my hand away from her pussy, leaving me to briefly wonder if she had somehow changed her mind about the situation...but she merely stood and turned around, and slid back down, carefully angling her legs behind me as she slid closer against me...she smiled as her hand reached down to take my aching hard cock...even the mere touch of her fingers wrapping around my pole was an amazing and exquisite sensation, but positioned the tip against the lips of her pussy and slowly slid down on it, impaling herself on my cock. I could feel it slide slowly into her, as she settled down against me, her breasts brushing up against my chest her arms around my neck. She rolled her head back in ecstacy as she ground against me, getting my hard shaft to go deeper into her. With small repetitive thrusts, she finally had it buried deep to the hilt. I could feel her mound against mine, my cock thrust deep inside of her. She just sat there for a moment, savoring the sensation, as did I. We both moaned softly, and I slid my arms around her and held her tighter against me, letting my lips find hers as we kissed hard and deeply. What seemed an eternity later, she started moving slowly up and down on me, riding my hard cock slowly at first. The water started splashing more the faster she went, and I was moving with her, thrusting against her, meeting her thrusts with my own. Water splashed everywhere as we continued and I could feel her body again start to shudder, which was bringing me closer to my own climax, feeling my body starting to tingle, making me thrust deeper and faster. Water was flying everywhere, and when she came, my body tensed and I held her tight as my cock errupted unloading waves of my hot creamy seed deep inside of her. The water around us settled after we stopped, just holding each other close. At some point our lips locked again in a deep warm kiss, our tongues tasting and swirling around the other passionately. After that we slid apart, stood and decided that since we had just fucked in the bath water, that continuing with a shower would be better...both knowing we still had a wedding to go to. I didn't think anything about that other than it was something we would be going to. As we showered, we washed each others hair and back, teasing and playing with each other. She stepped out of the shower first, as I turned the water off, and followed her out. She handed me a towel, and after we dried off somewhat she led me to her room. I guess she was still horny because she pushed me back on her bed, and after taking her towl off, she pulled mine off from around my waist, and proceeded to lean down, her face over my groin. She grasped my tool and sucked it straight into her mouth, her head bobbing up and down rapidly. It didn't take long for it go get hard again and when it was, she pulled up and as quickly slid down on my hard shaft again. She smiled as she began sliding up and down again, thrusting my cock deep inside of her again and again.

"I'll finish that later." She said, smiling. I was only vaguely aware of what she was talking about. I was overcome by the feeling of her warm wet cunt sliding once again up and down. Within moments she was coming again, but she didn't stop. She continued until she came again, then again, and again once more, each seeming to last longer that the one before. It was on the last one that I had cum, once more sending waves of my hot seed deep inside of her. At last she collapsed on top of me, my arms wrapping around her and holding her. "Oh god that was phenomenal!" she exclaimed breathlessly. Without saying anything more, she got up and went to the bathroom, where I could hear the sound of water running again. We still had that wedding to go to, and she had just worked up a good sweat, so she probably needed to clean up again. I just lay there for a few minutes, my mind reeling and trying to grasp what had just happened. I was totally unprepared for any of what had happened. While I was still trying to wrap my brain around it, she re-entered the room.

"Come on lazy bones.." she said. "We have things to do, places to go." She pulled me to my feet and pushed me toward the door. She turned, naked and started getting clothes out to dress. I went back to my room and started getting out a suit to wear, picking a tie, socks, etc. I was halfway dressed when she appeared in my room, asking to be zipped up. As I zipped the back of her dress, I got a sweet whif of her perfume. My hands slid easily along her back, caressing up again along her shoulders and down her arms. She half turned to me and smiled, thanking me. Somehow I pulled away, entranced and mesmerized by her presence, and finished dressing. We both agreed that she could drive, taking only one car.

Darla and I arrived at the church and sat together. The ceremony proceeded as planned, and followed the usual processions of the bride and groom, then followed by the attended guests. After a lengthy wait while the photographer took all the post ceremony pictures, we went to the reception. Although I danced with a number of women, none of them I enjoyed nearly as much as I did with Darla. Then the music slowed down, and we started slow dancing, holding each other with a respectable stance. "I wish I could hold you closer." she said.

"I know." I said, smiling softly into her warm eyes. "So do I, but what would everyone else think?" She simply smiled back, and even though my cock was aching from before it started to swell again, feeling it harden

After the dance was over, we both decided to sit for awhile and I got us both a drink. We sat and talked about little things for awhile, when I decided to visit the rest room. I excused myself and left our table. The restrooms were out of the dance hall and down a corridor. When I went in I was aware of someone right behind me. I was thinking it was another guy, and when I got inside, I was shocked slightly to find it was Darla.

"I so much wanted to hold you closer while we danced." She said. I agreed with her, then took her in my arms and proceeded to dance with her. We could hear the music from the reception hall faintly echoing down the hallway. I swayed with her slowly, pulling her close into my arms, hers up around my neck. I was surprised no one walked in on us, but we danced the song all the way through uninterrupted. All the while I could feel her breasts pressing against me, my hands sliding up slowly up and down along her back. One hand went up behind her neck, another slid down to her hips, then slowly, lightly across her ass, pulling her tighter against me, letting her feel my hard cock pressing against her tummy. Once the song was over, she smiles and pulled me into a stall and sat on the toilet. Within seconds she had my cock out, stroking it, looking at it, admiring it. She smiled up at me as she kissed the tip. I raised my hands to each wall of the confined space as her lips slowly sucked the tip, swirling around it with her tongue. She then proceeded to draw it into her mouth slowly, sliding her tongue around it. Slowly she sucked it harder, deeper until it was in her throat. I could feel gag slightly but got over it as her throat massaged it. She held her mouth tightly around my cock. I let my hands slide off the walls and held her head, my fingers sliding through her hair. She moaned softly, sending waves of pleasure back up along my shaft...then she proceeded to slide her head back and forth, sucking as she went. Darla savored every inch, drawing it deep each time she slid down on it. Soon her mouth was going over it rapidly, sucking me harder, caressing my shaft at tthe same time. It wasn't long before my body responded and was tingling with sensation, and I began to shudder from ecstacy, and soon my cock exploded in her mouth, sending hot cum down her throat. She sucked more eagerly, driven to draw out ever drop. She swallowed ever drop, careful not to lose any, her hands grasping the back of my thighs, holding me to her. Soon she released me and tucked me back into my pants. It was then that someone came into the rest room. We both smiled silently and waited until the person that had come in finished his business and left. We both let out a sigh of relief, and left the rest room. I left first to make sure the coast was clear, and when I saw that it was, allowed her to leave behind me. She left and went into the ladies room and after I had picked up another drink, returned to the table where we were sitting. It wasn't long before she returned as well. The evening went along nicely, watching the events of a wedding reception transpire...the cake cutting, the toasts, the dinner, the presents...after all was said and done, we left for home. Since we had returned home with our parents, we both retired to our respective rooms, which was a good thing seeing as how we were all pretty much wiped out from drinking, dancing and basically having a great time. Yet while I lay in bed, I simply couldn't get to sleep. So I lay in bed and pulled out a book to read, hoping I could take my mind off of what I was really thinking about and fall asleep. I found out however that I could barely concentrate on the book, and after awhile could hear someone one out in the hall, going into the batroom. After they were done, I heard them exit the bathroom but instead of goingback to their room, come into mine, quietly. Of course it was Darla, wearing just a long teeshirt. She slid under the covers next to me, sliding up against me, snuggling warmly into my arms. We didn't say much, but both just happy to be there. We exchanged small soft kisses for awhile, then I followed an urge to start kissing down her neck, across the ridge of her throat, and down along her chest. Working slowly, methodically, I kissed, licked, nibbled along every curve, until I came to her nipples, and with great care and delicacy, savored each hard puckered nipple. I could feel her moan softly as I continued, teasing, tasting, nibbling each nipple. My hands were not idle either, sofrtly caressing along her skin, exploring every curve, down her sides, along her thighs and finally up between her legs, caressing her soft warm clit. I could feel it harden beneath my touch and and while my lips were busy taking care of her breasts, my fingers were making writhe with extreme pleasure. Before long though, I began kissing and licking softly down her tummy, and all the while starting to finger her cunt with my fingers, I nudged between her legs, which she parted for me. I lifted one leg as I slid down, and began licking slowly between the inside of her thigh and her pelvic mound, nuzzling deeply. I kissed up and around her mound, then back down the other side...and finally snaked my tongue back and forth across the base of her pussy, working up to her clit, where I proceeded to nibble, suck and lick till she was writhing uncontrollably, cumming hard as she pressed her hand against the back of my head, pressing my hard against her. Without so much as losing a beat, I flicked my tongue back and forth down across her pussy lips, opening them slowly and finally slipping my tongue deep as it would go into her. She melted and I could feel her body respond while I continued to eat her. I let my tongue wiggle and stroke the inside of her cunt while my lips pressed against her, sucking her and she came again and again. Her hands were grasping and clutching my hair wildly, struggling to stiffle moans of pleasure. I kept this up for what seemed like forever, delighting in making her cum again and again. My tongue darted in and out of her, licking every part of her, while I sucked and nibbled merrily along. Finally, I pulled away and slid up next to her where she lay exhausted and spent. After she finally regained some composure, she quietly snuggled up next me. She pulled up to me and kissed me softly, tenderly. "Mmm...no one and I mean no one has ever done that like you have." she said softly. I thought about it briefly and to be honest, I have never taken as much time with other women I've eaten as I did with Darla. I couldn't explain it, other to say, "Well, I thought I would at least return the favor for what you did earlier. I'm glad you enjoyed it."

"Oh boy did I!" she whispered exuberantly. She snuggled tighter against me, and before long we were both sound asleep. Fortunately I woke first and discovered that both my parents were still asleep. After a trip to the bathroom, I woke her and sent her back to her room. She went, sleepily, reluctantly but understood why.

It was a good month before I went back to school, but in that time, Darla and I spent many such nights together. We would go to clubs and bars just to be together, dance together like a regular couple, and thoroughly enjoyed each others company. There were even a time that my parents went for a week to visit our aunt and uncle upstate, which was heaven unto itself. During that month we sucked and fucked every way possible, every where we could. It was to say the least, incredible. Afterwards, we both finished school, but always got together whenever possible when I came home on vacation.

famile massage

mangoman on Incest Stories

I wanted to have some type of carrier to fall back on when times got tough in the construction world. I have a strong body and hands that do not tire, as well as the love of touching others. Many of my friends liked the massages I gave and suggested that I should get some professional training. I found a lady that taught massage classes from her home. Three weeks later I was in class and loving it.

 

I had five nice looking ladies in my class to learn with.  Three of them were hotter tha

Read More
n hell and I had a tough time keeping my cock from getting hard when they touched me. Near the end of our training Sue could not resist the desire to fondle my cock and slipped her hand over it. The other four ladies’ in class noticed her touching me and looked on with interest.  Pam, our teacher, went into the bathroom and the gals all wanted to see my cock so Sue pulled the sheet off and gave them a peek.

 

When I got home my wife wanted to see what I had learned that day in class, so I got her on the massage table and went to work. I had to tell her about what Sue had done in class. My cock sprang to life all over again. Connie loved the thought of five gals seeing my hard tool and took me in her mouth and tried to drain the cum from me. She said that I should slip my finger in their pusses and put them on the spot if they thought it was funny

 

Connie decided to take the massage class as well. So after I finished the class, she got in the next session. Her class had three men and three ladies. Connie came home after the fifth class and said that Dave had a huge cock.  When I asked her how she knew, she said she could tell and she had peeked under the sheet. She said, that it would reach his hipbone when it was soft. I’m sure that he did not tuck it down like a gentleman would. If I had a monster cock like that I’d bee showing it off too. We got hot and bothered talking about her playing with it and wanting him to part her pussy with it.  The massage was cut short and we fucked our brains out.

 

 It was three weeks before Connie got to work on Dave in class again.  Pam had stepped out of the room to take a phone call. Dave got hard as Connie touched his cock. Pam peeked in on the class to tell then to carry on, as this call would take a long while. Dave’s cock kept growing and growing until it got to 11 inches. Connie was telling me this as I was giving her a massage after she got home from class. When I got to her hip I pulled the sheet back and peeked at her pussy. Her pussy was wet and very puffy and red. I then thought that she had been fucked hard. At that time I spread her legs and a gush of cun ran down the crack of her ass. I started to thinking that it was time to take her virgin asshole. I rubbed the cum around the rim of her tight ass. Soon I gave her the peace sign with a finger in each hole. Then slipped two fingers in each hole. Connie told me how wonderful it felt to have her pussy filled that full of cock once in a while. I tried to convince her that she would like her asshole stretched too. But she said, soon she would try it.

 

I called Sue and set up a massage with her for the next day. We would trade massages. I gave Sue her massage first. Making sure that I got her as hot as I could without going to far over the edge.  Sue was dripping wet and made a wet spot on the sheet. Now it was my turn on the table.

 Sue did my back, then my ass, as she started on my thigh’s my cock began to swell. Sue turned me over onto my back. Mr. Winky was on the rise. Sue took my cock in her hand and licked the pre-cum from the tip. I told her that we should not be doing this, just for the fact that we were Now trained pro’s and we should conduct our self’s as such. Sue jumps up and said, you fucking ass hole, you get me all hot and wanting to fuck then flip that fat cock up and now you say don’t touch. What a prick.  My response was, talking about fucking ass holes Connie will not let me, will you?  Sue said, ya I love it in the ass and I cum so hard that way, I go crazy. But now you will have to try harder, maybe next time you have me on the table you can fill my ass up.

 

 I asked Connie to invite Dave over at the same time as I had Sue over. Connie asked me what I had in mind, I said nothing to her, and I just smiled. Connie’s mind went to work on overtime thinking of what might happen.

 

I asked our daughters to go over to their friends house and not to disturbed us. They are 16 and 17so it was no problem to get them out of the house. The keys to the Jeep and 50 frog skins (dollars) were all it took. Jill asked me why they never had to leave before, while we did a massage. I’m sure that she read through the excuse I told her.

 

Saturday came and we had both massage tables set up in the same room. Dave and Sue arrived on time and we sat and shot the shit for a while. I stood and asked the girls if they were ready for their massages. They smiled and went into the massage room.         Looking at each other, they stripped till they got to their panties. They both winked at one another and tossed their panties off. With both gals on their tummies, Dave and I went to work. Dave was going to shadow my moves and follow my lead. When I got to Sue’s ass I tossed the sheet above her ass and up on her back. Dave and I were running our hands between their thighs and touching their pussy’s. We got the girls hot and wet. It was time to roll them over. Connie grabbed her sheet and tossed it in the corner. Sue, seeing this followed suit. Dave and I started at their heads and were rubbing their tits. Connie reached back and pulled Dave’s monster cock out and started to give him head. Since my cock was much shorter I stepped to the side of the table so Sue could get it in her mouth without cranking her head back.

 

Connie and Dave said the hell with the massage we are going to fuck. Connie bent over the table and Dave took her from behind. It was great watching that huge dick split her pussy. Sue had a little surprise for me. She went over to Connie’s table and bent over it, beside Connie. I took Sue from behind as well. Sue was kissing Connie as Dave and I took them from behind. Both gals liked what they were getting. Sue reached back and took my cock in hand. Rubbing it on her ass. I grabbed the oil and lubed her ass and my cock. My cock might be only 7 inches long but it is 2 inches wide. I let Sue push back onto my cock at her own pace. Witch was in one push. Sue was an ass-fucking slut.

 

 Sue  started to cum right away.  Sue was yelling for me to rape her ass. I fucked for all I was worth. I busted my nuts in her ass. I pulled out of Sue and Dave pulled out of my wife. Dave stabbed that big cock in Sue’s ass. For the first time in my marriage to Connie she let me take her ass. It was a slow process to get her open, but I got in.

 Connie got the hang of things and wanted me to plow her ass. She was so tight that I would not last long. My cum was piling up in the base of my cock and would not go past her tight ring.

We both were cumming hard. My cum was piling up like a train wreck

 

I looked up at the window to see our two daughters Kim and Jill looking in the window at us. I pulled my cock from their mother’s ass and shot cum across the room. Dave and Sue were fucking on the floor. As I looked at the girl’s I noticed their hands in their shorts. They knew that they got caught.  Both girls slipped away before anyone else seen them. The four of us played for an hour more. My cock would spring back to life every time I thought about the girls seeing us fucking and them playing with themselves.

 

After Sue and Dave left we cleaned up the massage room and took a much needed shower. The girls came home before we got out of the shower. Jill could see into our room from her bedroom. Looking to see that her door was shut I never bothered to close our door.  I was about to shave, when in the mirror I noticed that her door was open a crack. I could see that she was peeking into our bathroom and could see me. My cock sprang to life again. After shaving I stood at my dresser in full view of Jill’s peeking eyes. I stroked my cock and was looking at Jill, as I got dressed.

 

The following day, Kim, our 16yr old asked me to give her a massage after dinner. I waited until 9 to give her the massage, so she could go to bed right after I finished. Kim was on the modest side and would wear her bra and panty’s when I massaged her. Tonight she just had on thong panties. My mind started to wander.  When I got to her hips she would, in the past, not let me open her legs very far. Tonight she was a little hesitant then relaxed. She let her leg go and opened her pelvic region. I kept my cool and asked her if it felt better to let it relax. Kim’s reply was yea but I feel so open now. She was open all right. Her open pussy lips ate up the thong. Looking at that open and hungry pussy kept me working on her hips for a long time. Many times my fingers could feel her heat and wetness, as they were so close to her pussy lips. I finished the massage with a throbbing hard on, and sent her to bed wanting more.

 

The next day was Jill’s turn on the massage table.  I knew that things might spring up so I wore a tight pair of shorts.  As I worked on Jill she put her hand on the side of the table. When I was beside her she moved her hand out further towards me.  I moved her hand back tighter to her side. As I worked on the far side of Jill she slid her hand into my groin. I let her put her hand where it was comfortable.  I moved along as I usual would, while she rubbed my cock When I got to her hip I pulled the sheet back to find her bare ass. Placing the sheet back over her ass to protect her modesty, Jill got a big smile on her face.  I finished her backside and rolled her over. When I started on her thighs Jill opened her legs wide. She would not resist being open like that. Jill pulled the sheet to the floor and smiled. There I was with my 17 yr old daughter bare ass naked with her legs wide open. I asked her what she thought she was doing. Jill started to finger her pussy and said daaaa fuck Dad you saw us watching you and Mom fucking your brains out. You saw that we were fingering ourselves. You know damn well that I was watching you in your room and you were so proud to show me your cock.

Well I’m showing you my hot wet pussy. See how puffy it is. Just like Moms. I stood there with a hard dick stuttering like a fool. I told Jill that she had a great body and very sexy pussy, but if she were only 18 I would be sucking her pussy. Then fill it with my cock I had to leave the room and put on something that had room for a hard cock.

 

This went on like that for 7 months. Jill and Kim would flash me all the time. I never closed the door to our room all the way any more. Connie and I would make love with the girls being able to watch. Connie was massaging the girls every other time. It dawned on me that Connie, Jill and Kim would be naked together all the time.

 

One Saturday afternoon, I walked into the house, Connie came out of the massage room bare assed naked 

Her pussy was hot and wet, she was so swollen her pussy looked like a gutted salmon. I thought that maybe she was with Dave or one of her “clients”. I was a little pissed off and snapped, asking, where are Jill and Kim? Connie smiled and said, in the massage room.

 

My first thought was that they were in there with a man. I puffed up and was going to beat to death the motherfucker that took my daughters. The veins in my neck were sticking out half an inch.

 

Kim and Jill came out of the room and were in the same shape as their mother. I kicked the door off the hinges on my way in there. Only to find the massage tables pushed together, many toys, oil and candles burning. I stood there with a stupid look on my face.

 

Connie and the girls came into the room. After getting me settled down, the truth came out. Connie had a Bi streak in high school. Her basketball coach was gay and seduced her. She had many lady lovers all thru collage. When Jill and Kim started their periods Connie had the need to show then the old belt system and the new fem products. She shaves her pussy during her period. So she shaved the girls pussy also. Their love grew in ways that lovers would. Connie has been teaching them gay love and how to please a man also.

 

Jill stepped up to me and put her arms around my neck kissing me so softly on the lips. Her firm tits were burning holes in my chest. Connie stepped up behind me and kissed my neck. She whispered in my ear happy birthday. Kim was on the table with her legs wide apart. She had a small dildo in her pussy as she tickled her clit. Jill and Connie led me to the tableside. They said, go ahead touch her. I touched her hip and she opened her legs so wide her knees were flat on the table. Connie had my cock in her hand and was stroking it so softly. I said  I  I  I cant the age of consent is 18. All three girls said at the same time, Not any more they changed the law as of yesterday.  It is now 16.

 

 

 

 

 

 

Mandy 2

g_goyal2000 on Incest Stories

(Part II of IV)


Amanda awoke early it was still dark outside. She turned and looked at her clock and saw that it was five AM but she was wide-awake and wanted to fuck. She still had Timmy's cock in her hand she turned on her side and took his balls in her other hand. She really liked the way his cock and balls felt. She knew Timmy would be angry with her if she woke him up, so she decided to let him sleep a little longer. While she was waiting she was going to watch the movie again, she wanted to see her Mom and Aunt Cindy suck each other again. She got the remote from her night stand, turned on the TV and pushed the mute button when the picture came on she pushed play, the picture was black. Then she remembered, she had forgotten t

Read More
o rewind the tape she tried to push rewind but pushed fast forward instead. Something came up on the screen that she didn't recognize so she pressed play.

The picture on the screen was in a very large room filled with men and women fucking and sucking each other. She quickly stopped the tape.

"Wow there's more on the tape." She said aloud. She started shaking Timmy.

"Timmy, wake up, there's more on the tape." Timmy's eyes opened.

"More."

"Yeah all kinds of people I never saw before fucking and sucking."

Timmy sat up forgetting all about sleeping. "Turn it on, let's watch."

Amanda started the tape again. The camera was panning around the room, There were men fucking women and women sucking women and men both, all over the place.

"Turn up the sound Mandy." Amanda pushed the mute button and the room was filled with the sounds of people fucking and sucking.

The camera zoomed in on a couple, the lady was sitting on a couch with her legs spread wide and she was frantically rubbing her clit. The man standing in front of her was jerking his hand up and down his cock.

"Is that the way men jack-off. "Amanda asked."

"Yeah, and I guess that's the way girls jack-off."

"You mean, I can jack-off just by rubbing my clit with my hand, I don't need a rubber cock?"

"That's right Mandy, look the lady's cumming."

Timmy was right the lady was cumming. She was wild her whole body was shaking and her head was twisting and she was yelling that she was cumming. Then the man's cock began spurting long squirts of cum on the lady's face. Amanda clapped her hands.

"Boy jacking-off together is really fun."

Now the lady was scraping the cum from her face and putting it in her mouth. Then she grabbed the man's cock and sucked it.

"I want to do that." Amanda said. She began rubbing her clit just as she had seen the lady on the tape do.

"Don't cum yet Mandy, let's wait 'til the movies over."

Amanda slowed down but kept rubbing her little clit. Timmy looked over at her and began slowly stroking his hard cock. The camera moved to a man and women lying on the floor, their heads buried in the others crouch.

"Look Timmy, they're sucking each other at the same time, we could do that, they're really having fun."

The camera moved again and they saw Aunt Cindy on a couch on her hands and knees, her ass sticking high in the air, there was a man fucking her from behind, another man sitting on the couch was pushing his hard cock in and out of her sucking mouth.

"Look Timmy, that's Aunt Cindy, I didn't know people fucked like that, Boy look at her go."

The man fucking her suddenly pulled his cock out and shot a stream of cum on her ass. His cock kept squirting until her ass cheeks were covered with the thick viscous fluid. The man she was sucking was also cumming; Amanda saw some of it leak out of the corner of her mouth, down on to her chin. Another woman suddenly appeared, pushing the man away from Cindy's ass, she licked at her ass cheeks, loudly slurping the sticky goo into her mouth. When she was satisfied there was no more cum on Cindy's ass she moved quickly up to her mouth, licking the cum from her chin and pushing her tongue into Cindy's mouth to get any dregs of cum that hadn't been swallowed.

"Wow, that lady likes cum almost as much as me." Amanda exclaimed, clapping her hands.

"I really like the way Aunt Cindy's ass looks, it's beautiful." Timmy said."

"Ass? Timmy, What's an ass?"

"You call it a butt, little kids call it a butt, grown-up people call it an ass."

"Ass, yeah, I like that, do I have a beautiful ass too?"

"Your Ass is the most beautiful, it's just not as wide as Aunt Cindy's."

"Do you like my ass too?"

"I love your ass Mandy." The camera shifted again,

"That's Mom, what's she doing?" Amanda asked.

"Looks like she's sitting on a cock and sucking another one." Timmy answered.

"What's that guy behind her doing?"

The man behind her was smearing something from a tube on his cock. The camera zoomed in and Amanda recognized the tube immediately, it was the same stuff that was in her Mother's rubber cock drawer. The man finished smearing his cock; putting a finger up to their Mother's ass slid it right into her ass hole.

"Wow, Timmy he has his finger right up her Bu, I mean Asshole."

They watched as the man wiggled his finger around in their Mother's ass hole, then he pulled it out and pushed two fingers in, he moved them all around spreading his fingers as wide as he could.

"What's he going to do Timmy?"

"I think he's going to fuck her in the ass."

"Can you do that?"

"I think we're going to find out." Timmy knew something about ass fucking, he and his two friends, Marty and Greg tried to fuck each other's ass several times, but they just couldn't get their cocks to go in no matter how hard they tried. So Timmy was watching this with great interest.

The man now had three fingers up their Mom's pretty ass. The man pulled his fingers out, putting the head of his cock against Andrea's ass hole, with one stroke pushed it in until his balls were against the balls of the man who was fucking her cunt.

"Look Timmy, he 's got all the way up her ass. Neat-o! Three cocks at once."

Their Mother was wild she was fucking and sucking the three cocks in her body like they were the last cocks in the world. She pounded her ass back on to the two cocks in her ass and cunt and slid the other down her throat on the forward thrust. Suddenly she stopped, the men kept fucking. "Mmmm.." came from Andrea filled mouth. Her body was trembling all over; more sounds were coming from her mouth around the cock there.

"Mom's cumming." Amanda shouted, rubbing her pussy a little faster. Then their mother started fucking again more violently then before.

"Mom can really fuck, I wish I could fuck her." Timmy said.

She went through two more orgasms before the man in her ass pulled his cock out and shot his cum all over her ass and back. The man in her mouth pulled out and covered her face with cum.

"Boy that guy really cum's a lot." Amanda said."

The kids knew the man in her cunt was filling her belly by the way he was moaning. Then the lady that licked the cum from Aunt Cindy's ass was licking their Mom's face; she licked a big gob onto her tongue and showed to Andrea. Andrea opened her mouth wide, sucking the ladies tongue into her mouth. The Lady did this several times transferring cum to Andrea's mouth, then she licked the rest off and swallowed it herself. When she was satisfied there was no more cum on Andrea's face or hair she moved to her back sliding her lips and tongue down her back making loud slurping sounds. She licked her ass clean the she moved behind her spreading Andrea's ass cheeks she licked up and down the crack of her ass, she pushed her tongue as far up Andrea's ass hole as she could get it. Pulling the cock from Andrea's pussy she sucked it into her mouth and cleaned it too.

Andrea rolled off the man onto her back her legs wide splayed. The woman dove at her plunging her tongue deep into her sperm filled cunt. She licked and sucked at Andrea's cunt.

"Oh, shit... . Fuck... . this cum guzzling cum slut bitch is making me cummmm... .." Andrea yelled. Her body tensing and her toes curling.

"Cum slut bitch, that's what I want to be." Amanda thought. She wished it were her eating all that cum.

The camera moved again, it was moving past a line of five or six men and women that were trying to go through a door. The camera moved past them and through the door, it was the bathroom. There was a woman in the bathtub on her knees and a man just stepping into the tub with her. The woman grabbed the man's cock and pointed it at her face. The man peed on her face; the women opened her mouth and took in the peeing cock. Pee was running out of her mouth over her chin and down over her tits.

"Wow, look Timmy, that lady is drinking pee."

"Yeah, that guy is sure pissing her a mouth full."

The man finished pissing and stepped out of the tub only to be replaced by a woman. The woman spread her legs; the mouth of the lady on her knees quickly covered her cunt. Piss gushed from her mouth and ran all over her, she backed her head away, her mouth wide open, piss was going directly into her mouth and running down her chin onto the rest of her body.

"Look she's drinking some of it, you can see her throat swallowing." Amanda exclaimed.

"I guess there's too much for her to drink it all, that lady really had to piss. "Timmy added.

Amanda noted that pee was piss. The camera stayed on the piss drinking lady long enough for another woman and a man to piss on her. Then it moved back into the big room. The camera focused on four women lying on the floor in a circle sucking and licking each other's cunt. There was a man lying on the floor with a woman sitting on his cock.

"Look Timmy he's got in her ass hole." The camera moved about the room showing people fucking and sucking in every imaginable position. Amanda paid close attention. The only way she had been fucked was lying on her back with her legs up. The camera moved into the kitchen where there were two women on the table. One was sitting with her heels and ass on the edge of the table a man was pumping his cock in and out of her hairless cunt.

"How come some women don't have any hair on their pussy? " Amanda asked.

"I think they shave them." Timmy answered.

"You mean like daddy shaves his face?"

"Yeah."

"I don't have any hair on my pussy."

"You're not old enough yet, you will when you get older."

"When I get hair on my pussy I'm going to shave it, I like the way pussy's look when they don't have hair."

"Me too."

The other lady was lying with her tits on the table with her feet on the floor a man was standing behind her fucking his cock into her cunt. There was another man sitting on a chair a woman was sitting on his lap facing him jumping up and down on his hard cock. Back in the big room they saw a young girl sitting on the floor with four men standing around her, she was sucking one cock and jerking on two others the fourth man was jacking-off. She was going from one cock to another, sucking each of them in turn. Suddenly one of the cocks started shooting cum, the first squirt hit the lady's cheek. She quickly turned her head and took the next squirt in her mouth. Then she closed her mouth over the squirting cock and sucked, another cock started squirting then the other two almost at the same time. She went from one cock to the other trying to catch as much in her mouth as possible. Most of the cum landed on her face, it was totally covered with the thick stuff. She wiped it from her eyes and put it in her mouth. Then the cum eating lady was there.

"Get away from me you cum eating cunt, this is my cum and your not getting any, get the fuck away from me." The girl said,

"Oh baby, let Mom have just a little, please." The cum eater answered.

"Mom? That's her daughter," Amanda exclaimed."

"No! You cum guzzling old whore. Your always eat up every bodies cum, I'm eating all of this myself, your not getting any."

"Please baby let me just rake it into your mouth with my tongue, I promise not to eat any."

"Well, OK but you better not eat even one drop." The older lady put her tongue and pushed a big gob from the girls cheek into her wide open mouth the girl didn't swallow until her mouth was completely full, then she drank it down and opened her mouth for more. When the lady had her face clean she tried to lick the cum from the girls hair.

"Honey you have three or four big gobs in your hair, is it OK if I take it in my mouth and spit it in yours."

"OK, but don't swallow any whore."

The lady sucked the big gobs of cum from the girls hair, then putting her mouth directly over her daughters let it drool over her lips into the girls open mouth. The girl swallowed it then grabbed the lady's head and pulled her lips to hers taking the lady's tongue into her mouth, sucking it.

She pulled away, and with a big smile said "Stand up and let me suck that flappy cunt of yours Mom." The lady stood up and spread her legs. The lady had two big flaps hanging out of her cunt, the girl spread them wide and pushed her tongue into her hole, she was just lapping away when the camera moved.

Amanda looked down at her own pussy; she didn't know some women had big flaps like that.

"Timmy, how old do you think that girl is?"

"I don't no maybe sixteen or seventeen, why?"

"I was just wondering when I could go to a party like this."

The camera was focused on a lady on the floor sitting on a cock with another man behind fucking into her.

"Look he's fucking her ass." Amanda said.

"I don't think so Mandy, Look she got them both in her cunt."

"Boy, she must really have a big hole."

"I think women's holes will stretch pretty much, just think how much it must stretch when they have a baby."

"You mean babies come out of your cunt." "Yes Mandy they do."

"I knew women carried babies in their bellies but I didn't know they came out their cunts. Boy if a pussy will stretch that much I can probably fuck any size cock."

"With a little practice you probably can."

"I don't want a little practice, I want a bunch of practice." Amanda giggled.

The camera was moving again; it stopped on a woman standing on the couch with her tits on the back of the couch. A man had his tongue buried in the woman's ass hole; he was fucking it in and out like a small cock.

"Eat my ass motherfucker. Stick your whole head in my ass. "The woman shouted.

"You think that guy fucks his mother Timmy?"

"Naw that's just something some people call other people, but I sure wish I was a motherfucker."

The camera was now focused on two women. One was sitting on the couch with her ass hanging off and the other was sitting on the floor between her wide spread legs. The lady sitting on the floor was smearing some of that stuff from a tube on both her hands. The kids watched open mouthed as the lady on the floor pushed her bunched fingers into the other lady's cunt She kept twisting and pushing until her whole hand was buried in the cunt to her wrist. Then she did the same thing with her other hand only this one went into her ass hole. The lady began fucking her hands in the two holes, the camera zoomed in on the face of the lady on the couch.

"Yesss... . Baby... . Fist fuck my ass and cunt." She said with a big grin.

The TV screen went black. Amanda was rubbing her pussy so fast Timmy could hardly see her hand. He was jerking on his cock just as fast.

"Shit... Fuck... Timmy, I'm going to cum, fuck I'm cummingggg."

Timmy stood up in front of her he was ready to cum too, "cum on my face Timmy, shoot it out squirt it on my face." Amanda yelled still in the throes of her own orgasm.

She slid off the bed, sitting between Timmy's legs she looked up at his cock, Timmy pointed his cock at her lips, the cum blasted from his cock on to her closed lips, he moved his cock around shooting some on her cheeks and nose. When the last few drops were dripping from his cock. She raised her head taking it in her mouth, she sucked out the rest. Laying her head back on the bed.

"Lick it into my mouth Timmy." She said the cum stringing between her lips.

Timmy really didn't mind doing it he had tasted his own cum before. So he leaned over and started licking his cum into her now wide-open mouth. Amanda waited until her face was clean before she swallow any, then she gulped it down.

"Ummm... . Good." She said. "I just love eating your cum, I wonder if Daddy's taste as good as yours?"

"That's something you will never know Mandy."

"I might, someday but right now I want some more of yours, lets suck each other."

"You get on top Mandy." He said lying down on his back.

Amanda crawled on top of him, positioning her pussy over his face; she grabbed his cock and put her mouth over it. Amanda found she could swallow his cock much easier in this position; she sucked hard and fucked her head up and down on his cock.

She felt Timmy's tongue digging deep into her pussy. She came quickly but Timmy having just emptied his balls on her face took longer. Amanda was on the verge of her second orgasm when she felt his cock swell and jerk in her mouth, she knew he was about to cum, her second orgasm hit her just as his first squirt hit the roof of her mouth, She gobbled at his cock as her ass bucked involuntarily on his face. This was the first time she had sucked the cum from his cock while she was cumming, she loved it. They continued to lick and suck each other until their orgasms subsided. She felt his cock going soft, letting it slip from her mouth she raised up and turned so her face was above his the she stretched her body out on top of him, putting her lips on his and grinding her pussy against his cock. Timmy pushed his tongue into her mouth giving her a taste of her own cunt juices while getting a taste of his own cum. She laid her head on his shoulder and he wrapped his arms around her loving the way her still hard nipples dug into his chest.

"That was the best cum ever." She said. Timmy agreed.

After lying still for a long time, Amanda decided she wanted to do it again, she thought maybe if she sucked his cock some more it would get hard again. She rose up and turned around, getting back on top of him she grabbed his soft cock and sucked it into her mouth. His hips jerked under her sucking mouth. "Don't Mandy, its too tender." He moaned. Amanda dropped his cock and started to move away from him but Timmy grabbed her ass cheeks and spread them wide apart. She looked over her shoulder. "Whatcha looking at, do you like my asshole?" She asked. "Yeah it's nice and pink."

"Do ya wanna lick it, oh please lick it Timmy, Please... ." Timmy raised his head and licked her ass hole.

"Eeeee... . I really like that. Put your tongue in Timmy, Fuck my ass hole with your tongue."

Timmy pushed his tongue against her ass hole; he could only get the tip in, so he started fucking the tip of his tongue in and out of her ass. He found that each time he pushed in he could get a little more onto her, soon he had his whole tongue fucking her ass.

"Ouuuuuuu... That feels so good it feels sooooo... .goooood... " She moaned. "Fuck my ass Timmy, I want you to fuck it.

Timmy pulled his tongue out. "I am fucking it Mandy."

"No Timmy, with your cock, fuck my ass with your cock."

"But we don't have any of that stuff in the tube, I wouldn't be able to get it in." he said remembering when he tried to fuck Greg and Marty's ass."

Amanda jumped from the bed. "Wait, I'll be right back." She yelled as she ran from the room. She went to her Mom's room and rummaged through the rubber cock drawer until she found what she was looking for. When she came back in to her room she held up the tube.

"Ta Taaa, Is this what you need." Handing Timmy the tube and crawling up on the bed on her hands and knees, waving her ass cheeks at him she laid her head and chest on the bed but remained on her knees, her pretty ass pointed right at Timmy. "Now fuck it, fuck me up my ass, hurry, I can't wait to feel your cock in my asshole."

But Timmy didn't hurry, he remember how the man on the tape had prepared his Mother for an ass fuck. First he put some of the lubricant on his cock the he took some on his finger and pushed it up her ass. He gently moved his finger around until he felt her hole loosen up then he pushed in another finger. He spread his fingers and moved them in and out a little.

"Ouuuuu... Timmy, gooood... soooo... gooood. Put your cock in now."

But Timmy didn't hurry he pushed in another finger and moved the three fingers around until he could push them in all the way. When he was satisfied she was ready he removed his fingers and put the head of his cock against her ass hole and pushed, there was still some resistance in her little hole.

"Does it hurt Mandy?"

"A little, but I don't care, just stick it in and fuck me."

Timmy pushed hard and was surprised how easily he slid in to his balls.

"Ouuuuu... ya, now fuck it. Fuck it hard." She yelled.

Timmy began fucking in and out of her ass hole, after they had fucked for sometime. Amanda said,

"Wait Timmy, wait, I don't think I can cum like this."

"Rub your clit Mandy."

"No you rub it, rub it for me." Timmy had both of his hands filled with her tits but he leaned farther over her and began rubbing her clit.

"Yeah, that's it now, fuck my ass hard." Timmy started pounding into her as hard as he could. It wasn't long before she was close to orgasm.

"Shiiiit... You're going to make me cum, agggg... Fuuuck... I'm cumming."

Timmy kept pounding into her ass.

"Yes Timmy Yeeeees... Keep fucking it, keep fucking my ass."

She reached down placing her hand over Timmy's hand and pushed three fingers into her pussy. She could feel Timmy's cock with her fingers though the thin membrane separating her two holes.

"I can feel you. I can feel your cock in my ass." She screamed.

Timmy was almost ready to cum, Her ass hole was even tighter than her pussy, plus her fingers rubbing along the underside of his stroking cock, was going to make him shoot.

"I'm going to cum, I'm going to fill your ass with cum." He yelled.

"Yesss... . Shoot it full; fill me up with cum juice. Fuck, I think I'm going to cum too. Yes here it cummmmmssss... ."

Amanda felt Timmy's cock buck and shoot, deep in her ass. Her ass was gyrating and fucking back hard against his squirting cock. Then she felt his cock start to soften and slip from her ass. Amada rolled onto her back.

"That was really good, I love having my ass fucked." Timmy lay beside her cupping her tit in his hand. In a few moments both kids fell asleep.

Timmy woke with a start; He looked at the clock, eight o five.

"Shit I have to get up." He said. His movement on the bed woke Amanda.

"What's the matter?" She asked.

"I promised the guys I would meet them at the hideout at nine and I need to make your breakfast before I leave."

"All I want to eat is your cock, let's eat each other, I'll make me a pop tart while your gone."

"OK but I better wash the shit off my cock before you suck it."

"Good Idea." She giggled.

Timmy went into the bathroom; she followed him and sat on the toilet lid. Timmy soaped up a washcloth and began scrubbing his cock.

"Timmy, what do you guys do at the hideout anyway?"

"Mostly jack-off, we've tried to fuck each other in the ass a few times but we could never get it in, now I know why."

"You mean you jack-off together." "

Yeah, all the time."

"Do Greg and Marty have nice cocks like yours?"

" Greg's cock is shorter than mine but it really has a big head and Marty's is longer but not as thick."

"Do you think they know how to fuck?"

"Sure they both fuck their sisters."

"You mean Marty fucks Marsha and Greg fucks Polly?"

"Yeah they do it all the time."

"Do you think they would want to fuck me?"

"Sure anybody would want to fuck you."

"But both Marsha and Polly are really pretty and they both have really big tits."

"They're not as pretty as you and you have nice tits too even if they aren't as big."

"Instead of jacking-off why don't you bring them here to fuck me, you could all fuck me at once, you know the way those three guys did Mom on the tape."

"Yeah, I bet the guys would love that, you could suck em off too, neither one of them has ever had a blow- job, their sisters won't suck their cocks."

"Won't they be surprised when they find out how much I love sucking cock. Now let's go back to bed and suck each other." She said.

"First I have too pee." "No Timmy don't." Amanda yelled.

"What's the matter?" He asked with a surprised look on his face.

"I want you to pee on me, you know like the lady on the tape."

"You mean you want me to piss on your face?"

"Yeah and in my mouth and all over me." She giggled, climbing into the bathtub and going to her knees. Timmy climbed in and stood in front of her, she grabbed his soft cock and pointed it at her face.

"Just start going when your ready and I'll point it where I want it, OK?" Timmy let go, the piss hit her face and splashed all over her, she opened her mouth and directed the stream into it, she followed the stream of piss until she had his cock in her mouth. Piss was running over her chin onto her tits and down her belly dripping from her nipples and clit. She swallowed as much as she could, there was just too much to swallow it all. When the stream started to diminish she closed her lips over his cock and drank deeply. When she had sucked the last drop from his now hardening cock. She looked up at him smiling,

" I like drinking your pee Timmy, You can piss in my mouth all the time, from now on, I'll be your toilet."

"I liked pissing on you too Mandy, now it's my turn, you piss in my mouth."

She stood and spread her pussy lips Timmy dropped to his knees and pressed his lips over her spread pussy. Amanda let loose and quickly filled his mouth, he backed off a little and let the excess run out, he drank and drank, until she couldn't piss anymore. Amanda was giggling all the time, he stood and kissed her putting his tongue in her mouth giving her a taste of her own piss, then they licked the piss from each other's face.

"You no what, now I'm a piss drinking cum slut bitch." She said laughing.

Timmy turned on the shower and they rinsed the piss from their bodies when they were drying off they laughed and giggled and grabbed at each other. Back in bed they licked and sucked each other, by the time Amanda felt Timmy's cock buck and shoot his cum into her greedily sucking mouth she was having her third orgasm. When she was sure she had consumed every drop she rolled off him onto her back.

"I can't wait to have three cocks to suck and fuck. Be sure to tell the guys that I love drinking cum, I don't want them pulling out when they start to shoot."

"OK, I better get dressed I'm going to be late as it is."

While Timmy was dressing, Amanda went down to the kitchen; she put two pop tarts in the toaster and poured two large glasses of milk. When Timmy came in she was sitting at the table naked munching on her pop tart. Timmy downed half a glass of milk.

"Aren't you going to put something on before the guys get here?" He asked."

"What for, I'll only have to get undressed again."

Timmy drank the rest of the milk and grabbed a pop tart, "I'm going." He said, heading for the door.

"I'm going to take a shower and get pretty for you and the guys, so take a little time getting back." She said to his back, he waved his hand and was gone. Amanda finished her pop tart and drank her milk then she went back up to hers and Timmy's bathroom. She had not thought of it before but her and Timmy had the perfect setup. Their bathroom was between their bedrooms with a door from each bedroom into the bath, they could go back and forth with out even going into the hall. They could fuck at night and their parents would never know. She showered, brushed her hair and put on her favorite perfume. Wearing only the perfume she crawled back on her bed, She wanted to have the perfect pose when the boys came in and saw her naked for the first time. She lay on her back and arranged her long blond hair in a fan around her on the bed. With one leg straight she slid her other foot up her leg to the side of her knee, with both legs on the bed, she felt her pussy to be sure it was open and the boys would have a good view of her hole. She lay there waiting for them to come in, she was so excited by the thought of all those cocks and all that cum, she could hardly contain herself.

When Timmy arrived at the hideout Greg and Marty had started without him. They both had their pants down and were stroking their cocks.

"Hey you guys, don't shoot off yet, I've got something to tell you."

"We thought you weren't coming." Marty said.

"I'm late because I've been fucking Mandy."

"You mean you finally fucked that cute little thing, Man I wish I could stick my dick in to that little doll." Greg said.

"Me too, I'd give my left nut to fuck her, she's a living doll." Marty agreed.

"Well your going to get your chance, she wants me to bring you guys to our house so we can all fuck her." "Well what are we waiting for let's go." Marty said pulling his pants and shorts up over his hard cock.

"She said to tell you she wants to suck your cocks and drink your cum."

Greg stopped and looked at Timmy. "You mean she sucks cock and eats the cum?"

"Yeah, she loves the taste of cum, and after you fuck her she lets it drain out of her pussy into her hand and eats it." "Man, she's really nasty." Greg said.

The two boys had their pants zipped and belts buckled, they were anxious to get started. As they were walking to Timmy's house Greg said.

" My sister is fourteen and she won't eat my cock, she says it's not nice but I think she really wants to, one time when she jacked me off she got some cum on her hand, and when she thought I wasn't looking she licked some of it into her mouth."

"My sister says nobody does that, it's just a myth, I think if she saw somebody do it she would too." Marty said.

"Man I would sure like to fuck both of your sisters, they have those really big tits." Timmy said. "Neither of them is as pretty as Mandy, and I think she has nice tits, she's really built for a ten year old." Marty said. "I agree with that, I can't wait to get my dick into that fine little piece." Greg added. They arrived at Timmy's house and went in the front door. When Amanda heard them come in, she closed her eyes and pretended to sleep. She heard them enter her room she lay very still.

"Wow look at that, she looks even better naked then when she has clothes on." Marty whispered.

"Look at that pretty little hairless pussy it's all pink inside, and man those tits of her are something else." Greg said.

" Let's take our clothes off before we wake her up." Timmy said. The boys began removing their clothes. Amanda stirred and turned her head so she could watch them strip through slightly open eyes. When the boys were naked she couldn't stand it any longer, she sat up and swung her legs off the bed sitting in front of Greg and Marty, she was stroking both of their cocks before they knew what was happening.

"Boy, what nice cocks you guys have, can I suck em."

"You can suck mine anytime sweet thing." Greg said, reaching out and squeezing her tit.

"I want you to suck me Mandy, hurry before I shoot off from you jacking me." Marty moaned. Amanda slid off the bed to her knees, Marty was standing in front of her with Greg on one side and Timmy on the other.

Amanda looked at the three cocks Marty's was quite a bit longer and skinnier than Greg's or Timmy's and Greg's had a really big head, she thought all three were beautiful. She opened her mouth wide and swallowed Marty's cock pushing her chin into his balls.

"Holy shit, she's got the whole thing in her mouth. I can feel her throat swallowing, shit I'm going to shoot off, here it comes Mandy I'm fucking cumminggggggg."

Amanda backed off leaving just the head in her mouth. Marty's cock spewed sperm in almost a solid stream; he filled her mouth forcing her to swallow some. Amanda didn't lose a drop, when she drained his balls completely she but her head back and opened her mouth wide showing the boys the pool of cum in her mouth then she swallowed it down in three big gulps.

"God you're a nasty bitch." Greg said.

"I'm a cum slut bitch." Mandy said smiling at him. Then she licked and sucked Marty's cock until it was clean.

While she was sucking Marty she was stroking the other two cocks, she liked having a cock in her mouth and one in each hand at the same time. She dropped Marty's cock and took Greg's into her mouth sliding the big head into her throat; she loved the feel of the big head spreading her throat. Amanda slurped and licked up and down Greg's cock sliding it in and out of her throat.

"God I can't believe she's taking the whole thing, she's fucking eating me alive, suck it Mandy suck it hard," Greg groaned.

Amanda sucked harder and faster, her hands were flying up and down Marty and Timmy's cocks.

"Fuck, I'm going to fucking cum I'm going to drown the sexy bitch." Amanda felt Greg's cock head grow even bigger. "Shiiiiit I'm shooting, agggggg." Greg filled her mouth with the first squirt, Amanda drank his cum she swallowed and swallowed.

When his orgasm subsided she still had a mouth full of his cum. Amanda did the same thing she did with Marty's cum, opening her mouth wide showing it to the boys before swallowing it. Then she licked and sucked on Greg's cock until it was cleaned of all traces of semen.

Then she turned her attention to Timmy's cock, it took Timmy longer to shoot her a mouth full. But she finally made him cum and did her little show. After she cleaned his cock. She looked up at the boy's and smiled.

"That was really cool, I never drank that much cum at once. You guys were great, I loved it."

"There's plenty more where that came from, it's my turn again.". Marty said holding his hard cock out and pushing it at her mouth.

Amanda stood up and looked at the boys Marty and Greg's cocks were hard, but Timmy's was dead soft. So Amanda decided what she wanted next. She lay on the bed and spread her legs as wide as she could.

"No Marty I want to be fucked now, I haven't cum yet. I sucked you first so Greg gets to fuck me first. OK"

Greg wasted no time; he crawled on top of her. Amanda grabbed his hard cock and guided it to her open cunt. Greg started humping her like crazy using long hard strokes.

"Ya that's it Fuck me just like that, hard and fast and deep."

Amanda started cumming on about the tenth stroke, she went wild, slamming her cunt up at his cock so violently that Greg was afraid she was going to unseat him, but he held on and kept pounding into her spasm ridden cunt. Greg continued to pound into her making her orgasm again before shooting her pussy full. Greg collapsed on top of her.

"God what a fuck, my sister never fucked me like that." He said as he rolled off of her onto his back his soft cock flopped on to his belly."

Amanda got to her knees and began scooping Greg's cum from her cunt and eating it. "I want more cock hurry Marty Fuck me some more." She said rolling back onto her back and spreading her legs wide. Marty climbed between her legs and shoved by now throbbing cock into her cunt to his balls.

"WOW, it's long, Fuck me really hard like Greg did. Give it to me hard, fuck I'm cumming already Here it cummmmms." Amanda screamed and started fuck her pussy up on Marty's cock frantically just as she had Greg's Except Marty's cock was pounding against the bottom of her cunt, she could feel his cock deep in her belly. Marty pounded into her.

"Fuck I'm going to shoot, shit here it cums Mandy." Marty shot her pussy full, then he shot some more it was running down the crack of her ass before he finally finished. Amanda had three more orgasms while Marty fucked her and her pussy was still contracting when he rolled off of her. "Your right Greg she is really some kind of fuck, my sister could take lessons from her."

Amanda was still moaning out her last orgasm. The boy's waited until she sat up and ate the cum from her pussy and ass cheeks.

"Now I want to be ass fucked Timmy."

"Ass fucked you can't ass fuck." Greg said remembering their experience at the hideout Marty was nodding in agreement.

"Sure you can dummies, Timmy and I did it just a little while ago. Show em how Timmy," She said getting on her hands and knees and waving her ass at the boys.

Timmy got the KY and showed the boys how to get her ready explaining as he went along. The two boys stared, astonished as Timmy easily slid his cock up her ass to his balls. Amanda looked back at the boys smiling.

"See guys it's easy when you know how. Now you guy's lie down next to me so you can reach my pussy and I can suck your cocks while Timmy fucks my ass hole. One of you put some fingers in my pussy and the other can rub my clit." The boys did as she instructed and soon Greg had two fingers in her pussy and Marty was rubbing her clit, while Timmy was pounding into her ass. Amanda had one cock in her hand and the other in her throat.

"Fuck I can feel Timmy's cock fucking her ass." Greg exclaimed. Amanda was busy sucking the two cocks. She would suck one for a while then she would switch, continuously stroking the other with her hand. It took along time for the boys to cum but Amanda was cumming almost continuously. She felt Greg's cock swelling in her hand so she quickly put her mouth over his cock.

"Fuck I'm cumminggggggg." Greg yelled, shooting her mouth full of cum which she quickly swallowed. When she was sure she had gotten all of it she went back to sucking Marty. Just as she felt Timmy's cock jump and squirt in her ass, Marty let loose in her mouth She sucked on his deflating cock until her own orgasm subsided and Timmy slipped from her ass.

"That was really a good fucking you guys gave me. As soon as you all get hard again I'm going to give you all a special treat." She lay between Greg and Marty with a cock in each hand; Timmy went into the bathroom to clean his cock.

When he returned Amanda was still stroking their cocks while they sucked on her tits. Both boys were almost hard. Amanda slid down and sucked on their cocks until they were both full hard.

"OK I think your ready now, I want a cock in my ass and another in my pussy. Since Timmy's is still soft I'll suck his cock, it don't have to be hard to get sucked besides it'll get hard as soon as I start sucking it. Marty you get my pussy and Greg you get my ass. You won't have to get me ready just rub a little of that KY stuff on your cock and shove it in."

"How do we go about doing this Mandy?" Marty asked.

"You lay down on your back and I'll sit on your cock then Greg gets behind me and sticks his in my ass. Timmy knows what to do."

"OK lets get going, this really sounds fun." Marty said, stretching out on the bed. They all moved around and got into position. Both boys buried their cocks in Amanda's holes and she took Timmy's still soft cock in her mouth and sucked it as hard as she could. She pulled her mouth away from Timmy's cock.

"You guys fuck me really hard, OK." The boy's started fucking her; they soon got the rhythm going and were shoving in and pulling out in unison. Amanda went wild she was bouncing back on the two cocks like a rubber ball; an orgasm racked her body then another.

Timmy's almost hard cock in her throat muffled her screams and moans. The boys continued to pound into her, she said she wanted them to fuck her really hard and they were doing their best to give her what she wanted. Amanda was delirious, she was having almost a continuous orgasm, as soon as one started to subside another would begin. Greg was the first of the boys to cum, Amanda felt his cock jerk and shoot filling her ass, and before Greg was finished Marty came shooting her pussy full. The boys continued to pound into her, cum was squishing out of both her holes, coating their balls and running down Amanda legs. Timmy let out a loud grunt and filled her mouth, she swallowed it all without losing a drop. All three of the boy's cocks were softening and they finally stopped, letting their cock slip from their respective holes.

Amanda lay on top of Marty her body jerking, soft sobs coming from her throat. Timmy looked down at her and saw tears streaming down her cheeks.

"Oh Mandy have we hurt you? I think she's hurt guys." Amanda rolled off Marty onto her back, smiling and wiping the tears from her face.

"I'm not hurt, it just felt so fucking good I had to cry. We'll switch around until everybody has fucked my pussy, ass and mouth." She said while wiping cum from her legs, ass and pussy and licking it from her hands. The boys laughed in relief, glad she was O.K.

"Man that was some fuck I could feel Greg's cock rubbing against mine it was almost like we was fucking the same hole." Marty said. "Yeah I felt the same way, I want her pussy next." Greg chimed in. "No you get my mouth next Timmy gets my pussy, after that you can have my pussy. You better go wash the shit off your cock if you want me to suck it."

When Greg came back from the bathroom Amanda was on the floor on her knees sucking the other two boys cocks. She looked up at him smiling.

"Come on Join the party I want to get you ready again. You know, I bet that's why they call it a blow job, cause it makes cocks blow up like a balloon." She said with a giggle. She soon had them hard again.

After everyone had their turn at each of her holes, they were all lying around on the bed talking about what they would do next.

"I know what I want next, Marty you know you said it feels like your fucking the same hole when we fucked like that. That's what I want, I want two cocks in my pussy at the same time."

"Mandy are you sure you can do that, your pussy is awful tight. I'm afraid we might hurt you." Timmy said.

"Oh Timmy Just try, if it hurts too much I'll tell you. Besides you could get me ready like you do my asshole. Just stick a whole bunch of fingers in me till I stretch. Maybe you could get your whole hand in my pussy, I hope so." Timmy agreed to try, He greased both of his hands and crammed one finger from each into her hole then he pulled at the sides of he pussy spreading it as wide as he could.

"That feels good Timmy use some more fingers." Timmy inserted two more fingers, soon he had six fingers in her and she still didn't complain.

"Doesn't that hurt Mandy?" He asked

"Just a little, but I don't care do it some more." Timmy pulled and stretched her cunt lips until there was almost room for three more fingers between the six he already had in her.

"I think your ready, who gets to go first?" Timmy asked.

"You, and I think Marty, cause he has the skinniest cock. Marty you lay down like before and I'll sit on your cock, only backwards, then I'll lay back on your chest, Timmy will get between my legs and stick his cock in too, Greg you get beside Marty and I'll suck yours." Timmy smeared his cock with the lubricant he already had on his hands, then wiped them on a towel he had brought from the bathroom. By the time he had finished, Amanda was already lying on Marty's chest with his cock in her pussy. "Hurry Timmy, stick it in and fuck the shit out of me."

Timmy noted how Amanda's vocabulary was growing; he remembered some lady on the tape had said that. He positioned himself between her wide spread legs and pushed the head of his cock into her along the bottom of Marty's cock when he had about an inch in he stopped.

"Does it hurt Mandy?"

"Just a little bit, go ahead put the whole thing in." Timmy watched her face as he slowly pushed his cock in with Marty's. She was groaning and throwing her head from side to side.

"Fuck! Yes! Give it to me, fuck me to death." She cried. Timmy pushed in until his and Marty's balls were touching then they slowly pulled out and pushed back in, soon they were stroking into her with ease.

Amanda found the head of Greg's cock, which he was pushing and rubbing all over her face. She sucked him deep into her throat, then she closed her eyes and let him stroke in and out as he wished. She tried to keep her hips still so she wouldn't dislodge the cocks in her pussy, it was hard to do when she came but the boys managed to keep inside of her. Amanda lost track of time the orgasms were putting her into sort of a daze. She regained her senses enough to swallow Greg's cum when it began squirting it into her sucking mouth. Then she felt the two cocks in her pussy shoot her pussy full. All four of the kids relaxed. All three cocks in Amanda went soft.

She pulled her head away from Greg's cock and lay her head back onto Marty's shoulder.

"Wow! What a fuck." she said. "You can say that again." Timmy agreed, pulling out of her and laying back on the bed. Marty rolled Amanda over onto her side and got out of bed.

"I wish I could stay and fuck with you guys all day, but it's almost noon, my Mom will have lunch ready and she will really be pissed if I'm not there." he said.

"The same goes for me." Greg said.

Both of the boys began to get dressed.

"Why don't you guys come back after lunch and we will fuck her some more."

"Yeah, that's a good idea." Greg said.

"Sounds good to me too." Marty added. Amanda was busy cleaning up the cum from between her legs.

"Hey, I know, you guys bring your sisters with you and we can have a fuck party." Amanda said, thinking of the party on the tape.

"Now that's what I call a good Idea." Timmy said, he had always wanted to fuck his friend's sisters. " "Yeah, that really does sound fun, we could have an orgy." Greg said.

"What's an orgy?" Amanda asked.

"It's a fuck party." Greg laughed.

"I think Marsha will want to come she likes to fuck but She won't suck a cock." Marty said.

"I bet she does after she sees how much I like it." Amanda said.

"I'm sure Polly will come, she's already told me she wants to fuck Timmy and Marty. Amanda may be right she makes cock-sucking look like it's the best thing in the world." Greg said.

Timmy wanted to fuck both of his friends sisters especially Polly because she was older. Most of the time older girls wouldn't fuck younger guys.

"I can't believe I'm going to get to fuck both of your sisters, look my dick getting hard again just thinking about it. You guys come back in about an hour and a half, that'll give us time to have lunch and get cleaned up. O.K.?" the two boys agreed and headed home for lunch.



Mandy 1

g_goyal2000 on Incest Stories

(Part I of IV)



Amanda Blake was alone and bored. She wasn't supposed to be alone but her big Brother Timmy who was supposed to be her sitter was across the street at the park, playing ball with his friends. Her Mom and Dad were visiting her Aunt Cindy and Uncle Jerry Barrett. They visited them one or two times a month and spent the whole weekend with them. They were very close, Aunt Cindy was her Dad's sister and Uncle Jerry was her Mom's Brother, They were married in a double wedding and honeymooned together. She wished her best friend Janie was here. Janie was ten the same age as Amanda and she had a sister named Carol who was 13 the same age as Timmy. Janie's Parents picked her up from school and they weren't returni

Read More
ng until late Saturday. Amanda knew she would probably be alone all this afternoon and tomorrow. She was lying on her bed watching cartoons, which she had already seen a thousand times.

"I think I'll look out front and see what Timmy's doing." She said aloud, as she picked up her remote and flipped the TV off.

She started down the hall and noticed the door to her Mom's bedroom was ajar. "I bet Timmy has been in there prowling around, he knows we're not allowed in there when Mom and Dad are gone." She pushed the door open and peered in nothing was out of place. She started to close the door when a thought hit her. No one will ever know, this could really be exciting; She could look at her Mom's things and maybe even try on some of her makeup. She headed straight for her Mothers dresser, she opened the top drawer and found her mothers panties, and she picked up a pair and held them up. "Boy these won't cover up much." She thought. She looked at a few more then she put them away just as she found them.

Amanda pulled out the big drawer under that one. "What are these things" She picked one of the things up and looked at it. It was made of pink plastic, it was long and thin and one end was bigger and was shaped like an arrowhead. She looked at several more, they were all the same except different sizes and shapes, and the biggest one of all had a pink body with a red arrowhead. Amanda puzzled, there was also a funny looking triangle shaped thing with a hole in it and it had leather straps attached at the corners. She put everything back where she found them.

She opened a few more drawers and found nothing but some bras and nightgowns. Then her eyes fell on the closet, she went over to it and looked inside. "Nothing but clothes." She thought and started to turn away when she saw something on the shelf. "That looks like video tapes." She said aloud. There were several tapes in a neat stack on the shelf. "That'll give me something to do." She thought, wondering what they were about. She went over and picked up the dresser stool and placed it under the shelf. She took the top tape from the stack and looked at it, there was only some hand written numbers on it, Amanda thought it looked like a date. She took the tape and replaced the stool and left the room being sure to close the door as she left.

Back in her bedroom with the door closed, she slipped the tape into the VCR, going to her bed she found her remote and turned on the TV and started the tape. The screen lit up and she saw her Mother and Uncle Jerry sitting on the couch talking but there was no sound. "Oh it's a home Movie" Amanda said. Then the sound came on.

"How was your week Andrea" Uncle Jerry said.

"Jerry, if you really want to know, I was really horny all week and what I would love to do right now is suck your cock."

"Well Sis your wish is my command." Jerry said standing up and facing her.

"Suck his cock" Amanda thought, "What's a Cock?" She had heard the bigger kids say that before but she had no idea what it meant.

She watched as her Mother reached up and pulled the shorts he was wearing down to his knees and this big thing sprang out and pointed right at her Mom's face. "That must be his thing. What is that hanging down under it?" Amanda was amazed; she had never seen a man's thing before not even her brothers.

Her Mother wrapped her fingers around it and stroked her hand up and down its length while with her other hand she fondled the sack hanging below.

"Suck my balls Andrea" Jerry said. Andrea lifted his thing up and sucked half the hanging sack into her mouth. "Now the other one."

Amanda watched in amazement as her mother dropped the half in her mouth and sucked in the other side. "That must be his balls." She thought.

"Now suck my cock." He said. Amanda thought Uncle Jerry sounded excited.

Her mother backed off and looked at the thing in her hand then put her mouth over it and started sucking. "Wow! His thing is his cock. How cool." Amanda said aloud.

She watched carefully as her Mother sucked and licked at his cock then Andrea pushed her face forward and forced the whole thing into her mouth until his balls were against her chin.

"Yes swallow it" Uncle Jerry cried.

Amanda could see her mother's throat swallowing. She could not understand how she could put such a big cock into her throat. Andrea backed off and started licking and sucking again.

All of a sudden Amanda's Dad came onto view. Amanda thought there was sure to be trouble, but he just stood there for a while smiling. Then he turned his head and yelled over his shoulder.

"Hey Cindy come here and watch, Andrea is giving Jerry a blow-job."

Aunt Cindy came and stood next to her Dad. After watching a moment Aunt Cindy turned to her Dad and said.

"Jim, I don't want to watch I want to suck a cock too."

Jim took her hand and led her to the couch where she sat next to Andrea and started stripping his pants down soon she had his big cock waving in her face. Amanda stared at it.

"I want to suck a cock too." She said.

Her Dad's cock was much longer and thicker then Uncle Jerry's. But Aunt Cindy soon had it all the way down her throat.

Sometimes Cindy would take it from her mouth and lick it, this gave Amanda a good view of it. She thought it was beautiful. One time when she was licking around it a drop of clear liquid appeared at the slit in the end and Aunt Cindy quickly licked it up. Looking up she said.

" I just love pre-cum."

Amanda thought it was pee but now she knew it was pre-cum, whatever that was. "Suck the head Sis." Jim said. And Amanda saw her suck on the very end. Her daddy moaned.

Then Amanda heard her uncle Jerry yell out in a loud voice.

"I'm going to cum Andrea, I'm going to drown you with cum, here it comes." Andrea pulled back holding her mouth wide open and holding his cock directly in front of her open mouth. Amanda saw a white stream of liquid squirt from the head of his cock into her mom's open mouth, it squirted again and again, there was a pool of the stuff plainly visible inside her mouth as she closed her lips back over his cock and swallowed. Her Mother had eaten it all. Then she heard her Dad cry out that he was cumming and Aunt Cindy did the same thing, except her Dad shot more stuff and some of it ran down Aunt Cindy's chin. Before she closed her lips back over the squirting cock.

After the women sucked a while they both dropped the cock they was sucking and started kissing each other. Amanda could see their tongues going in and out of the others mouth. Then her mother started licking the white stuff off Cindy's chin and eating it.

"Boy that cum stuff must really be good." Amanda said.

The men left the picture but not before Amanda noticed that Uncle Jerry's cock was no longer big and it was hanging limp between his legs but her Dad's big cock was still sticking straight out and was waving around. "Oh I just love Daddy's cock." Amanda thought.

The women now alone, began undressing each other; this only took moments since they were both only wearing shorts and a halter. When her Mothers breast sprang into view.

Amanda Gasped "Oh how pretty."

"Suck my tits Cindy." Andrea said.

Cindy lowered her head and sucked one of Andrea's nipples into her hungry mouth. After sucking and licking one she moved to the other. "Tits must taste really good." Amanda thought.

She rubbed her own small tit through her dress. "Umm that feels so good I bet it feels good to have your tits sucked."

Then Aunt Cindy pulled her mouth away from her mother's tit and said "Andrea, I want to eat your cunt." "Eat her cunt?"

Amanda wondered what that meant. "Let's do each other." Andrea said.

Amanda was astonished to see them lie down side by side on the couch and put their heads between the others legs. The camera moved and she could see her mother's tongue licking Aunt Cindy's thing then it was showing Aunt Cindy doing the same thing to her Mother.

"Their things are cunts." She exclaimed aloud.

Amanda stared at her Mothers cunt. It had hair all around it and she could see her little button. Then Aunt Cindy started licking the button. "That's it lick my clit, lick it." Andrea yelled.

"A girls thing is a cunt and her button is a clit." Amanda shouted gleefully.

Then the camera was showing her Mom again.

"Aunt Cindy don't have any hair on her cunt." She watched carefully as her mother licked and sucked at the cunt, seeing her mother push her tongue in the hole and lick.

"She looks like she's trying to get her whole head in." Amanda was amazed.

Then her mother reached above her head and took something from the table by the couch,

"Why that's one of those rubber things like in Mom's drawer." She thought.

" Those things looks just like a cock." "I wonder what she's going to do with that."

Her mother wasted no time showing her. She placed the end right in the opening of Aunt Cindy's cunt and pushed it right up inside her.

"Wow she pushed it right up in her belly."

"Fuck me with that thing" Cindy cried. "Fuck me hard and lick my clit."

Andrea pulled the thing out then shoved it right back in then she done it again and again all the time licking at Cindy's clit.

"Oh shit your making me cum, I'm cumming." Aunt Cindy screamed.

Her body was bucking all over the place. Then her mother started trashing about and she was yelling "I'm cumming to." After a while they settled down and sat up holding and kissing each other. Then they licked all the juice from their cunts from each other's face.

"Sucking cocks and cunts must really be fun." Amanda thought.

The men returned and uncle Jerry's cock was sticking out again. Her mother grabbed Jerry's hard cock and started jerking on it. Amanda thought she was going to suck it again but Uncle Jerry knelt down between her wide spread legs and pointed it right at her hairy cunt.

"Fuck me Jerry stick your hard cock in my pussy." Amanda heard her mother say.

Then she saw Uncle Jerry push his cock right into her Mother's cunt. "That's it fuck me fuck me hard."

"Fuck me too Jim I need a hard cock in my cunt." Aunt Cindy yelled."

Amanda watched as her Dad went to his knees and pushed his big cock into Aunt Cindy's cunt.

Amanda couldn't believe how easy the big things slid right up into their bellies. Then the men started moving their cocks in and out really fast and the two women was bouncing their butts up and down.

"That's it, fuck me fuck me harder, harder." Her mother screamed.

Amanda watched the big cocks pounding the women's cunts she could see and hear their balls slapping against their butts. The women were moaning and yelling out and the men were panting and grunting. They continued this for some time before the women both started yelling that they were cumming. The men kept going until finally Uncle Jerry yelled that he was cumming too.

Then her dad said "Cindy I'm going to cum where do you want it."

"My tits, cum on my tits," Cindy said.

"Come in my cunt I want it in my cunt." Andrea yelled.

Jim pulled his cock out and stood up and his cock started spurting white cum all over Aunt Cindy's tits, one spurt hit her chin and another landed in her hair. Jerry was filling Andrea's cunt full of the stuff. Finally Jerry pulled his limp cock from her cunt.

"Now that's what I call fucking." Andrea said smiling at him.

Then she moved over to Cindy and started licking Jim's cum from her tits. Amanda thought Aunt Cindy had nice tits, they weren't as big as her mothers but they were nice and she wished she were licking her fathers cum from them. Andrea licked her clean, she got it all, and she even licked it from Cindy's hair. Cindy lay down on her back and Andrea stood and with one foot on the floor and her knee on the couch she straddled Cindy's head. Her cunt was directly over Cindy's wide-open mouth. A thick stream of cum drained from her cunt and fell onto Cindy's tongue; Cindy swallowed and then pushed her tongue deep into Andrea to get what was left. She laid her head back on the couch and pushed a big gob out onto her lips. Andrea leaned over and sucked it from her lips, then Andrea stuck her tongue out and Amanda could see the big gob on her tongue then Cindy sucked Andrea's tongue into her mouth. They kept swapping the cum back and forth, now sitting up and rubbing each other's tits. The two men flopped down beside them, both with limp cocks.

"You two are really a couple of cum sluts." Jim laughed. Then the screen went black.

Amanda sat in silence for a moment, picking up the remote she pushed stop then rewind and heard the machine rewinding. She felt funny and her panties were wet. Standing up she pulled her dress over her head and stripped off her panties. Going to the mirror she looked at herself, She liked what she saw her tits were quite large for a ten year old and her hips and legs were nice, she turned around and tried to see her backside but couldn't. Turning back around she examined her cunt she spread her legs and pulled the lips apart it was pink and really gooey inside she pushed her finger in, "Boy that really feels good." She said. Then she rubbed her clit. "That feels even better." "Cunt" She said. "Mom called her cunt a pussy, I like pussy better I'll call my cunt pussy too."

Then she remembered the rubber cocks in her Mother's dresser. She started to slip her dress back on thinking that Timmy might come in while she was in the hall. But she threw it back on the bed and went out nude. "I hope Timmy does come in and see me naked." She said. In her Mother's room she went directly to the drawer and opened it. She examined each of the cocks taking them out one at a time and standing them side by side on the dresser. When she pulled out the big one with the red head, she said, "This looks just like daddy's cock." In the bottom of the drawer she found one she had missed earlier, it was really long and had a head on both ends.

"This must be for fucking two cunts at once." She said.

She studied the line up of dildos and decided the one that looked like her daddy's was to big to start with, so she selected a middle size one. She started to put all the others back in the drawer she spied a tube of something in the corner of the drawer. She picked it up, "KY Jelly." She read. "I wonder what this stuff is for" She returned it to the drawer along with the other dildos.

She hurried back to her room being sure to leave her door open wide in case Timmy came in. She lay on the bed and spreading her legs wide started to push the dildo into her pussy the head went in with a little pushing but then it stopped. Amanda pushed harder and it hurt a little, then she remembered something that Janie's sister Carol had told them. "The first time you do it you get your cherry popped, it hurts and you bleed a little. But after that it don't hurt any more, it feels good." At the time Amanda had no idea what "Doing it." was but now she knew it was fucking and that she was going to have to pop her cherry before she could fuck herself with the rubber cock. She pushed harder put she couldn't get it in. She got on her knees and placed the dildo on the bed with the head still in her pussy she pushed down hard but still no luck. "Well here goes. "She said. She relaxed her body and let all of her weight push against the dildo. She felt something break and she plopped down. Her pussy was against sheets and the dildo was in her belly. It hurt, she sat very still, gritting her teeth and closing her eyes to keep the tears from coming.

The pain began to subside and she tried moving around a little, it hurt but at the same time felt good deep in her pussy. She waited a little longer, and then she rolled onto her back and lifted her legs getting her armpits behind her knees. In this position she could see the dildo sticking out a little, she grabbed it with her fingers and pulled it out slowly, when she had it about half way out she stopped and saw a little pink liquid on it. "I'm not bleeding much at all." She said relieved. Then she pushed it back in all the way. "Oh, that feels so good." She began pumping it in and out. Slowly at first with short strokes, then faster and longer strokes. Soon she was pounding her self, moaning and saying words aloud. "Fuck, cock, cunt, pussy, suck, cum." She chanted, using all the words she had learned from the tape.

Then she felt strange feelings deep in her pussy. "Oh what's happening?" The feelings became stronger.

"I think I'm going to cum," then she was cumming. The contractions were so good she didn't know if she could stand it. Her hand pumping the dildo was a blur. And her little ass was gyrating; she put her heels on the bed and pumped her pussy up at the dildo.

Her moans were loud and her screams louder. After a long while her orgasm subsided. Her nude body was covered with sweat.

"WOW, no wonder Mom likes to fuck so much, that was so good. "I wonder if I could do it again." She pulled her knees up as they were before, and started stroking the dildo into her pussy again. Soon her second orgasm hit her it was even better then the first, but she didn't stop she kept stroking right through it. After her fourth orgasm she stopped, she was just too tired to go on. She stretched out on the bed with the dildo still in her pussy.

"I'll do it again after I rest." She thought. She lay still; thinking of how much fun fucking was and drifted off to sleep.

Timmy came in and wondered why it was so quiet; usually Amanda had the TV on when he was gone. "I bet she's into something she shouldn't be." He quickly climbed the stairs and headed for Amanda's room. The door was wide open so he saw her before he entered the room. "She's lying of the bed naked and she's got something stuck in her pussy." He thought. "Boy she's really something, would I ever like to fuck her." But he knew he couldn't because she was his sister, if she told on him his mom and dad would kill him. He took a long look at her examining every inch of her sweet little body. Her orange size tits were pointed and sticking straight at the ceiling. Her skin was flawless and he thought her little pussy with whatever it was sticking in it was the most beautiful thing he had ever seen. Timmy had often thought of fucking her when he was masturbating, but he never knew she looked this good.

His two best friends were both fucking their sisters, Marty was fucking his twin Marsha and Greg was fucking his older sister Polly, they were always bragging about it to him. He kept telling them over and over that it was wrong and they were going to get caught, but they just laughed at him. He went over to the bed and touched her shoulder then he shook her a little Amanda's eyes opened and she smiled at him.

"Mandy, what have you been doing." He asked.

Everyone in the family and all of her friends called her Mandy, when she was born he was only three and he called her Mandy all the time so the name stuck.

"Oh Timmy I've been doing it to myself, it's so much fun and feels so good.

She reached down and pulled the dildo out a little then pushed it back in. "Your bleeding, you busted your cherry."

"I had to so I could do it to myself Timmy." "You've been jacking-off."

"Jacking-off, is that what it's called? Well I love jacking-off, do you ever jack- off Timmy?" "Sometimes." Timmy lied. In fact he masturbated all the time, he had masturbated less than an hour ago with his friends in their hideout in the park. It wasn't a real hide out it was a small clearing in the middle of a big clump of bushes Timmy had stumbled on to it once when they were playing hide and seek. It was really hard to find if you didn't know the way through the bushes. Timmy and his two friends went there everyday to jack-off.

They had no idea that Amanda and Janie knew about the spot. But Timmy was always saying. "I'll meet you at the hideout." When he was talking to them on the phone. This got Amanda's curiosity up so she and Janie spied on the boys. They saw them go into the bushes and stay a long time. When they came out and left. The girls entered the bushes in the same spot and after a while found the clearing, now sometimes when the boys weren't around they would go there and just sit and talk.

"Does it feel really good when you jack off Timmy? It feels better than any thing when I do." Amanda said.

"Yes it feels really good Mandy. Now we must get you cleaned up. You have gotten blood on the sheet; Mom will kill us if she sees that. You go take a shower and I'll change the sheet and put this one in the washer." When Timmy came back from the basement he sat on the clean sheet and waited for Amanda to come out of the bathroom. When she did he was surprised that his little sister was still naked. She crawled onto the bed lay on her back with her legs slightly spread giving Timmy a perfect view of her little pussy.

"Are you going to do it to me now Timmy?"

"Mandy, I can't do it to you you're my sister and your not supposed to do it to your own sister." He said. "Boy I wish she wasn't my sister, I want to fuck her more than anything." He thought.

"It's O.K. to do it to your sister." She said." "It is not, Mandy." "Is so." "Is not" "Is so, I can prove it." "Prove it, how can you prove it."

"You just sit right there mister smarty pants and I'll show you." Amanda picked up the remote and flipped on the TV and started the VCR, When he heard his mother say she wanted to suck Uncle Jerry's cock He looked over at Amanda.

"Told ya." She said with a big grin. Timmy glued his eyes back on the TV and didn't move again until the screen went black. Amanda stopped the tape and flipped off the TV.

"Now are you going to fuck me?"

Timmy didn't say anything he just kicked his shoes off and stripped off his socks then standing. He pulled his T-shirt over his head and threw it to the floor, then undoing his pants he pulled them and his shorts down to his ankles kicking them free, he stood naked in front of Amanda with his cock waving at her.

"Oh neat, let me touch it Timmy." By now she was sitting on the edge of the bed. She reached up and wrapped her fingers around his stiff cock.

"Oh Timmy it's so pretty." Her other hand reached for his balls. "I just love your Balls, can I suck em."

Without waiting for an answer she pushed one of his balls into her mouth, and sucked. "Go easy Mandy, easy." Amanda sucked and licked at his balls.

"Now I'm going to suck your cock." She said looking up at him.

Timmy said nothing; he thought he was in a dream. Amanda opened her mouth and put her lips over his cock and started sucking and licking, Timmy began pumping his cock in and out of her mouth. Amanda moved back.

"Hold still a minute Timmy I'm going to try putting it in my throat the way Mom and Aunt Cindy does."

On the first try she gagged, she tried again and gagged again. Amanda was a very determined little girl. Backing off, and taking a deep breath she opened her mouth wide and fighting off the urge to gag. Slid her mouth all the way down until her nose was in his cock hairs and her chin was pressed against his balls. She backed all the way off and done it again, after the fourth time it was easy. She backed all the way off. "Now you can fuck my throat." She said, looking up at him and smiling.

Timmy pushed his cock as far as it would go into her sucking mouth and started fucking in and out of her throat. He could feel her throat swallowing as it went in.

Timmy had never had his cock in anything but his hand. He had never been so excited in his life. He could feel the sperm boiling up from his balls.

"I'm going to cum already Mandy, suck it hard." Mandy sucked hard, she felt his cock buck and got her first ever taste of cum, his cock kept jerking and spiting cum into her little mouth, she swallowed it all.

Saving the last rolling it around in her mouth to get more of the taste. She licked and sucked on his cock until she had every drop that was going to come out.

Then slipping his cock from her mouth. "Timmy I just love cum, it taste so good, I want to do this all the time, can we?"

"I love for you to suck my cock Mandy, you can do it anytime you want."

"Can we fuck now?" She asked.

Timmy looked down at his cock it was about half hard but he knew it would be standing up again real soon. "In a minute Mandy."

"I know Timmy, suck my tits, then suck my pussy and clit then fuck me." She said, lying back on the bed.

Timmy lay next to her putting his hand on her tit, this was the first time he had ever touched a tit, he leaned over and took her nipple in his mouth. And began sucking.

"Ooo that feels so good Timmy do the other one." Timmy moved to her other tit and put his hand down to cup her pussy mound.

Still sucking her tit he ran his finger up and down her pussy lips. Amanda spread her legs wide.

"put your finger in Timmy." She grabbed his hand to guide his finger to her hole. Timmy pushed in as far as he could. Her pussy was wet and warm and extremely tight.

"Oh Timmy that feels so good, suck it now, lick my pussy, please." Timmy moved down until he was lying on the bed between her pretty legs. He looked at her pussy, it was beautiful, he placed a finger on each side of her cunt and spread it open. It was pink inside. He licked her from the very bottom of her cunt up over her clit just as he had seen his Mom do to Aunt Cindy. Timmy decided he liked the taste of pussy. He started licking and sucking, using everything he had learned from his Mom and Aunt.

"Ooh, that feels so good, I didn't know it was going to feel this good. Your going to make me cum in no time" Timmy kept it up; the more he licked the more he liked it.

"I told you, I'm going to cum, fuck me, hurry put your cock in me while I'm cumming. Here it comes Timmy, fuck me, hurry." Timmy moved up over her. She grabbed his cock and fed it into her little pussy.

Timmy pushed in as far as he could go he could feel her pretty ass against his balls. He could feel the contractions in the walls of her pussy. Amanda went wild, her hips were bucking and she was screaming out all the words, she had learned only a few hours before. "Fuck, cock, cunt, cum," she shouted. Timmy lay still until her orgasm subsided. Amanda looked into his eyes. "Timmy, Ooh, your cock feel so good in my pussy, it feels a lot better than that rubber cock felt. Its longer and fatter and it stretches my pussy so good. Now fuck me with it, Fuck me good, make me cum a thousand times."

Timmy had never fucked before but he knew just what to do because he had watched his Dad and Uncle fuck. He pulled out and pushed back in hard, then went into a fast rhythm.

"Fuck harder Timmy, fuck me harder." Amanda screamed. He pounded into her, and her hips were rising to meet each thrust. "I'm going to cum Timmy, I'm cumming again, Keep fucking me."

Timmy kept fucking her and soon Amanda screamed out another orgasm. Timmy could feel the cum starting up out of his balls.

"I'm going to cum Mandy right up your cunt, here it cum's, Aggggg."

"Yes shoot it in my hole, fill me with your sweet cum." Timmy's cock spurted and spurted he had never cum like this from jacking off.

For a long time he lay on top of her. Amanda struggled and pushed on his chest, he pushed up with his arms and looked at her, Her eyes were wide with excitement.

"Timmy, your cock's still hard, fuck me again, hurry fuck me." Timmy fucked her again Amanda came three times before he unloaded another load of cum into her hot little pussy. Timmy rolled off of her, his cock coming out with a slurping sound. Both of them were exhausted, and Timmy's cock was soft, Amanda had never seen it when it was all the way soft. She put her hand around it, it was all slimy but she didn't mind she loved it. Timmy dosed off to sleep almost immediately. Amanda moved up on to her knees, holding her hand below her pussy and watched as Timmy's cum drained out of her pussy into her palm. When her palm was full she switched hands and drank the cum from her hand then she switched hands again. She kept doing this until no more ran out then she scooped out as much of the gooey stuff as she could using her fingers then licking them clean. After consuming all of the cum she lay down next to Timmy grasping his cock again.

"I guess I'm just like my Mom, I'm a cum slut too." She thought as she dosed off to sleep.

Amanda awoke about an hour later; she was still holding Timmy's cock only now it was hard. She slipped down on the bed until her head was even with his cock, she was going to get a good look at it, she moved her hand up and down on it slowly pulling the foreskin up and down over the head. She noticed it was dry now and had white stuff on it. "That must be dried up cum." She thought. She licked his cock tasting the dried cum, deciding she liked the taste, she slid her mouth over his cock and pushed her chin down to his balls, lodging it in her throat. Using her hand, she tried getting one of his balls into her mouth too but her little mouth just couldn't open wide enough. She sucked and licked it like it was candy; bobbing her head up and down it's length. "I like sucking a cock almost as much as fucking," She thought.

Timmy stirred and open his eyes, putting both hand on her head. "Yeah, suck it Mandy, Suck it real good." Amanda looked up at him and smiled around his hard cock.

"Timmy really likes his cock sucked, I wonder if it feels as good as when he sucks my pussy."

"Mandy, put it in your throat and try to swallow it, yeah, like that, Agggg, shit your gonna make me cum."

Amanda slid her mouth off his cock. "Go ahead shoot me a mouth full." His cock spurted and hit Amanda in the eye; she quickly put her mouth over the head and felt the next squirt hit the roof of her mouth. He squirted spurt after spurt, Amanda swallowed as fast as she could but some ran out of the corners of her mouth and dripped on to his balls. Amanda kept sucking and licking until she had all that he was going to shoot then she licked the cum from his balls taking each one into her mouth and gently sucking it.

She wiped the big gob from her eye and ate it then she licked her fingers making sure she hadn't missed a drop. She put his softening cock back in her mouth and continued to suck it.

She tried to make it stand back up but it wouldn't, she took one of his balls in her fingers and pushed it into her mouth, along side of his soft cock, then she pushed the other one in too. She sucked and licked his soft cock and balls. Timmy groaned and pushed her head away. "Mandy stop, it's too tender." Amanda let his balls and cock plop out of her sucking mouth. She crawled up and stretched out on top of him, rubbing her hard titties against his chest.

"Timmy I want to fuck, suck my pussy then fuck me." "Mandy we must eat something besides pussy and cock, you go get cleaned up and I'll go down and heat up some of those TY dinners that Mom bought for us."

"Can we fuck some more after we eat?"

"We can fuck all night if you want."

"Goodie, I want to fuck a hundred times." She said, jumping from the bed and rushing to the bathroom.

Timmy prepared their dinner and went to the stairs and called Mandy. She appeared at the top of the stairs naked. He felt his cock hardening, as he watched her come down the stairs.

"Jeez Mandy, you're making my dick hard again." She walked by him and he followed her watching the cheeks of her little ass bounce up and down.

"God, you're giving me a hard-on."

"When your cock gets hard, it's a hard-on?" She asked.

"Yeah, when your dick gets hard you have a hard-on."

"What is it when its soft, a hard off?"

"No, Mandy it's just soft."

"You called your cock a dick, is it called that too?"

"Yeah, it's a dick, a prick, fuck stick, some people call it a penis."

"What about my pussy, is it called something besides a pussy or cunt?"

"It's called a slit or snatch too."

"Let me see your hard fuck stick." Timmy dropped his shorts to the floor and stepped out of them. Amanda grabbed his hard cock and stroked her hand up and down it.

"Let's eat naked." She said. After they ate she helped him clear the table grabbing at his swaying cock every time he was close enough.

"Let's hurry Timmy, I want to suck your cock again."

"Ok baby sister, I love it when you give me a blow-job."

"A blow-job? It's not blowing, it's sucking."

"Yeah I know but that's what people call it, it's also called giving head or face fuck."

"I want you to give me a face fuck with your fuck stick." Amanda giggled. "I want you to cum so much it'll run out my nose and my ears."

Timmy laughed. "I'll do the best I can you little doll. I don't know why I waited so long to fuck you. You're the sexiest little girl in the world."

"I wasn't so sexy before I saw the movies."

"You have always looked sexy baby sister."

"Do you really think so?" She said pointing her tits at him and shaking them. Timmy grabbed her tits. She let him fondle her then she grabbed his hand and pulled him towards the stairs.

"Let's go fuck." she said.

Back in her bedroom she sat on the edge of the bed and grabbed for his cock and slid it into her mouth and straight down her throat She pulled her head back and looked up at him.

"After I eat your cum Will you suck my pussy and fuck me?"

"Of course, just try and stop me." Amanda went back to sucking his cock.

The kids fuck and sucked each other for hours. Finally Timmy couldn't go any more and he fell asleep. Amanda lay there a long time holding his soft cock and rubbing her little hairless pussy.

She thought about all of the things she had learned today and it was only Friday, there was still Saturday and Sunday before her mom and dad would be home. They usually came home about four p.m. on Sunday when they stayed with her aunt and uncle. Tomorrow she could watch some more movies and learn some more and her and Timmy could fuck all day. Sunday she would tell Janie all about what she had learned and maybe Janie would let her suck her pussy. She wondered what pussy tasted like; it must be good because Timmy and her Mom and Aunt sure did like it. She drifted off into a deep sleep.

Brotherly, Sisterly Love II

g_goyal2000 on Incest Stories

For those not familiar with the wild gyrations between Roger and Ginger, brother and sister, he being divorced and 32, she a 35-year old, four-year widow, a brief resume is in order. To wit:

Roger, the moralist of the two, had been firmly convinced that incest, i.e., any fucking, muff diving, or cock sucking between close relatives like brother-sister, father-daughter, mother-son, etc., was not only immoral, but also constituted felonies in the criminal justice system for which they could both go to jail. Ginger took a much more practical position and figured that, with her two teen-age children off to summer camp for the next two weeks there was certainly nothing wrong with their sharing some adult physical, i.e., se

Read More
xual satisfaction, even if it had to be with her younger brother. Both of them were walking the walls for sex, Roger not having had it -- other than hand jobs -- for more than two years and Ginger celibate -- certainly not by choice -- for the four years since her husband, Jerry, died. It was only in her frequent dreams that she could mesmerize re-joining him in one of their frequent bouts of 69ing, which always preceded their good night fuck.

Having lost his house and children in his bitter and expensive divorce, Roger had moved into Ginger's three-bedroom house. The morning after her kids had been shuffled off to camp for a two-week stay, Ginger was not willing to beat around the bush with Roger any longer. He was either going to put up, shut up, and fuck her, or get his useless ass out of her house. She could no longer accept his old crappola about no-sex between relatives. She needed some regular fucking in the worst way and if he wouldn't give it to her, she was determined to leave the house in broad daylight, naked with only her bedroom slippers on, and beg the first stranger she met to fuck her. Ginger was so tired of having to finger her cunt for relief that she would have become a street whore if necessary to get her twat probed with any willing stiff prick.

After his morning shower, Roger in his jockey shorts was sitting on his bed grasping his morning boner, absent mindedly watching the morning news on TV, when Ginger, her hair still wet from her shower, fresh from her douche, came between him and his line of sight to the picture tube and stood bare-assed naked with her arms folded. "Roger, you no good bastard, just tell me which is better to see, the fucking news on TV or my tits and my pussy? I want you to stop acting like a limp-wrist faggot and fuck me right now. Any more of your nonsense about it being morally wrong, and you know what I'll do for the first man I meet in front of the house. I don't care what the neighbors say about me being nude and fornicating on the lawn."

Well so much for this short reprise, you readers of Volume I can't help but remember that, as usual, fucking triumphed over morality, giving reinforcement to the old saying that a stiff prick has no conscience, especially when confronted with pussy practically presented on a platter. I'm now going to quote a somewhat redacted version of the final climactic paragraphs from the previous volume as a lead in to this tome:

"Yes, little brother, yes, keep it coming. I want every last drop." Spurt after spurt lubricated her hole. Over and over, "Give it to me, Roger. Shoot it in my cunt," until he was finished squirting.

They lay in each other's arms for a little while, kissing, resting, and cuddling. Not a word was spoken. Then they got up, showered together, and chose to stay naked for a belated breakfast. Ginger made coffee and toast. He poured the orange juice as she fondled his ass. Roger said, "Ginger, my beloved and most talented sister, if you are as good at sucking my cock and giving blow jobs to your brother as I was in eating your pussy and licking your twitching sweet bung, we can just take the rest of the day off and enjoy our new found talents."

His response was a deep-throated kiss on the mouth, as Ginger's bare ass wriggled on his lap. What do you think her answer was?

As the only thing either of them wanted to eat in bed was each other they finished their toast and orange juice before walking hand-in-hand, this time to Roger's bedroom. His bed lacked the satin sheets which Ginger luxuriated in, but hers had become somewhat love soiled and sticky from their recent engagement. There were no further morality discussions from Roger as Ginger lovingly nudged him back onto the cotton sheeted mattress. After the heavenly tongue licking, pussy lapping, and twat sucking that Roger had enthusiastically treated her to -- not to mention the universe-shaking fuck -- Ginger was determined to be as kittenish and sexy as possible. Two weeks without the children could go by quickly, and there was no fucking time to be wasted.

She lay atop of Roger and stuck her tongue in his mouth while cupping his ball sack, rubbing her tits against his hairy chest. Squeezing and slurping his erect nipples, her hand slipped to the base of his cock, her fingers combing through his bushy crotch hair, which was quite a comparison to Ginger's smoothly shaven mound. She then meticulously described what she had in store for him.

"Roger, my little brother, you fucked me in the grandest style, bathing my entire body with your saliva, sticking your tongue in my mouth, my cunt, and even penetrated deep into my asshole, and now I'm going to get even with you by tormenting you until you beg me to get your rod to shoot its cream. But when I sense that you are about to cum, I'm goint to get up and strut my bare ass around the room bouncing my boobs beyond your grasp, if necessary, to keep you from cumming just yet and to extend our session. You made me cum at least a dozen times, and if I can, I'm going to get you off at least two or three times, but I intend it to take me a tantalizingly long time. We just had breakfast, and you now may end up being my lunch. Any objections?"

Hearing none, Ginger turned him over, face down, and proceeded to lick and between his shoulders, working her way down tantalizingly kissing and licking to the top of the slit between his ass cheeks. "Roger, darling, if I had had any idea of your incredible tonguing talents, believe me, we surely would have done this before, kids around or no kids. Some things in life are more important than being morally straight."

Having made this profound observation, Ginger spread his ass cheeks and spit into his crack. As her sputum ran down hill, she traced its progress toward his bung which was fresh from their shower, followed with her tongue. She couldn't help but remember vividly how she had done this so many times with her deceased husband, Jerry, and how excited he got when she stuck the tip of her tongue into his butt hole. Roger's quivering response caused her tongue to keep slipping in and out of his ass hole, and she plyed his bung with more of her spit before sticking her tongue back in to its full depth. As Roger squirmed convulsively, Ginger's tongue was alternated with first one, then two, and then three of her fingers to the hilt. Ginger's finger nails, fortunately, were kept short, and the in and out sensation was painless but excruciatingly delightful as she massaged his prostate gland.

Roger was in seventh heaven but couldn't help wondering when, if ever, he was going to be fed some of Ginger's sweet pussy. She had mentioned something about having a strawberry douche, but her sweet, natural taste had been enough to make him a regular at her special "Y" dining place. With her smooth, hairless pussy, he didn't have to worry about picking pubic hairs from his teeth, a tricky and an embarrassing thing to have to do in public, first having to explain how the cunt hairs got there in the first place. As the leader in this bout, Ginger turned him over, now face up toward the ceiling.

Quicker than a wink, she threw her right leg over his shoulder and mounted him knee high. Before he knew it, he was staring straight up at her glistening snatch. Moving slightly forward, Ginger positioned her cunt directly above his mouth and dropped it on his welcoming tongue. Her back and forth lunges kept his tongue in her pussy and brought the tip of his nose in and out of her bung. While Ginger's stated intent was that he was not yet to cum, she could not contain her own explosion, which flooded Roger's mouth and entire face with her juices. Asked about the lack of the promised strawberry flavor, she said, "Don't complain, little brother. If you like, next time I'll stuff some cherries in my slit, which you can then suck out with your tongue, one at a time. But that will give you something to look forward to. Remember that Rome wasn't built in a day and the many times you turned me down when I wanted you to fuck me."

Perfectly poised above Roger in the 69 position, Ginger had yet to mouth Roger's now pointedly erect cock. While perhaps longer than normal with an average girth, Rogers rod, with its pre-cum, was as taut as a banjo string. She licked his piss hole and slowly went down on him all the way to the balls. Detecting a gurgling sound in his nut sack, and not wanting him to shoot just yet, Ginger told him to sit up with his legs spread wide over the side of the bed and his feet on the floor. She then crawled toward him on the floor, head back and slipped her tongue under his nut sac and hand massaged his joint. Licking pre-cum from the tip of his plum-like cock head, she pushed him back on the mattress and mouthed his erectile rod so deep that the tip of his cock head was well past her gag point and aimed right at her stomach before she reluctantly withdrew.

"Roger, don't you dare come in my mouth right now. I do want to taste your juice and suck you off, but my special treat for you right now is my ass. I want you to tongue my bud and lick me loose so that you can give me my first asshole fuck in more than four years. Jerry always thought this was a special treat. When you are up and in me proper all the way to your balls, if you're a good boy, I may just let you shoot your cream."

Roger had fingered her bud in their earlier bout and knew that he was in for a tight squeeze, but a damn good ass fuck could be had only after his cock was properly inserted to the hilt and his balls tucked between the cheeks of her ass. Lacking lubricant, the best he could do was to take as much time as necessary, parting her ass cheeks and licking and tonguing her tiny bung, moistening his palm with saliva and making his cock as slippery as possible. When the time for buggering arrived, Ginger got out of bed and knelt on the floor for an old fashioned doggy bitch-type fuck. Never had he seen such a heavenly ass. But Roger said that he wanted to be able to see her gorgeous body, from her cunt up to her tits, while jabbing her love hole with his pecker. So he turned her over and put her legs, one over each of his shoulders, before making first contact with her eagerly twitching bung. His plum-like cock head aimed at her anal target and as Ginger made a bowel like push with her bung, the head slipped in surprisingly easy. Although he had never been there before, her asshole seemed to be welcoming him home. He now knew why Ginger had twice flushed her bowels with enemas before they had showered. She had had this in her mind at all times.

Before pushing his cock in all the way Roger wanted Ginger's asshole to relax further for the great fuck which was about to follow. With his balls resting at her asshole there was no further penetration possible, and after stroking in and out, in and out, Ginger said, "Roger, I've changed my mind and I now want to give you the best blow job you've ever had. I want to suck you off and swallow every last bit of your juice, so don't you dare come in my ass. Just slip your prick out of my ass and let me suck you off. Don't you pout about not cumming up in my gut, for I'll make it up to you, possibly this afternoon."

"Roger, do you realize that we've only been up since seven this morning. It's not yet 10:30. We've been to the moon and back, dozens of times, and now I want to put you in orbit. Don't forget we have all the rest of the day as well as the next two weeks to explore each other's fantasies without the children being about. So be a good little brother and slowly pull your cock out of my asshole like I asked before it dribbles any more and shoots, and let me give you a world championship blow job. That toast and orange juice did not satisfy my appetite, which is now voracious for the cream which I am about to get from your over due balls straight from your sweet dispensing tool.

Right from her asshole to her eager mouth, after Ginger had swallowed his pent-up load, she proceeded to lick his cock and balls clean as a whistle, missing not a drop of his cum. Demurely, kittenishly, she then sidled up to Roger with his head on his pillow, gave him a taste of his cum with a mouth to mouth French kiss and asked, "Do you have any thoughts as to what we might do the rest of the day?" With this first taste of his own cum, Roger responded, "Jokers are wild, my loving sister, but I hope it doesn't involve putting on any clothes or your getting fucked on the lawn by some stranger.

Speculation as to how they spent the rest of the day and the rest of their two weeks without the kids is rife, however, the actuality was beyond even your fertile imaginations. So don't get carried away.

P.S.

While heaven can wait, Ginger and Roger's two week sexual Olympics came to an exhausting end -- what a way to go. They both have now happily remarried and live about a 30-minutes drive apart. They can manage only necessarily infrequent trysts on neutral ground. They often meet in shopping mall parking lots where Ginger sucks him off and at motels that don't require luggage and rent by the hour. I've already told you what they do whenever the opportunity presents; and they still do it whenever they can. Neither of their new spouses has any reason to doubt their marital fidelity, and neither you nor I have reason to be suspicious of Roger and Ginger, who are, after all, brother and sister. Siblings don't do those things to each other, it says here . . . And if you believe that, I have some nice oceanside property in Montana that you might be interested in.

Brotherly, Sisterly Love

g_goyal2000 on Incest Stories

For the past four years, since Ginger's husband, Jerry, died she had been walking the walls for sex while getting off only by fingering her saliva moistened slit. But sex with an eligible male adult is very difficult to come by when a women is 35, with two teenage children living at home with her. Though Ginger and Jerry had been married 12 blissful years, their ravenous appetite for each other had never diminished. They just loved to eat and fuck each other. On an almost daily basis, there was cock sucking, muff diving, 69ing and a follow-up fuck for good measure. While not enthusiastic about it, once in a while, Ginger let him bugger her tight bung. But in order to get to fuck her asshole he had to do 30 minutes of begging, pussy lapping, asshole licking, a

Read More
nd afterwards reward her with dinner out at some very expensive place.

Ginger's 32-year old brother, Roger, was experiencing a similar sex-starved situation since his bitter and expensive divorce and his wife Ruth's remarriage. He lost the house and his kids in the divorce, and for the past few months he and Ginger had been celibately living together in her spare bedroom with her two children, sharing the kitchen, TV, and living room. Unbeknownst to the other, in the privacy of their respective bedrooms, both Roger and Ginger resorted to frequent bouts of self-abuse.

Roger had taken to renting XXXX porno movies, which he played in his bedroom with the door closed and the volume turned way down, so that Ginger would think he was asleep. When the hour arrived for Ginger to retire for the night, Roger would slip off his robe and stand naked facing the TV and a floor-to-ceiling mirror. Some nights he could get his balls off two or three times before giving in to the sleep fairy and a night of turning and tossing. His regular morning erections made a tent out of his top sheet.

Little did he know at the time that Ginger had sneaked one of his erotic movies to the TV in her room and spent hours massaging her firm boobs, fingering her juicy twat, and sucking her tasty cunt flavored fingers. This particular cassette showed explicit sexual frivolities between actors posing to be brothers and sisters, interspersed with scenes displaying daughters fucking and sucking off their fathers and sons fucking and going down on their mothers' pussies.

The next morning, Roger missed one of the TV movies, which were due to be exchanged at the rental place for others. He didn't want to broach the subject with Ginger, so he waited until she was in the shower to retrieve it. He was searching in her room, dressed only in his jockey shorts. Fresh from her shower, she was surprised to find him in her bedroom. Ginger walked in with with only a towel wrapped around her waist, with her ivory breasts perky and bare. She said, without any embarrassment whatsoever, that she had sneaked the cassette and had played it over and over more than three times while diddling her cunt and fingering her asshole.

"Roger, you may disagree, but I really don't see anything wrong with mature adults enjoying each other's bodies. If you and I were doing it like the actors in these cassettes, think of the money you could save on the rentals, and you'd certainly get a fuck more satisfying than your hand jobs. My dead husband had been a man of the world before we married, but he always told me that I was the greatest cock sucker and the best fuck he'd ever had."

"Don't stand there in your jockeys and tell me that you are not interested in my ass. I'd have to be blind not to have noticed the rise in your pants whenever you see me in my string bikini or my shorty bathrobe, you know the one that exposes my buns and my cunt from behind whenever I bend over. I do this for your benefit quite a few times every day just to see if you can still fog a mirror."

"A few gray hairs on my head haven't diminished my appetite for sucking cock and regularly getting a good fuck. I dearly loved to suck Jerry's cock for the delicious juice which he squirted from his hairy balls, and, after watching these sex movies, I have even imagined your cock juice surging past my tonsils. I haven't seen you naked since you were 12 years old, but the bundle you are showing off right now in your jockey shorts before my naked tits is very impressive. Roger, I want you to let me suck your cock and for you to fuck me now."

"Listen, Ginger, we are both mature and responsible adults, but we simply have to draw the line at brother-sister sex. Not only does the good book say that it is wrong, but the law in this state makes it a crime for which you and I can both go to jail. Your boobs and ass certainly look good in your thong swim suit, and your pussy is probably the sweetest thing for munching on that a girl can have between her legs, but we must put temptation down. Just between you and me, however, except for our close family relationship, I'd love to do right now with you everything those actors in the porno video did to each other. I salivate and my cock actually dribbles when I think of sucking and taking nourishment from your cunt. The cheeks of your ass enthrall me with the mystery of what you have in the valley between them."

"But, Roger, the kids are gone to summer camp for two weeks, and no one can possibly know what we do in complete privacy. This brother-sister thing isn't going to keep me from getting a great fuck. Your mind can hold back, but I can tell the way your cock is bulging right now that it doesn't seem to have much of a conscience, and I guarantee that it will feel better in my cunt than if you just jerked it off. Your five-finger cock massages don't do me a bit of good, and all that ball cream is just wasted. When I do the laundry, I see the dried hard spots on your sheets."

Ginger was quick to reply, "We are going to do it right now, even if I have to rape you. After we do it, if you are still bugged by this old-fashioned superstition about brothers and sisters not fucking each other, I promise that I'll put on my ankle length nun's garb and never display my ass to you again. Otherwise, if you choose, we can fuck each other's brains out for the next two weeks, while the children are away." At which point Ginger dropped her towel exposing her freshly smooth shaven mound and douched cunt and pulled Roger's jockies to his ankles. Her eyes sparkled as she saw his giant balls and his erect cock spring to attention as if on command.

"Let's not resist nature's demands any longer, Roger," Ginger, told him after a sensuous French kiss. His hands on her breasts triggered the flow of her vaginal juices, as she lovingly caressed his genitals while sucking his nipples. I have been waiting for you to fuck me much too long, and I can see by my handful of your goodies that you are as ready for action as I am."

Roger's cock in a flag-pole erection looked proud, and Ginger gasped as she looked at its magnificent plum-like head. She nearly orgasmed just thinking of how good it was going to feel in her hot, churning twat after a decent amount of his cunt lapping. As she caressed his meat, Roger fondled her tits, telling her what lovely knockers she had. Then he took her in his arms, and while they kissed, he rubbed his hands down her back to feel her ass cheeks and fingered into her smooth ass crack. Ginger loved the way he cuddled her and the way his pre-cum dripping rod poked against her belly button.

As their kiss ended, Roger stepped back, staring at his sister's lovely tits, flat belly, and pristine ass. While Ginger awaited with sexual desire, she felt happy with the appearance of her body, more proud than nervous at baring it to her very own brother. He had certainly been as sex starved as she. "I still can't believe that tits can be so beautiful, so big, so firm." He held one in each hand as he kissed and fondled them and their blooming erect nipples.

"Ginger, sister, you may wonder if I am ever going to get around to fucking you, but first I'm going to suck your gorgeous nipples, and I'm also going to eat your sweet pussy and make you cum with my tongue in your slit, you are going to be my original low-calorie breakfast, but to hell with the calories anyway. I've waited months for this and you are also going to get licked, kissed, and sucked a lot of other places as well. Big sister, you had to talk me into this, but now I'm going to drive you crazy, you are going to forget that I am your little brother with the 12-year old cock that you remembered all these years."

"After you have done all of that, Roger, and made me cum many times, I'll beg you to fuck me rough and hard with the cock that I feel poking my belly button and dripping on my belly. It can't help but be the greatest fuck ever when it's inside my hot cunt that you will have made it the juiciest it has ever been. As your nuts slap against me, I'll pretend that you are superman, but, of course, without the cape, and that it will last forever. If I cross my legs I can pin your cock in my love hole and make you my fucking prisoner."

"My sweet loving brother, if it will help you to forget that I'm your sister, you can call be Susy Slut or just some cheap, low-down common street whore. That way when we fuck, you won't be able to hold any of your cum back, and I want it all. While you are living here, I never want you to shoot off again without me being on the receiving end. Now you do really and truly want to fuck me don't you, Roger?"

"My silly, sister, be my private whore. You can get your answer by just shaking hands with my cock and imagine it buried in your slit rubbing your clit," Roger told her. Then they were kissing mouth to mouth again and her breasts were pressed against his hairy chest. His hands clutched her firm ass as they shared saliva.

Ginger was sighing loudly as Roger sucked and caressed her tits. While he sucked one of her luscious twin globes, he cupped them both. This drove her further into ecstasy. She then felt one of his hands slipping down to her belly, and she invitingly spread her legs wide for his probing. Roger's fingers traipsed the path right down to her shaven pube, and he felt the moist warmth of her cunt. His palm and fingers thrilled her as he continued to suck her nipples, back and forth like a windshield wiper, going back and forth, back and forth. "Roger, my cunt is so hot and juicy for you," Ginger said.

"I was just about to go down there for closer inspection, if you think you can stand a giant tongue licking cum." Ginger gasped as his face went into her crotch. As he licked and kissed her inner thighs and pussy lips, Roger slipped his hands under the cheeks of her ass. He fondled her cheeks, but kept on sucking and slurping in her crotch, making her twist and squirm for joy. Her body trembled in an orgasm that was as explosive as any she had ever known. "Oh, Roger," she sighed, "you must be a magician with that snake-like tongue."

Then Ginger turned over and lay face down as Roger's hands went to the gorgeous cheeks of her ass. When he kissed and licked the bare skin around her upper crack, Ginger nearly came again. It had been so long since her husband, Jerry, had kissed her there so tenderly, and she had missed it more than she knew. Before taking his mouth away, he licked the top of her crack and flooded it with saliva. From time to time, he would leave her butt cheeks and his hands would pull them apart; then he was between the delectable cheeks with his tongue and he was licking down where the sun don't shine. The tip of his tongue tickled her bung, and she quivered as he lapped her sweet bud, the length of his tongue exploring her innards.

"Now my demure big sister, Would you like me to get your hot twat ready for another cum? When she answered "Yes" by simply nodding her head, she turned over and bent her knees, moving her legs wide apart, he stared into her crotch where he saw a cunt that was truly inviting more loving attention. "Sis, why didn't you tell me about your beautiful cunt? It truly is a work of art." He parted the cunt lips, stroking gently between them with his saliva moistened fingers. He fingered her slit and felt her twinge. While he rubbed over her flat stomach and shaven pubes, Roger went on fingering her twat. When he found her clit, her body jerked spasmodically. She quivered uncontrollably as an almost unbearable orgasm grasped her from her tingling scalp to the tip of her toes.

He calmly pressed his hand on her cunt and held it there until her orgasm weakened and then passed. Roger began kissing her inner upper thighs as she prayed that his mouth would again find its way to her cunt for more muff-diving. It certainly would not take much lapping to get her off once again.. He worked slowly, and then she felt his moist breath on her crotch. Ginger expectantly waited for him to get her pussy in his mouth. She felt a tongue licking kiss on her gash, and then he was sucking the lips of her box. Ginger knew she was about to take off again with another super orgasm. As Roger sucked her cunt and fingered her bung, she just couldn't believe that the two of them could produce such out-of-this-world sensations. It certainly could never be that good again. But Ginger was not prepared for the thrill when his tongue came into play and he began rough tonguing her open gash, with the length of his tongue in her sweet pussy.

His tongue continued to probe deeply inside her snatch, and Ginger told herself that her very own brother's tongue must certainly be the world champion cunt-lapping tool. Roger shifted his position slightly, and Ginger's yelp filled the room as he tongued and sucked her erect clit. Ginger feared her cries would be heard by her neighbors who might call 911. But she didn't care about anything except what magic Roger was working on and in her cunt, as he licked on and on until her climax struck again and again.

Her expectations about the magnitude of the cum were not in any way disappointing. While basking in bedroom heaven, Ginger kept Roger's face trapped in her crotch licking and slurping away. Later, when he raised his cunt-juiced face from her wet crotch, he read all her thoughts. "My God, Roger my darling, it must be time to do something about your beautiful cock. It's been hard for such a long time. Don't you think it deserves to soak in my cunt and shoot off, filling me with your cream?" "Bless you, big sister, for mentioning my erection problem. It would certainly feel a whole lot better buried in that sweet cunt of yours all the way to the hilt. Do you feel able to take my stiff prick all the way to my balls?"

"Roger, my pussy feels wet enough to take in both your cock and your balls. Fuck me, little brother. Fuck me and shoot all your cream into me and make my box even juicier than you have already have. I'm soaked now with my pussy juice, but I want to be wet with your cream." Reaching between her legs, Roger patted and rubbed her wet twat and fingered her asshole. Then he used the tip of a finger to follow the wet trail down between the lower slopes of her butt cheeks. For a little while, he played in her wet crack; then she saw him hovering over her with his erect cock. She welcomed his body onto hers, his cock into her cunt for her first fuck since her late husband died. Brother fucking sister, crime or no crime, incest or not, she vowed to do this as many times during the next two weeks as they could.

"Sister, your body is so beautiful, your cunt so sweet, and I'll simply never be able to get enough of it" he told her as he poised between her legs and gazed down at her, "but right now you are especially beautiful because we have both been so sex starved. What a fuck this is going to be. But I'm so heavy with built up cream in my balls that I don't know whether I can do much fucking before I cum. I'll try to make it so that you can have another blast off with my cock nesting deep in your box and my nuts resting in your crotch. If we miss cumming together this time, better luck next time, and, believe me, you sweet cunt, there are going to be a lot of next times." "I don't know if I can stand yet another cum without it knocking me dead," Ginger told him,"but I don't care if it does. I can't think of a better way to go than death in the saddle."

Ginger felt his cock probing her twat. When it found the opening to its genital target, the cockhead rubbed her gash for a tantalizingly few seconds; he slowly pushed it between his sister's soft vaginal lips and slowly worked it up in a series of short gentle strokes in and out teasingly, until he was up to his balls in her sopping wet hole. She told him that it felt so good she would never release his cock and that he would have to serve a life sentence without possibility of parole lying on her body with his pecker buried in her pussy.

For some time, he just laid lightly on her supported by his elbows, letting his cock adjust to the hot and tight surroundings of her box. Ginger felt his cock throbbing in the tight warmth of her juicy cunt, something she had not had in years. He intended to finish her off with a slow and tender fuck. But when he tried to get his weight off her, she wouldn't let him go. "I want you to fuck me hard, brother. I want to know that I'm getting fucked. Feed me your meat like a real brute. The next time you can be gentle, but now I want you to make me know that I'm getting a real fuck." Since it was the way she wanted it, he decided to really ride her like a bare-back old-west rough rider. He was heavy on her and he rode her roughly, his cock stabbing and jabbing strongly, causing her ass to squirm on her satin sheets. This was one rough fuck that they both would recall fondly for years.

Roger knew that he couldn't last very long, and he felt that Ginger was almost ready to be triggered off with another orgasm. Her baby blue eyes confirmed her near readiness, and she begged him to fuck her harder. "Give it to me deeper, cowboy." Roger waited until he thought Ginger to be just about ready, then he took his weight off her body. When he started pulling his cock in and out of Ginger again, he did it slowly, Ginger telling him that she had never been fucked like this before. He surprised himself by making it last longer than he thought possible. When his balls flashed and told him that it was time for serious business, he lowered his body onto her again and gave her a few more long strokes, firing his hot cream into the sweetest cunt he had ever eaten. "Yes, little brother, yes, keep it coming. I want every last drop." Spurt after spurt lubricated her hole. "Give it to me, Roger. Shoot it in my cunt," until he was finished squirting.

They lay in each other's arms for a little while, kissing, resting, and cuddling. Not a word was spoken. Then they got up showered together, and stayed naked for a belated breakfast. Ginger made coffee and toast. Roger poured the orange juice. Roger said, "Ginger, my beloved and most talented older sister, if you are as good at sucking my cock as I was in sucking your pussy and licking your asshole, we can just take the rest of the day off and enjoy our new found joy."

Her response was a kiss on the mouth, as Ginger's bare ass squirmed on his naked lap. What do you think her answer was?

Aunty Sue

g_goyal2000 on Incest Stories

This is a story about my to my mother's best friend's place, Who i've always called aunty Sue even though we're not directly related , the story is about how my visit to spend my summer holiday's at aunty Sue's place turned out to be the most memorable experience of my life.

From the age that I can remember, I've always been really fond of aunty Sue. She's about 30 years old, with short blonde hair which falls upto her shoulders, really slim and terrific body.Aunty Sue also had dimples when she smiles, which makes her really cute. She's about 5"6 tall and really is cute. She's married with a 7 year old son and a 2 year old daughter. She and her family live's in the city, which is about 200 miles from the country

Read More
town where I live in. It had been a habit of her's to take me to her place to spend a couple of weeks each school holiday. Her son Richard, though 6 years younger to me was really close to me and we enjoyed each other's company inspite of our wide age difference.

These christmas hollidays were no different. Two days into the hollidays aunty Sue drove down in her station wagon with her 2 kids to pick me up for the hollidays. She looked really great. She came in wearing a sleeveless white blouse and jeans. I felt really horny just looking at her. She had been in my masturbatory dreams ever since i started jerking off, but it really did make me feel guilty all at the same time for thinking of aunty Sue in such away. But I just couldn't help it.

"Hi Rick, my , are'nt you growing into a hansom young man". She pecked my cheek and ruffled my hair. I was still a couple of inches shorter than her, but she always made a similar comment each time we met.

She stayed the night and the next day we packed her wagon and went back to her apartment in the city. Her apartment building had a common swim pool , which meant that we could play in the pool, which myself and Richard did each time we got together. "You can take your stuff upto Richards room Rick , I've arranged the bottom bunk bed for you, Richard insists on using the top one caus he wants to see santa clause coming through the window" Aunt sue grinned.

The 1st few days at her place was really great. Aunt Sue's husband was a sales rep, so I did'nt expect to meet him during my stay at her place these hollidays. How ever he called every day to speak to me.

On friday Richard and I went down to the pool to play around. Half way through Aunty Sue came down to join us. She was wearing a white 2 piece bikini and looked really hot. Her breasts, are not very big, possibly between a B and C cup, but she looked really hot in it.

She joined us in the pool to play ball, and we had loads of fun. Somewhere down the line she asked Richard and myself if we were wearing sun lotion. We were'nt. Aunty immediately ordered both of us out of the pool, ordered richard to stand still and she applied sun block on him inspite of her ardent protests. Once done he jumped into the pool. " Your turn rick" she said while rubbing her hands with lotion and coming towards me. I was standing on the edge of the pool. She came over and rubbed lotion on my back and came forward to apply it on my front. She applied the stuff on my top and bent down to apply it on my legs. Despite my ardent efforts to stop it I started getting a hard on when she started rubbing it on my thighs, and i was praying to god that she would not notice it, but when she stood up , im pretty sure that she would have seen it. How ever she made no indication of it. After keeping the bottle aside she dragged me into the pool with her self and we just continued with the game. I was really embarrassed but Aunty Sue acted as if nothing had happened. Soon as we got out of the pool I went into the bathroom to relieve my self. Aunty sue applying sun lotion on me was just too much to take.

That evening all of us went out to see a movie. As soon as we got back home their was a call from one of Richards friends mother's saying that they had to go out some where and if it would be ok if their son Derek slept over. Derek was dropped off at about 9 pm.

"Why don't you go put your stuff in Richards room Derek" She said. "Ricky baby, you can come sleep in my room tonight" she told me as she was clearing the dishes. So I went upstairs , got into my P.js and went to sleep in her room. About an hour into my sleep aunt Sue came into the room. She did'nt on the light. I was awake at this point. She was wearing a loose white T shirt and jeans. She was doing something at her dressing table. After awhile she came over, sat on my side of the bed and ran her hand through my hair. "Did I wake you up honey?" she asked. "Thats ok aunt Sue, I was not really falling asleep anyway. It's kind of warm". She looked at me for awhile. "I know honey, it can get pretty warm here". "Hey, it's late, and i've got to get to work tomorrow". "Tell you what, i'll put a change and come'. With that she went into her bathroom , and came into bed. She was wearing her white silk nighty , in which she always looked really hot. We talked for a couple of minutes about home, my mum ect. After a while she gave me a peck on the cheek and went to sleep.

After about half an hour I was just drifting to sleep when i felt someone touching my face and giving small kisses. I opened my eyes to see aunty Sue. "Shhhhh just lie down and relax baby, she said, and she kept giving me tiny pecks on my forehead, cheek and she was moving down to my neck. My PJ top had front buttons, and i felt aunty's fingers slowly removing button by button from the top. She still had her night y on. I just could'nt believe that this was happening. Half way through unbuttoning my shirt she removed the blankets which were covering me, off. As she removed it I could clearly see a tent built up in my pijama bottom...... Aunty sue got back to the task of removing my shirt buttons. When I found her removing the last few buttons the pleasure of her hand being only inches away from my cock was excruciating. After removing my shirt completely aunty sue slid up next to me and gave me my first french kiss..... Then she started trailing her path down my neck, slightly bit on my left nipple, moved to my right and trailed her way down to my tummy, and started licking and kissing me there. The sensation was unbelievable. I tried to touch my cock , but she kept pushing my hand away with hers. At this point she had got on to my body, and was lying horizontally on top of me. I felt my erection crushed somewhere between her breasts, which was still covered with her nighty. I tried to touch her but, she kept pushing my hand away. After kissing me all over tummy , which obviously was still hairless, and smooth, I felt her pushing my pj pants down bit my bit. She was touching and kissing every inch of my lover tummy. Then she suddenly moved down a bit , and for the 1st time , as if by accident, ran the back of her hand over my cock , once. She looked up at me and smiled seeing the effect of what she was doing had on me. She was doing all this while my pj's were still covering my erection. then she moved even lower and massaged my legs through my pj's. After doing this for a while she moved over my cock, kissed my tummy and pulled my pj's completely off. My cock just sprang out. After completely pulling off my pj,s off me she moved up to my cock, and for the 1st time really got hold of it . She touched the length of it about thrice . I felt i could hold on no longer. "Oh baby, you have a really beautiful cock. It's so smooth". She let go of her grip on it and started tickling it with her nales. " Do you masturbate baby?" . "Yeah", I said.

She just kept closely inspecting my hairless cock. All the time she kept lightly tickling it. "Daily?". " yeah, sometime " I said. She suddenly stopped, realising my terrible discomfort. I had never been able to completely pull my foreskin down. Aunty Sue, gently started to pull my foreskin down. I didn'tt go all the way, but it felt great. A bit of pain but great. "Don't worry, when you get older you'll be able to pull it down completely" she said looking up at me. She smiled . Then she applied a bit of spit and started licking my head, and then down to my balls. All the time she kept genty touching my cock,but made sure that i didn't come. After kissing around my cock, which had grown bigger than I had ever seen it she took it into her mouth, the head initially , then she went all the way down. She did this really slowly a couple of times , letting me enjoy the sensation.

After a couple of times , i just couldn't take it any longer and shot a load into her mouth. I felt that i came much more than i have ever done with my hand jobs. I felt in heaven. Aunty Sue kept sucking me until i was completely soft and then let go of it. After massaging my cock for a while she came up to me and kissed me again. "How did that feel sweety" she asked. I was just speechless. Aunty kissed me for a couple of more minutes then shifted back down to my cock. It was still soft, but she started sucking it hard. Much harder than she did the 1st time. after about 2o minutes of this i felt hard again. Aunty got up on her knees and pulled her nighty off. That was the 1st time that I had ever seen Aunty Sue naked. Her breasts were so beautiful. She moved up to me, took my hands and let me touch her. She moved over my face and fed each nipple at a time for me to suck. They were just unbelievable. After about ten minutes of this aunty Sue grabbed hold of my cock and moved on to me. The first sensation of entering her pussy was unbelievable. She let me take my time getting use to it. Then she started moving harder and harder on me. At one point she let out a slight moan, which now i know was a organism. It was just unbelievable. She fucked me like that for about ten to fifteen minutes and i shot a second loan in her. After that we went to sleep naked, I in her arms.

I did'nt sleep in aunty Sue's room the next few days since Richards friend was at her place for only one night,and when aunty Sue asked me to come sleep in her room, Richard also wanted to join ,so i moved back into Richard's room. How ever, I did have many more experiences with her, sometimes in her bathroom, In her room during the day when the others were asleep and so on.

It has been many , many years since that experience. But looking back now that was one of the greatest experiences of my life.

Aunt Mary

g_goyal2000 on Incest Stories

I HAVE TO ADMIT I HAD A REAL GOOD SUMMER ONE YEAR AGO. I NEVER EXPECTED IT BE SO INTRESTING. THIS IS A TRUE STORY. I SPENT MY SUMMER WITH MY AUNT.

IT ALL HAPPENED BECAUSE MY FAMILY THOUGHT IT BE A GOOD IDEA FOR ME TO SPEND TIME WITH MY AUNT MARY. I WOULD HELP HER OUT WITH HER BUSINESS. AT FIRST I DID NOT WANT TO GO. I THOUGHT I WAS GOING TO HAVE A REAL BAD TIME. WHAT WOULD I HAVE IN COMMON WITH A 38 YEAR OLD DIVORCED TEACHER. AFTER A FEW DAYS OF THINKING I DECIDED WHAT THE HELL I ARRIVE I STILL HAVE MY DOUBTS. WHEN I WALKED OUT OF THE AIRPLANE I GOT MY FIRST VIEW OF MY AUNT MARY. SHE LOOKED REAL GOOD. MARY WAS WEARING A HALF SHIRT AND WHITE SHORTS. SHE WAVED AT ME AND I WENT OVER OT HER AND GAVE HER A BIG HUG. MARY GA

Read More
VE ME A HUGE SMILE. SHE WAS SO DAMN CUTE. I GAVE HER STOMACH A SMALL TAP AND MY AUNT GAVE ME A SMILE AGAIN. WELL TO GET TO THE JUICY PART/ IT ALL BEGAN ON THE 3RD DAY. I WENT UP STAIRS AND AUNT MARY WAS IN HER KITCHEN AND WEARING A SHIRT AND PANTIES. I JUST STARTED AT HER. LET ME TELL YOU MY AUNT MARY WOULD GET A LOT OF EYES. SHE HAD AN AWESOME BODY FOR A 38-YEAR-OLD. NICE MEDIUM SIZED BREAST, AND A GREAT ASS. SHE HAD NICE LIPS, A GREAT TONGUE. EVERYTIME I SEE HER NOW I WANT TO GIVE HER DEEP PASSONAITE KISSES. I WALKED UP TO HER AND I PUT MY HAND AROUND HER AND I SAID GOOD MORNING.

MY AUNT MARY FROM MY POSTION WAS LOOKING GOOD. AFTER WERE STARTED TO TALK AND KIND OF FIRNEDLY FLIRT BUT AFTER A LITTLE WHILE IT KIND OF JUST HAPPENED. MARY AND I WERE JOKING AROUND AND I COULD NOT CONTROL MYSELF SO I JUST KISSED HER ON THOSE AWESOME LIPS. I DID NOT KNOW HOW SHE WOULD REACT. SHE BACKED AWAY AND AFTER A FEW MINUTES SHE MONTIONED ME OVER AND TOLD ME SHE REALLY WANT TO BE A NAUGHTY AUNT NOW AND PLAY. MARY TOLD ME SHE WAS GOING TO TEACH ME HOW TO PLEASE AN AUNT. MARY GRABBED MY HANDS PLACED THEM ON HER CHEST. MY AUNT MARY SAID YOU LIKE HOW THEY FEEL. I NOD MY HEAD.

SHE TOLD ME TO REMOVE HER SHIRT. I TOOK OFF HER SHIRT AND SHE WAS WEARING A REALLY SEXY BRA. I GAVE MARY A SMILE AND SHE SAID YOU LIKE THEM HUH. I GO YEA I DO AUNT MARY SHE SAYS WOULD YOU LIKE TO PLAY WITH THEM. I GO YES AUNT MARY. SHE TOLD ME TO GO BEHIIND HER AND REMOVE HER BRA AND RELEASE THE STRAP WITH MY MOUTH I GOT BEHIND HER AND I PUT MY TEETH ON HER BRA STRAP. I THEN GAVE HER BACK A FEW LICK. I THEN WENT BACK TO REMOVING HER BRA. IT TOOK ME AWHILE TO GET OFF. IT WAS SORT OF FUN AND WE WERE JUST FOCUSED ON EACH OTHER. AUNT MARY TOLD ME TO STOP AND SHE GRABBED ME AND WE KISSED FOR SEVEARL MINUTES.. HER BRA WAS HALF WAY OFF. ONE OF HER BREASTS WERE STARTING TO SHOW. I TOLD MARY I WANTED TO PLAY WITH HER BREASTS AND SHE SAID FINISH THE JOB. I STARTED TO REMOVE HER BRA ONCE AGAIN WITH MY TEETH. ONCE IT WAS OFF MARY TOLD ME TO BE A NAUGHTY NEPHEW AND PLAY WITH IS AUNTS BREASTS.. I STARTED BY LICKING EACH OF HER HARD NIPPLES. I THEN STARTED TO LICK HER BREASTS. I DID THIS FOR 10 MINUTES MY AUNT MARY WAS MOANING. SHE STARTED OFF WITH A SOFT MOAN AND WHEN I REALLY GOT IN TO IT SHE STARTED TO MOAN A LOT LOUDER. MARY THEN SAID LETS BOTH HAVE SOME FUN. AUNT MARY. AUNT MARY REMOVED MY SHIRT AND SHORTS. MARY WAS ONLY IN HER WHITE PANTES AN I WAS IN MY BOXERS. AUNT MARY TOLD ME TO GET A LOT CLOSER TO HER. WE THEN STARTED TO TOUCH EACH OTHER. BOTH ARE HANDS FOUND AWAY DOWN TO EACH OTHERS UNDERWEAR. I WAS RUBBING MARY WHILE MARY WAS REALLY MAKING MY ROD STIFF. MARY EVEN BENT DOWN AND STARTED TO GIVE IT KISSES AND SHE EVEN PUT HER LIPS ON MY ROD WITH MY BOXERS ON.

MY AUNT WAS REAL GOOD AT THIS. SHE TOLD ME SHE ALWAYS WANTED TO TRY THE 69 POSTION. SHE LATER TOLD ME THAT HER SEX LIFE REALLY HAD NOT BEEN THE GREATEST, AND SHE NEEDED IT MUCH MORE.. MARY WAS MAKING ME FEEL GOOD. I COULD NOT IMGAINE WEN YOU TOOK OFF MY BOXERS HOW IT WOULD FEEL. MARY TOLD ME TO CARRY HER TO THE BEDROOM. I PLACED MARY DOWN AND SHE GRABBED ME ONCE AGAIN AND WE KISSED. AFTER ARE FIRST TIME, AUNT MARY TOLD ME I CAN SLEEP IN HER BED WITH HER. WELL AFTER A FEW MINUTES MARY TOLD ME TO LAY DOWN AND WITH HER PANTIES ON SHE SAT ON MY FACE. I WAS IN HEAVEN. HER PANTIES WERE WET AND I TOOK A NICE LICK. SHE WAS MOVING AROUND ALITTLE BIT. YOU CAN TELL MY AUNT MARY WAS ON FIRE. I NEVER SAW THIS SIDE OF HER, BUT IM NOT COMPLAIING. WELL AFTER A FEW MINUTES MARY STARTED TO SUCK MY ROD WHILE I SUCKED HER MOIST PUSSY. MARY LIKED MY ROD. SHE SUCKED ON ITAND MARY REALLY ERUPTED, AND SHE TOLD ME TO BE A GOOD STUDENT AND CLEAN UP HER MESS. I PUT MY HAND DOWN AND I FELT HER WETNESS. I TOLD HER OFF COURSE I WILL. I LAYED DOWN AND MARY

AUNT MARY SAID SINCE YOU BEEN A GOOD STUDENT I LET YOU STICK YOUR ROD IN MY PUSSY. SHE MADE ME BEG. I GAVE HER A LOT OF PECKS ON HER LIPS AND EVEN RUBBED MY ROD ALL OVER HER FACE AND BREAST. MARY LIKED THE FEELING OF MY ROD ON HER BREASTS. SHE THEN STARTED TO SUCK MY ROD AGAIN. MARY NEW HOW TO MAKE SOMEONE HAPPY , MARY SUCKED ON IT LIKE SHE HAS NEVER DONE THIS BEFORE. MY AUNT MARY LOVES ORAL SEX. AFTER A FEW MINUTES MARY TOLD ME TO LAY DOWN AND SHE GOT ON TOP OF ME. WE BEGAN TO MAKE LOVE. SHE WAS GOING UP AND DOWN. SHE WENT SLOW AT FIRST, AND THEN SHE STARTED TO MOVE QUICKLY. MY AUNT MARY Y WAS MOANING LOUD NOW. SHE HAD THIS CUTE LOOK ON HER FACE AS WE MADE LOVE. WE ENDED UO HAVING SEX ALL NIGHT LONG. MARY WOKE ME UP THE NEXT MORING SUCKING ON MY ROD. THIS WAS SURE A GREAT EXPERIENCE.

Lonnie Loves His Sexy Mom

g_goyal2000 on Incest Stories

Lonnie Matlis undressed and slipped on swimming trunks. His bathing suit fit snugly around his hips, buttocks and crotch. The cloth material pressed upon his cock and balls, and he felt his prick stirring and growing stiff. It strained upon the bathing suit. He now had a full-fledged hard-on. But then it seemed he always had a hard-on. His dick seemed to stay in a constant state of stiffness.

Lonnie had recently undergone puberty, and his balls and cock tingled constantly and his thoughts dwelt almost entirely on his hard throbbing straining dick. He stayed in a state of arousal.

He stroked his peter and masturbated a

Read More
lot, but no matter how often he beat his meat, it seemed to be ready to spring up at a moment's notice. Especially when he thought about or saw his mom.

Lonnie's mother was in her early thirties, a film actress, attractive, and divorced. Summer had arrived, Lonnie was out of school and his mother was between films, so they spent most of their time together in the house.

Lonnie's mother knew he was 'at that age.' She had seen him occasionally rubbing his crotch and had twice seen him masturbating. Once, she had passed his bedroom door and had seen him lying on the bed, on top of a pillow, pumping away at it. Lonnie had looked up and seen his mother, and knew she had seen him pumping the pillow. And once, she had opened the bathroom door and there was Lonnie standing by the commode, jacking his prick, rubbing it hard and fast. Again, Lonnie knew she had seen him. But she hadn't said anything about it, so Lonnie had grown quite bold. He now masturbated openly in the bathroom and his bedroom.

He thought abut his mother a lot. She was so sexy, such a fox; and she was so casual and uninhibited around the house. She was somewhat flirty and free, occasionally kissing Lonnie on the cheek and touching his shoulders and arms. She tended to dress scantily, wearing a short silky robe or shorts. And she usually kept her bedroom door open. Lonnie had seen her in various stages of undress; once, he'd seen her naked. He had passed by her bedroom and she had been changing clothes. She was stark-naked. But she hadn't acted embarrassed when Lonnie saw her. She had simply smiled at him and proceeded to dress....

Lonnie walked through the house to the rear and stepped out onto the patio. He saw his mother standing by the diving board of the swimming pool. She wore a red bikini.

Kathy Matlis was in her prime, and despite having a thirteen-year-old son was quite attractive with a pretty face and a nice body. Her chestnut hair fell in full shimmering waves past her shoulders, her eyes were big and violet, her skin was peachy tanned. The bikini she wore served only to cover the 'bare necessities.' Half her breasts, most of her rump and all of her legs were exposed.

Lonnie watched her as she stepped up onto the diving board. God, she is so sexy! he thought. He felt his dick start to grow and stiffen. She stood for a few seconds on the board and then dived into the pool. Lonnie's cock stood at attention. It throbbed and ached.

She saw him standing by the pool and called out: "Come on in, the water's fine!"

Lonnie jumped in and swam toward his mother. She smiled and swam away with Lonnie in pursuit. They began playing in the water, splashing each other and playing tag. He caught her from behind and she laughed and splashed and squirmed to break away. Her rear end brushed upon his crotch and he gasped with the sensation. She was still squirming around and trying to break free and once again her rump swept across his groin. With a groan, he pressed his crotch forward. He hissed when his prick made contact with her butt. It was as if his peter had a mind of its own. It took over completely.

He wrapped his arms around her waist and began humping her rump, pumping his hard throbbing dick upon her ass. Nothing could have stopped him; he was beyond all control.

"Oh, ah, unh, oh Mom!" he panted as he humped her.

"Oh Lonnie, oh baby," his mother said softly. She halfheartedly made as if to break away. He kept pumping on her rump with his rock-hard cock. "Oh Mom, oh, I can't stop--oh, it feels too good to stop!"

He heaved his crotch forward, mashing and grinding it upon her rear end. "Unh--ahh--now!" he cried out as cum erupted from his penis. He huffed and panted and hunched with unbridled lust as the hot creamy juice kept spewing out....

After he had emptied his balls and shot his load, Lonnie was embarrassed. He couldn't bear to face his mother. She gently placed a hand on his cheek. "Oh honey," she said softly, "it's all right." She kissed his cheek and smiled. "Don't worry about it."

That evening Lonnie lay on his bed in his pajamas, doing what he usually did--stroking his prick. He thought about his mother, and his peter stiffened and balls tingled. He briskly rubbed his cock and shivered at the sensation. His dick was now hard and full and throbbing....

Lonnie's mother sprawled on her bed in a negligee watching TV. The thought of Lonnie and what had happened in the pool came to her and she smiled softly and wryly. Ah, he couldn't help it, she thought...he's at that age...his hormones are running wild...he certainly has gone through some changes over the past few months...he's grown...he's big for his age...he's turned into a good-looking guy too...

She smiled wryly again as she thought of what had happened in the pool. He was so horny, she thought, so hard, and he kept...rubbing me...kept hunching me...

She felt a warm fizzy tingling ripple up and down her body as she thought of her son pumping his hard prick upon her rump. His cock was so hard, she thought, and it's...it's good-sized...I could feel it was...

Her breasts and ass were tingling; her pussy was throbbing. She placed one hand on a breast and slowly stroked it and ran another hand down between her legs and softly rubbed her yoni....

Lonnie could stand it no longer. His peter was hard as a rock; it throbbed and ached; his balls tingled and churned in their bloated fullness. He was breathing hard, almost panting. He got off the bed and headed for his mother's room.

Her bedroom door was open and Lonnie stood at the threshold looking in.

"Mom..." he spoke huskily.

"Honey?" his mother said, looking questioningly at him.

He walked to her bed. "Mom..." he breathed out heavily again. He got on the bed and looked at his mother. She wore only a short silky negligee, and nothing else.

He could see most of her breasts and all of her thighs. His dick thudded and literally ached.

"Oh Mom," he panted out and suddenly moved on her.

He mounted her, rooting between her legs.

He pushed his crotch forward, thrusting his hard prick between her thighs. He groaned as the head of his peter made contact with her pussyslit. He strained forward, pushing hard, and he cried out with pleasure as he felt his penis enter her vagina.

"Oh, unh, oh Mom, unh!" he panted with the sensation of his prick sliding up her quiff.

"Oh baby," she breathed out. She wrapped her arms and legs around her son and lifted her pelvis up to give him full access to her cunt.

Lonnie stuffed his entire cock into her hot moist pussy, and then began screwing her with full thrusts of his dick. He fucked his mother good and strongly, lustily pumping his meat in her quim.

She hunched back at him and used her cunt muscles to squeeze and suck at his prick. She gasped and panted with passion at the feeling of his peter sawing back and forth in her yoni. His cock was full and rigid and good-sized and he was frigging it fast and hard in her.

"Oh, ah, unh, ah!" she panted. "Oh baby, yes! Oh sweet baby, give it to me!"

Lonnie felt his balls swelling and throbbing; he groaned as he felt the cum churning in his bag. He thrust his dick as far as it would go up his mother's pussy and cried out in lust as the hot cum gushed up his prick and spewed out.

She gasped and panted and reared up as her son spurted semen in her cunt....

They enjoyed a delicious afterfuck. Lonnie stroked her flanks and thighs and slowly swirled his peter in her quim. She stroked his arms and shoulders and back and slowly moved her quiff around in little circles.

He moved his head down and began mouthing his mother's breasts, licking the firm smooth mounds. He felt his cock stiffening and growing again as he sucked his mother's tits.

He dug his now-hard prick up her pussy, and she gasped and raised her pelvis up and wrapped her legs around him.

"Oh baby--you're wonderful!" she panted as he pumped his dick in her cunt.

Lonnie awoke late the next morning. He got up and made his way to the kitchen. His mother sat at the kitchen table sipping coffee.

"Well, good morning, sleepyhead," she smiled. "Sit yourself down and I'll fix you breakfast."

Lonnie sat at the table and watched his mother as she prepared breakfast. She wore a short thin robe and he felt his peter pop up and start to grow. In less than a minute he had a full-fledged hard-on. His cock stood up, stiff and throbbing.

He went to his mother, placed his hands on her hips and pressed his crotch upon her rump.

"Oh honey," she said softly. She turned around and looked down at his crotch, then brushed a hand upon it. She sank to her knees and took out his prick, stroked it, and then ran her lips on it. She slid her tongue up and down and around his dick.

Lonnie hissed and then groaned at the sensation of her licking his peter. He spread his legs and hunched forward.

She opened her lips wide and took the head of his cock in and began sucking it.

"Oh, unh, ah, oh Mom!" Lonnie gasped. He grasped her head and thrust his peter forward into her hot wet sucking mouth. She clasped his hips and slid her mouth down, taking in all his cock, deep-throating him.

He panted with lust and hunched, fucking his mother's mouth. She sucked his prick fast, bobbing her head up and down.

"Oh god, here it comes!" he cried. "Oh Mom, here it comes now!" He lunged his dick down her mouth and let her have it. He pissed a hot stream of cum down her throat.

She kept sucking his peter, swallowing his sperm, till she had drained him, emptied his cock and balls of semen.

For Lonnie it was like a dream or fantasy come true. He had his attractive sexy mother to screw, to pump his prick in, to suck his peter. For Lonnie's mother it was like the fulfillment of desire or pleasure. She had her good-looking horny son to fuck her, to pump his stiff dick in her, to satisfy her. He stays horny, she thought, smiling; his cock is always stiff, always ready; he could probably fuck a dozen times a day; and he's good-sized too; for a boy his age, he's got a good-sized prick.

Lonnie had his mother in the swimming pool. He had her backed up on the side of the pool, his arms around her back and his crotch between her thighs. He lustily pumped his peter in her pussy as he sucked her tits.

She had her legs wrapped high on his back and was hunching her yoni to meet his lusty thrusts.

"Oh Mom, unh, ah, I want to fuck you every day!" Lonnie gasped.

"Oh baby, yes!" she panted. "Ah, you've got a stiff cock and I've got a hot pussy. Oh sweet baby, you can pump your cock in me any time you want!"

"Oh Mom, I'm gonna cum!" he cried out.

"Do it, baby," she gasped. "Squirt cum in your Mom's cunt!"

Lonnie proceeded to do just that.

The End

Virgin Girl Scout Ripe to Eat

g_goyal2000 on Incest Stories

Jane Mayon undressed in her bedroom and put on her girl scout outfit, picked up the cloth bag filled with boxes of cookies, and then headed out. She called to her mother as she went through the living room: "Mom, I'm going." Her mother answered from the kitchen: "Hold on, dear."

Jane waited impatiently at the living room door. Her mother came from the kitchen and asked her: "Where exactly are you going? Are you selling or are you delivering?"

"I'm delivering," Jane replied. "I'm going to some of the places on the list."

Read More
face="Arial" size="3">"I'll drive you," her mother said.

"Oh Mom, no. I'm just going to a few places--four or five--just around the neighborhood. To Aunt Clara's and Mrs. Wallace and the Simmons', and Uncle Dick. Just the ones who have placed orders for the cookies and are within walking distance."

"Okay, dear," her mother said, "but remember, dinner is at six. Don't let Aunt Clara trap you into having tea and talking, or else she'll keep you there and you'll never get out."

"I know," Jane replied. "Well, I'm on my way."

She left her house and walked down the residential street, planning her route as she walked along. Aunt Clara first, she thought, then the Simmons', then cross the street and down to Mrs. Wallace, and then, last of all, on my way back, Uncle Dick.

Jane was a typical girl scout, in that she was an adolescent, fourteen years old, full of vim and curiosity, and a virgin. She was well-developed for her age; the girl scout outfit she wore fit snugly around her pubescent body, outlining her budding breasts, developing hips and thighs, and her perky rump. The outfit was short, ending a good six inches above her knees, showing plenty of her soft full legs.

Jane delivered the cookies to Aunt Clara, the Simmons' and Mrs. Wallace, collected the money, and reflected on how many more boxes she needed to sell to win the computer. She had already sold a total of eight dozen boxes of cookies in the past three weeks, but she figured she would need to sell at least that many more to have any chance of coming in first in her scout troop, and winning the grand prize: a brand new pc. But time was running out. There was only one week left in the cookie sale. I need to find people who will buy more than one box, she thought. Maybe Uncle Dick will...

She made her way to her uncle's house, thinking about him. Over the past year, he had become more attentive to her, calling her "sweetie" and "honey" (but only when no one else was around), and touching her. Whenever they were alone, he would find some way to touch her, to place his hands on her shoulders or arms or back or hips. Once, he had come to her house when her parents were gone, and he had finally pulled her onto his lap. He had stroked her hip and flank and nuzzled her cheek and neck. She had felt him moving his crotch up and down and around on her rump, and she had felt a stiff lump throbbing and pressing upon her butt. Her uncle's lips nuzzling her cheek and neck, his hand stroking and softly squeezing her hip and flank, and especially his rotating crotch and that stiff lump throbbing and rubbing upon her rump, had sent a warm tingly fizzy feeling shooting through her body. She wondered what would have happened next had her parents not come home at that time...

She knocked on her uncle's door and reached in the bag and pulled out a box of cookies. Her uncle opened the door and his face lit up. "Well, well, if it isn't my favorite niece and girl scout. Come on in, honey."

She entered her uncle's house and he closed the door.

"I see you've got the cookies," he said, pulling out his billfold.

"Well, I've got the money. This should take care of it." He handed her a bill and she opened her bag. "Let me see, let me get the change," she said.

"Oh, no change," he said. "You keep it."

"But it's a lot of change I owe you, it's more than..."

"Don't worry about it," he smiled. "Keep it. It'll help you in your sales."

"Gee, thanks, Uncle Dick. It will help. Now, I only need to sell about eight dozen more boxes minus the one you bought."

"Why so many?" he asked. She explained about winning the pc, and he smiled and wagged his head. "Well, good luck to you. Maybe I could buy another box from you. But first, let me sample your wares." He opened the box and pulled out a cookie. "Umm, nice shape." He slipped an arm around his niece's shoulder. He bit into the cookie. "Yum, quite tasty." He slid a hand down her back. "Here, have a cookie on me."

"We're not supposed to eat any of them," she said.

"But I bought the box, and I'm giving you a cookie. It's not as if you're eating up the profits. Here, have one on me, and let's sit and discuss the possibility of my buying another box from you."

He guided her to a big chair and sat and pulled her down on his lap.

"I do believe this is the best cookie I've ever had," he nibbled. She smiled and nodded and bit into a cookie...

He brushed his lips on her cheek and neck, stroked her hip, and pressed his crotch upon her rump. He moved his hand up, unbuttoned the top of her scout outfit and slid his hand under her bra. She clasped his arm, holding it back.

"Let me stroke and rub you, honey," he breathed in her ear. "I'll buy a box of cookies."

"You will?" she asked.

"Yeah," he answered. He slid his hand onto a breast and began massaging it. "Oh honey, you've got nice little breasts," he rasped. He briskly stroked her titties, rubbing them good. He began rotating his crotch on her rump, pressing his stiffening cock upon her butt.

He went down on her breasts, licking and sucking them. He stroked her legs, running a hand between her thighs.

He tugged at her panties, sliding them down. She grasped his arm and pushed back on it. "Let me lick and suck you, honey. I'll buy another box of cookies."

He slid her panties off, got down on his knees in front of her, pulled her down in the chair and raised her legs and drew them back. He lowered his head between her thighs and began licking.

He slid his tongue up and down, rubbing and lapping her pussy.

She breathed in and out heavily, huffing, almost panting. She clasped his head and raised her pelvis up and moved her cunt around on his mouth.

He moved up on her body, sliding between her legs, pressing his crotch on her pubic hair. He stroked his fat dick up and down on her yoni and rubbed and mashed his balls upon her ass. Then he began pushing the knob of his prick forward--upon her cuntslit.

"Unh unh," she gasped, pulling her pussy back.

He wrapped his arms around her back and tapped his cockhead upon her slit. "Let me do it to you, honey," he rasped. "Another box. I'll buy another. Oh honey, I'll buy three boxes from you."

"Three boxes?" she breathed out.

"Yes, honey, I'll buy three boxes of cookies from you," he panted. "Just let me do it to you." He pushed the head of his peter into her slit, on up to her hymen. "Just let me fuck you!" He strained and heaved and pushed his prick forward, jabbing it against her hymen.

"Unh, ah, unh," he huffed. "You're a virgin, aren't you honey. Ah yes, virgin pussy!"

He kept straining and pushing his dick forward, till he felt the hymen give. "Oh yes!" he hissed as he popped his niece's cherry.

He didn't let up. He kept pushing his cock in, stuffing it into her minty channel. Her quim was so tight, it felt like a vise squeezing his peter.

"Oh god, oh Uncle Dick, oh, it hurts!" she cried. "Oh god, it burns, it hurts so much!"

"It'll only hurt for a minute, honey," he huffed as he dug his prick up her quiff. "Then it'll start feeling so good, you won't want me to ever stop."

He began jamming his dick in her, sawing it back and forth. "Fucking you, honey," he panted."Oh yes, fucking your virgin cunt. Jesus Christ, I'm fucking my fourteen-year-old virgin niece!"

"Oh, unh, ooh, unh!" Jane chuffed and puffed and squirmed and writhed as her uncle lustily fucked her. "Oh baby, welcome to the world of fuck!" he hissed.

He felt the cum churning in his fat balls, felt it gush up. He slid his cock out and rubbed it fast and hard on her yoni. He grunted and groaned as he spewed semen on her pubic hair.

~ ~ ~

Jane was growing concerned. There were only a few days left in the cookie sale, and she still had a couple dozen boxes of cookies she needed to sell.

I could contact the people who have already bought some from me, she thought. They might buy some more--if I explain the situation.

Uncle Dick, she thought. I bet he would buy some more.

Uncle Dick would indeed buy some more from her, and not just cookies...

He sat with his arm around his niece's shoulder. He unzipped his fly and pulled out his peter. "Touch it, honey. Wrap your hand around it and stroke it."

She rubbed his prick, marveling at the warm, silky-smooth firmness of it, and the way it grew in her hand. His dick rose and stiffened, straining and throbbing.

He tugged at her head, pulling it down. "Lick it, honey. Lick and suck it."

"Unh unh," she murmured and tried to pull her head back.

"Do it, honey," he said huskily. "Lick and suck my cock. I'll buy a box of cookies from you."

He pulled her head down and guided his peter to her mouth.

"Ah, that's it," he breathed out heavily. "Open your mouth, get your lips around my prick. Lick and suck it, honey. Oh yes, use your tongue and lips on it. Suck it, baby. Oh yes, suck my dick!"

He slid his cock into her silky warm wet mouth. "Unh--ah!" he gasped, and began sliding it back and forth. "Oh yes, you're sucking it now, honey," he wheezed. "Sucking it good. Ah, your mouth's so warm and wet and silky smooth. Oh baby, you're sucking your uncle's peter. Jesus Christ, yes! I'm fucking your mouth. Ah, I'm fucking my fourteen-year-old niece's mouth!"

He felt his balls swelling and tingling and the juice inside of them swirling and churning. He pulled his prick out of her mouth. He didn't want to shoot his load just yet.

He slid her panties off, turned her over on her hands and knees and got behind her. He lowered his head below her rump and began licking her cunt.

"Oh, ah, umm, ah," Jane cooed in delight as her uncle licked her. His tongue was so thick and wet and he flicked and swirled and rubbed it all over her yoni.

He slid his hands up to her breasts and rubbed and kneaded them as he dug his tongue into her quim and began tongue-fucking her.

"Oh, unh, ah, oh Uncle Dick," Jane gasped with pleasure and moved her pelvis around in little circles and twirled her pussy.

Her uncle moved up on her back, wrapped his arms around her waist and pressed his crotch upon her rump. He pushed his dick forward against her quiff.

She squirmed and whimpered.

"Ah, don't worry, honey," he rasped. "I'm going to buy another box of cookies from you. Ah, I'll buy two boxes from you, honey." He strained forward, pushing his cock into her yoni. "Oh yes! Goddamn, I'll buy three boxes from you!" he huffed and panted as he stuffed his fat prick in her tight quim.

"Unh, ah, oh baby, you've got the tightest pussy I've ever fucked!"

She gasped and bucked and writhed as her uncle screwed her. He huffed and puffed and hunched as he fucked his pretty fourteen-year-old niece.

His balls throbbed and ached; cum churned in them. He slid his peter out of her cunt.

"Oh, Uncle Dick, don't," she moaned in disappointment. "Don't take it out. Stick it back in."

"Unh unh, honey," he gasped and wheezed. "I was just about to cum in your pussy, and I can't do that. Can't take the chance of getting you pregnant."

He lowered his head to her rear end and began kissing and licking it. "Ah, such a sweet soft smooth ass you have," he said. He slid his tongue between her buttcheeks and began licking, swiping and rubbing her rumpcrack.

"Oh, ah, oh Uncle Dick," she breathed out huskily and began rotating her rear end.

He moved a hand up to one of her breasts and rubbed and squeezed it as he slid his middle finger into her quiff and dug his tongue into her asshole and began sliding it back and forth.

"Oh god, unh, ah!" she panted and hunched as he tongue-fucked her ass, rubbed and squeezed her titties and finger-fucked her cunt.

His fat dick throbbed and ached; the sperm swirled in his puffy balls. He moved up onto his niece's back, wrapped his arms around her tummy and pressed his hard cock between her assmounds. He grunted and strained and pushed the knob of his peter upon her rumphole.

Jane gasped and winced and jerked away. Her uncle pulled her back and pushed harder against her asshole. "Oh honey, let me frig you," he wheezed. "I'll buy more cookies from you--I'll buy four boxes, five--goddamn, I'll buy a half-dozen boxes from you!"

"You will? Six boxes--a half-dozen?" Jane breathed out raggedly.

"Yes, a half-dozen," he panted and pushed his hard prick forward, into her rumphole. "Jesus Christ, yes!" he cried as he dug his dick in her ass.

"Oh god, unh, ooh, unh," she gasped as her uncle's cock jammed up her channel.

"Ah yes!" he panted with lust as he screwed his fourteen-year-old niece's rump. "Up your ass, honey, up your sweet virgin ass! Buggerfucking you, frigging your virgin ass, you hot tight sweet-fucking girl scout!"

~ ~ ~

On the final day of the cookie sale, Jane still had a dozen boxes. But Uncle Dick helped her out. He bought all the boxes of cookies she had left. "I've got enough cookies to do me a whole year," he said. "At least until your next cookie sale."

~ ~ ~

He fucked his lovely young niece, pumping his fat prick in her tight cunt. She wrapped her arms and legs around him and hunched her pussy up to meet his thrusts.

"Jesus Christ, it feels so fucking good!" she gasped. "Fuck, Uncle Dick, fuck! Fuck your niece--Goddamn, pump your cock in your niece's cunt!"

~ ~ ~

Needless to say, Jane won the cookie sale and the computer...thanks to Uncle Dick.

The End

Surrogate Mother

g_goyal2000 on Incest Stories

Tom and Mary Waters lived happily in the suburbs, in their modest home, with their two fine young children. Mary was a very loving mother and a pretty young wife. She had a small frame with short dark hair and bright hazel eyes. Mary was very well proportioned and worked out regularly. Her pear shaped breasts were just the right size for height and weight. She had a forceful, but not overly dominant personality. She loved and respected her husband but she would be considered the stronger member of the couple.

Tom was a good husband and able provider. He worked hard at his accounting job and loved his pretty young wife very much. His personality though was decidedly weaker than Mary's was. He mostly went along with wha

Read More
tever she wanted. Like his wife, he had a small frame and dark colored hair. Tom wore those round wire frame glasses that really gave him the typical "accountant look."

Mary was very close with her mother and her sister Lauren. All three women spent a lot of time together and got along unusually well. Their mom had a very strong influence over the two girls, sometimes to Tom's displeasure. It was not unusual for Mary to end up doing something for her mother or for Lauren that Tom didn't approve of. He had learned long ago, however, that he was better off just to be quiet and stay out of it.

Lauren's husband Larry, was kind of the black sheep of the family. He worked construction during the summer and mostly loafed around the house and drank beer all winter. This was clearly evidenced by his fat beer gut that hung distastefully over his belt. He was big and strong though, and had a crude manner about him. Lauren and Tom didn't approve of Larry and they both considered him vulgar.

Mary didn't care to be around her ill-mannered brother in law too much. She always felt he was leering at her, trying to undress her with his eyes. Sometimes Mary would be inadvertently wearing a tight fitting outfit when visiting her mother and sister. She could always count on old unemployed Larry to corner her somewhere in the house and whisper vulgarities like "nice tits sis" or "that's some nice piece of ass" in her ear. She always tried to wear something bulky to ward off his mocking disrespect.

Mary's sister Lauren was not too pretty with her buckteeth and pug nose. Her hair was died blond and stiff as straw from over application of dies and rinses. She didn't have a clue about the uses and purpose of makeup. She was always painted up to the hilt. She had a pear shaped figure with too little on top and too much around the hips. To Tom, Lauren looked just like her mom. He figured that she was perfect for her deadbeat and brutish husband.

Lauren, of course, was very jealous of her sister Mary. She was jealous of her good looks, of her nice home, and her loving obedient husband, Tom. She was particularly jealous of Mary's two children, a boy and a girl. Lauren wanted children of her own but the clinic told her that she was not able to conceive or carry any. To make matters worse, because of Larry's irregular work habits, the couple was unable to qualify for adoption.

Lauren's inability to have children would, from time to time, cause quite a bit of friction between the two. Lauren, it seems, found it offensive that Tom had a vasectomy after the two kids were born to prevent any unexpected surprises. Lauren would fly into this jealous rage over the fact that Mary had everything and how she was "as fertile as a freshly tilled garden" while Lauren was as barren as concrete.

One night, when Tom arrived home from work, Mary cornered him to discuss an unusual scheme that her mother and Lauren had concocted. She sat her husband down on the couch, held his hand, and began to unveil an unusual proposal.

"Tom darling," she started "you know I love you very much. I wouldn't ever do anything to make you unhappy. I love my sister Lauren too. I feel so bad for her not being to have children and all. Her and Larry really want to have a baby of their own and I think it would be good for her. She and Mom think it would be good for Larry too. Maybe it would give him something to go to work for. Don't you agree."

"I can agree with that." Tom offered honestly.

"Well that's what I want to talk to you about." Mary held her husband's hand tighter. "Mamma and Lauren and I have been talking and … well they'd like me to be a surrogate mother for Lauren and Larry. They want me to carry their baby for them."

Tom pulled his hand away. He was more than a little concerned. "That's a big commitment Mary. I don't think you've thought this through."

Mary answered him in a firm tone "Well I HAVE thought it through. Lauren is my sister. If she needed a kidney or a piece of my liver I would give it to her she's family!"

Tom was unconvinced "This isn't the same thing, Mary, this is a big commitment with emotional consequences. It affects me too!"

"You're just being selfish!" Mary shot back "Now I've decided and that's that!"

Mary was fuming. She expected loving support from her husband. Her dominant personality began to take over. She was determined to get her way.

"Tom, you just don't understand what it means to a woman to have a child of her own. Now I've decided to help them. Either you agree with me or we can fight about it from now until doomsday!"

"Okay, Okay!" Tom gave in easily. "What clinic were you planning on using?"

"Clinic! Clinic!" Mary was still on the offensive "Larry can't afford to use a clinic! That costs thousands of dollars. Besides Larry insists that he wants to have his baby the normal way. He says that it's better and cheaper. I think I agree with him."

"You mean intercourse!!!" Tom was in shock. "You're suggesting that I allow my wife to have intercourse with that rude, dirty, vulgar, deadbeat brother-in-law of ours?"

The thought of it filled Tom's heart with dread. Mary tried to look on the bright side.

"It will just be for a week" Mary was trying to minimize the whole thing.

"We will have him over every night this week, during my fertile time, and then it will be all over. Hopefully I will be pregnant and when the baby is born we turn it over to Lauren and Larry. That's not so complicated is it?"

"Mary, now you really haven't thought this through. What's the rush? Lets take our time before we completely decide on this." Tom was trying to head the whole thing off.

"This is my fertile time." Mary insisted "Mamma wants me to do it now before I change my mind or you talk me out of it. We are starting tonight and that's that. I've already dropped off the kids at my mother's house and Larry will be here in an hour!"

Tom was in shock. He sat there silent, looking down at the floor, while Mary explained the ground rules.

"Now you know Tom that sometimes Larry can get a little out of hand. So I made him promise that he could only come over when you were home. I told him that my husband would be right here, the whole time, so he wouldn't try anything funny. I insisted that we had to leave the bedroom door open so I could yell to you if need be. That way you could check on us too, to make sure Larry isn't getting out of hand! Now he will be here in an hour so I have to get ready. I'm sure this won't be as bad as you're thinking."

Feeling depressed and defeated, Tom just sat there stunned. He couldn't understand how his lovely wife could do this to him. How she could have sex with the brother-in-law that she so utterly despised. Worst of all he had to be there! Present when the whole grossly obnoxious event was taking place. A feeling of dread fell over him.

Meanwhile, Mary was busying herself getting ready for her brother-in-law's arrival and their ultimate coupling. She lay soaking in a hot bath while she removed any signs of stubble from her pretty legs. The young wife carefully trimmed her pubic area, forming a neatly manicured V shape in her dark curls. She had convinced herself that this wouldn't be so bad. After all if her sister made love to him how bad could he be?

Mary dressed in a silk nightgown. The pink material clung to her firm and perky breasts. A tingling in her nipples made them stick out and press against the soft material. The hemline came just bellow her matching silk panties, which from time to time became visible, as she walked around her bedroom. Mary checked herself in the mirror. Yes, she was ready to go ahead with this and prove her love for her sister Lauren.

Larry arrived late as usual. Mary greeted him at the door and gave him a little peck on the cheek. His breath smelled like a beer. Larry was carrying a six pack; he broke one off and gave the rest to Mary. While she deposited them in the refrigerator Larry made himself comfortable in the living room. He sat in the big chair across from Tom but said nothing to him.

Larry opened his beer and took a sip. He sat there in high anticipation. His sister-in-law was the best looking woman he had ever known. He couldn't believe his good fortune. His lucky break to be fucking this pretty young housewife and right in front of her old man too! This was going to be some week all right! He had a hard on already.

Mary entered the room and stood in front of Larry. "I'm ready … I guess" she told him.

Larry looked up at the angelic creature before him. He smiled that vulgar smile of his, his gaze pulling at her nightgown in mocking lust. Mary was a little taken aback with his visual intrusion but did nothing to thwart his leering. It somehow seemed to make her breasts swell and her nipples stick out further.

Larry reached over and placed his coarse hand on the young housewife's soft thigh, just above her knee. She shuddered a little but didn't pull back. Her husband stared silently, very much in despair.

"Nice. Very nice." He said as his hand glided up and down. Larry was really enjoying the smoothness of his sister-in-law's freshly shaved thigh. As he slid up and down he moved his hand higher, purposely brushing it against the softness where her legs came together. A soft sigh escaped Mary's lips.

His searching fingers moved along the narrowing of her panties. He tugged the material to one side and plundered her opening with one of his fingers. Mary trembled a little at the unexpected intrusion.

Larry found the spot he was looking for and started applying practiced pressure. Mary felt herself getting wet and knew that there was no way to hide it. Her teeth nibbled on her lower lip as she strained in anticipation of his every stroke. Larry smiled rudely and took another sip of his beer.

Mary was not shocked at her brother-in-law's lack of gallantry. He was crude and rude and now he was taking advantage of her sincere good nature. In spite of her disgust she stood there letting him molest her right in front of her own loving husband. Larry kept stroking while he sucked on his beer. Mary had never been touched in such a way. His strokes were getting her aroused and she could feel her own self-control leaving her.

"Take off your top" Larry suddenly commanded as he put down his beer.

Mary looked over to her husband for some show of support.

Tom lowered his gaze to the floor and said nothing.

Mary grabbed the hem of her nightgown and pulled it over her head in one fluid motion. She dropped it on the floor and stood there humiliated. Her unprotected breasts were now lewdly on display in front of her sister's husband. Her panties were pulled to one side, her pink and moist pussy lips protruding shamefully.

Sensing his upper hand, Larry took her by the arm and pulled her onto his lap. He molested her soft white breasts with his large coarse hands, pausing now and again to pinch and pull on her pink puffy nipples.

"Yes nice! Very, very nice! I always knew you had nice tits sis." Larry complimented "Hey Tommy boy, your wife is one nice fuckin piece of ass man." Tom looked up long enough to take in the picture, and lowered his eyes quickly back to the floor.

Larry took one of the milky white globes in his hand and lowered his mouth to suck on the nipple. His day old beard felt prickly against the soft flesh. Mary pulled back and rose from his lap.

The young wife took her brother-in-law by the hand and led him to the master bedroom. She sat down on the edge of the bed facing Larry and started to unbuckle his belt. Larry, anxious to seize the moment, was quickly unbuttoning his shirt, and kicking off his shoes.

Mary lowered his jeans to the floor and out bobbed a huge ten-inch cock pointing right at her face. She was amazed at the size. The only other cock Mary had ever seen was her husband's. Larry's was easily three or four times the size of her husband Tom's cock. She was more than a little afraid of what she had gotten herself into.

"Suck on it." Larry mumbled in a crude and domineering tone.

Without thinking Mary took the huge cock into her hand. Her fingers barely circled the girth. She had never put a cock into her mouth before, but she obediently leaned forward and curled her lips over the big pink head. Larry clutched the back of her head and started thrusting his hips causing the huge cock to ricochet off the back of her throat.

"Man that feels good! You are one good fuckin cocksucker, there sis!" Larry declared as he continued his indecent assault on Mary's virgin mouth.

The pretty wife willingly let him do as he pleased but this was not proceeding the way she had planned. She loved her sister Lauren and had agreed to help her out but Mary was now facing the stark reality of the situation. Larry was crude and vile. He cared not for her feelings, nor for her, just his own vulgar male pleasure.

No, she thought to herself, this was not like those romantic lovemaking sessions that she enjoyed with her husband every Saturday. There would be no magical kisses tenderly placed. There would be no gentle foreplay to soften the mood. No this was different.

The reality hit her like a ton of bricks. She was about to be fucked. She was about to be brutally fucked by her sister's roughneck husband and his monster cock. The same huge cock that was in her mouth would soon be used to fuck her severely. Mary pulled back, breaking away from her brother-in-law's grip.

"Let's get this over with." Mary whimpered "Do you want to make a baby or not?"

"It will be my pleasure!" Larry answered self-content with his seeming politeness.

Larry positioned his sister-in-law on her hands and knees. He grabbed the waistband of her panties and yanked them down to her knees. He positioned his cock at the threshold to her opening and rubbed it against her moist slit. Suddenly he rammed his cock home in one searing stroke. He began pumping vigorously in and out of his wife's sister.

"This is nice, very nice! You've got a nice tight pussy here sis!" Larry exclaimed

Mary felt trapped. Larry had hold of her hips and was pounding his huge monster cock in and out of her. She was amazed at how big it felt inside her. She tried to spread her legs wider but her panties were holding her knees together like handcuffs.

She managed to fall over on her side and Larry's cock slipped out. She quickly removed her panties. Larry took up a new position by the pretty wife's side. He raised her leg closest to him, stuck his big cock into her from the side and resumed pumping while he fondled her tits.

"Is this how you and Tommy do it sis?" He asked lewdly. "Is this how you like to be fucked?" Mary wasn't used to talking during sex, especially dirty talk! She said nothing.

Larry stopped playing with her tits and reached down to her pussy. He quickly located Mary's clit and started to apply expert strokes designed to please her. The young wife immediately reacted with soft whimpers and moans. She could feel her own self-control begin to fade, and started to buck her hips in response to the stimulation. She had never been touched like this before and it sent wild waves of pleasure coursing through her body. She suddenly found herself totally enjoying her brother-in-law's fucking.

Before long Mary was lost in her first ever climax. Her body tensed then shook and shivered as the wild waves of erotic pleasure reached their ultimate zenith. She breathed hard, harder than ever before in her life, and suddenly lost all self-control.

"Yes! Oh Larry Yes! Oh fuck me Larry! Fuck me and make me pregnant!" The young wife blurted out spontaneously during the heat of her orgasm.

Obviously pleased with this turn of events, Larry stepped it up a bit pumping harder and stroking faster. "You like this don't you Mary. Same as you sister, Lauren. You like getting your clit rubbed while being fucked from the side. You like it don't you?"

"Yes! Yes don't stop, faster, fuck me faster!" She answered breathlessly.

This little exchange drew Tom over to the doorway. Tom peered into his own master bedroom to see his beautiful wife being plundered by his crude brother-in-law. She was lying there facing the doorway with Larry on the far side. Larry had his arm under her knee as he held her leg high enough to get his cock in from under her hip. Larry was pounding this huge cock in and out of Tom's wife while he vigorously rubbed the front of her dark curly mound. Mary's tits bounced and shook violently as he hammered her.

It looked to Tom like his wife was really getting into this. There she was, naked save for her wedding rings, getting fucked with this huge monster cock. Sweat poured off the both of them as they wildly bucked their hips. It looked like his wife was pounding back at Larry's cock with increasing enthusiasm. It was a highly erotic sight to behold.

Tom had never seen live sex before, not even in movies. The sight mesmerized him. A feeling of lust overcame him as he watched his pretty wife getting fucked and fucking back. Tom reached in his pocket and started to play with himself to maximize the pleasure of watching. His mind pleaded with her to make Larry cum so he could see it happen. He was amazed at himself for having these feelings, and couldn't tear himself away from the vision before him.

Soon Larry's body tensed and he slowed down the pace. "Oh Baby I'm cumming, I'm cumming for you Mary, oh yeah!"

Mary smiled a half smile half smirk as Larry filled her with his seed. The pumping slowed way down and eventually stopped. His long cock slipped out as Larry rolled over on his back still breathing heavily. Both Mary and her brother-in-law lay there for a moment in silence. Tom slipped away silently, back to the living room.

Larry was up and dressed in an instant and made his way back to the kitchen for a fresh beer. He popped his head into the living room to speak to Tom.

"I'll tell ya Tommy boy, your wife sure likes to fuck! You are one lucky bastard! I guess I'll see ya tomorrow night, gotta go now. Say bye to Mary for me!"

Tom flew to the bedroom to be by his wife's side. She lay there sweaty, naked, and silent. White liquid was dripping from her pussy making a little puddle on the bed.

Tom broke the silence with his soothing voice "Are you okay honey?"

Mary opened her eyes and turned to look at her husband. "You don't hate me do you?" she asked. "I'm only doing this for my sister Lauren."

"I hope she appreciates it." Tom consoled her.

"Do you still love me?" Mary asked in a soft quiet tone.

"I still love you. I will always love you Mary." Tom answered.

Mary took Tom's head in her hands and held in to her chest. They both fell asleep in each other's arms.

The following night was almost a repeat of the first. Larry arrived late, looking unkempt and reeking of beer. Mary was dressed in a tiny red nightgown and decided to forgo wearing panties. Larry made a big deal out of his sister-in-law's sexy appearance.

"Wow sis! You look real hot!" Larry smiled his vulgar smile. He walked up to her and took her in his arms. He planted a big wet kiss right on her lips and forced his tongue into her mouth. His hand dropped to Mary's butt and he fondled her backside liberally.

"Man, you are one hot fuckin bitch." Larry complimented. He looked over and saw Tom in the next room. "Looks like your wife is ready for her fuckin Tommy!" he chided.

Larry pulled Mary to the Master bedroom and pushed her down on the bed. He threw off his clothes and smiled down at the sexy young beauty. His huge cock stood straight out and bobbed ominously. "Roll over and spread em." He commanded her. Mary obediently rolled onto her stomach and spread her legs shamelessly. She arched her back and raised her butt in the air to better receive her brother-in-law's penetration.

Tom moved over to the doorway and peeked inside. He was immediately aroused at the erotic sight. There was his pretty young wife lying face down on his bed, her red nightgown pushed up to her waist. Her legs were spread wide and her sister's husband was behind her rubbing his huge cock against her slit. Suddenly he penetrated her in one searing thrust and started wildly pumping away. His wrinkled ball sack slammed against her with every stroke. Tom reached into his own pants and began rubbing himself.

Larry continued pumping wildly for several minutes. His big beer gut was shaking like Jell-O as he pounded his hips against Mary's ass. Finally, all the exercise caught up with him and he collapsed breathing heavily.

"Get up here and sit on me" Larry insisted in his domineering tone.

Mary silently complied with his request. She straddled her brother-in-law's hips and gently guided his big cock into her pussy. She began rocking slowly causing his cock to move in and out. "That's real good sis. You feel real good!" He breathed softly.

Larry pulled the straps of the nightgown from the pretty wife's shoulders causing the garment to fall to her waist. Her breasts swung free and unprotected openly on display to his leering gaze. He smiled rudely, watching Mary's sexy tits jiggle playfully as he bounced her on his hips. He reached up and took them both in his coarse hands. Larry played with her tits to his hearts content pulling and pinching her pink puffy nipples

"You've got nice tits sis, really nice tits! I could do this all day." He commented.

The thought of doing this all day was repulsive to Mary. She couldn't wait for this ordeal to be over, to become pregnant and forget about this humiliating experience. She looked over at the open doorway and saw her husband lurking there, almost in a trance. Tom's cock was in his hands and he was stroking it rapidly while he watched his wife and her sister's husband soil their marital bed.

The site of Tom in the doorway had a strange and erotic effect on Mary. The thought of her loving husband watching her engage in sex with her crude brother-in-law was turning her on. She reached her hand down to the spot where Larry was touching her yesterday. Mary started rubbing her own clit while making serious eye contact with her husband. Their gazes met. Both Tom and Mary were locked into an intense masturbation experience while Larry fucked happily away, fully engrossed with his wife's sister's tits.

The rubbing stroking and fondling all had their desired effect. All three of them reached a climax at precisely the same time. Larry pushed Mary off of him and got up of the bed. He immediately began dressing while he spoke to Mary. "Yeah, you are one real good fuck there sis! I'm really enjoying this a lot! Make sure your ready for tomorrow night!"

As soon as Larry left Tom was by Mary's side. They stared into each other's knowing eyes but saying nothing. Tom reached over and lifted Mary's leg, she guided his cock into her warm wet pussy. Tom began pumping his wife from the side with vibrant enthusiasm. Mary reached down and began rubbing her own clit. Before long the pair reached a simultaneous orgasm. They dozed off contented in each other arms.

For the next three nights Mary continued to have intercourse with her ill-mannered brother-in-law. Tom would watch from outside the room and couple with his wife afterwards. Larry was oblivious to the erotic effect he was having on the couple. He would just do his thing and get out of there.

The scheme was successful and Mary became pregnant. She delivered a healthy baby boy and gave it up to her sister Lauren. It seems that everyone learned something from Mary's selfless gift to her sister.

Lauren learned that her sister loves her very much and would do anything for her. Mary learned more about her own body and how to add more pleasure to her lovemaking with her husband. Tom learned to try new things and experiment with fantasies and different positions. Larry, well, he got extra practice dressing himself and tying his shoes.

End.

PORNO DAUGHTER

g_goyal2000 on Incest Stories

Bert Bayne sat in the rear of the darkened club and watched his daughter perform on stage. She was naked, sandwiched between a man and a woman. The man rubbed his cock on her rump as the woman sucked her breasts.

Bert's prick stiffened as he watched his daughter. She was in her early twenties, quite pretty, with curled blond hair and brown eyes. She was big-boned and full-bodied; not chubby, just firm with a full body. She had big tits and a big ass.

He stroked his crotch as he watched his daughter being licked. The woman, an attractive redhead, now had her face buried between his daughter's thighs and was licking her pussy. The man had his dick at her mouth and she sucked avi

Read More
dly on it.

Bert's peter was now stiff and throbbing and he openly rubbed it. Most of the other people sitting in the club did the same. The threesome on stage were putting on a hot show and all the spectators were affected by it; Bert most of all.

It had been two years since he had seen his daughter. He had served a stretch in jail for certain "underworld" offenses. His daughter Tammy had periodically written to him when he was in jail. In the last letter he had received from her, she had informed him of her move to Los Angeles, and the letter bore a return address that Bert guessed was a film or media location.

Upon his release from jail, he headed for Los Angeles.

The address indeed turned out to be a film company's location: Firecum Productions, one of many XXX film production companies in the Los Angeles area. At Firecum Productions, Bert learned that his daughter had recently appeared in a film, but that she was not under contract to the production company and her current address was unknown. But he also learned that she, like a number of other "porno" actresses, worked in certain clubs when she was between films. He obtained a list of the clubs.

He would go to each one till he found his daughter, but he first wanted to see the film in which she had appeared.

It was easy enough to see it. The film was playing in a number of X-rated movie houses...

Bert sat in the movie theater and watched the film. It was hot and arousing. His daughter had a major role in the movie. He stroked his prick as he watched a man pump his dick from behind in Tammy's cunt as she licked a woman's pussy.

I'm going to fuck you, Bert silently said to his daughter on the screen. If it's the last thing I do, I'm going to fuck you. He rubbed his rock-hard cock. And that's not all I'm going to do. I'm going to ride you...You're going to carry me...You're going to work for me...You're going to make me money--a lot of money.

After watching the film, Bert began his search in the clubs. It didn't take him long to strike pay dirt. The third club he entered featured his daughter....

After the show was over, Bert went backstage. He saw the attractive redhead who had licked his daughter's cunt in the show, and told her he was looking for Tammy. "Tell her that her daddy Bert is here and wants to see her," he said. She smiled knowingly and cocked her hips. "Okay, daddy, I'll tell her." He watched her prance away to a door, open it and go in. She was dressed in a brief shift, and his mouth literally watered. She was one sexy fox, and Bert's peter hardened even more. He hadn't had any pussy in two years, and his dick was hard as a rock; it throbbed and ached.

A moment later she opened the door and called to him. He went over and she motioned toward the inside, "Tammy's in there." Bert entered the room.

His daughter was dressed in tight shorts and a halter. She smiled uncertainly at him and murmured "Daddy..."

"Hi, baby," he said and went to her and took her in his arms. He pressed his stiff throbbing prick between her legs.

"Oh, Daddy," she said softly. "I can't believe it. When...when did you get out?"

"A few days ago," he answered. He pressed his cock harder between her thighs and stroked her back. "I saw the show here."

She looked down and said, "You did?"

"Yeah. It was good. Real good."

She was clearly embarrassed. She hadn't seen her father in two years, and when she did see him, there she was--working in a live sex club. The last time he had seen her, she wasn't a "harlot"; now--she was a paid sex performer.

"I...I don't know what to say," she blushed and held her head down.

"No need to say anything. I saw the movie you were in too." He nuzzled her cheek and neck, stroked her flanks and hips and mashed his hard peter upon her crotch.

She clearly felt his big hard throbbing prick grinding upon her, and she then knew the score; she understood the situation.

As they left the room, he brushed his hand over her big smooth rump; as they left the club, he ran his hand over it again. She drove to her place, and when she placed the key in the lock to open the door, he stroked her big soft butt.

"Would you like a drink?" she asked when they entered her place.

"Sure, baby," he replied.

He didn't waste any time. As she stood at the counter mixing drinks, he went up behind her, slipped his arms around her waist and pressed his crotch upon her rump.

He mashed his stone-hard cock into her butt, grinding it on her big smooth ass. He slid his hands under her halter and cupped her breasts, palming and kneading the cantaloup-sized knockers.

"Ohh," she breathed out. "Oh Daddy."

He turned her around, raked her halter up and went down on her tits, licking and sucking the big firm mounds.

"Umm, ahh," she cooed as he flicked her nipples with his tongue and sucked her teats with his lips. "God, you are turned on," she breathed huskily.

He unzipped his fly and pulled out his prick. It was big, rigid and throbbing. Her eyes widened and she licked her lips. "My god, you're big." She grasped his rod and stroked it. "It's huge."

He clasped her head and shoulder and pushed down on her. "Go down, honey. Go down on it."

She went to her knees and he guided his peter to her face. "Suck it, baby. Suck it like you sucked that man's cock in the show."

She opened her lips and he slipped his dick in. He clutched her head and slid his prick into her warm wet silky mouth.

"Oh yes...ahh," he groaned at the sensation of her lips and tongue on his cock. He drove his dick on in, and then began sliding it back and forth. "Oh yeah, that's the way, baby," he huffed. "That's the way to suck it. Goddamn, but you've got a wet hot mouth. Oh baby, suck my prick, suck every inch of it."

He hunched his crotch on her face, humping his peter down to her throat. "I'm fucking your mouth, baby," he panted, "I'm deep-throating you."

She sucked voraciously on his cock, using her palate, gums, tongue and lips.

He felt his balls swelling and the cum churning and swirling in his bag. He slid his dick out of her mouth and went down on his knees and pulled her down on her back. He unsnapped her shorts and slid them off, raised her legs and drew them back, and went down on her. He buried his face on her quim, rubbing it up and down and around.

He clasped her hips and went to town on her cunt. He slid his tongue in and licked and sucked her clit, then began jamming and flicking and jabbing his tongue in her quiff.

She clutched his head and lurched her pussy up, mashing and grinding it on his face. "Oh, ah, your tongue," she panted. "Oh, it's so long and thick--ahh--it feels like a cock."

He tongue-fucked his daughter, jabbing and zipping his tongue up and down her cunt.

"Oh god, eat me, Daddy!" she gasped. "Eat my pussy. Fuck me with your tongue. Goddamn, it feels so fucking good!"

He ate her out for a good five minutes, then he slid his tongue out and mounted her.

He dug his dick up her cunt, stuffing it in her in one continuous stroke.

"Oh god, oh Daddy!" she cried. "Oh, you're so big, so hard!"

She wrapped her arms and legs around him and lifted her pelvis up to give him full access to her cunt.

He pumped his meat in her, frigging her fast and hard, jabbing every inch of his prick in her quim.

"Oh, ah, you've got the biggest cock," she gasped. "Oh, you're filling me up--ahh, you're fucking me to my core--oh god, no one's ever fucked me so deep, so good!"

He pounded his peter in her, ramming it to her very marrow.

"Fuck!" he cried. "Fuck, baby, fuck!"

"Oh Jesus, oh hot cum!" she panted. "This is the best fucking I've ever had. Fuck me, Daddy, fuck me! Pump the meat to me, fill me up with cock!"

He jammed his entire dick up her quiff and let her have it. He pissed a stream of semen in her pussy.

"Cuming in you!" he gasped. "Hot cum deep in your cunt!"

"Goddamn, Jesus Christ, squirt it in me, Daddy! Squirt it deep!"

She panted and gasped and bucked and hunched as her father spurted gob after gob of semen in her....

Later that night, a young attractive woman entered the house. It was the redhead who had been in the show with Bert's daughter. Her name was Ginger and she shared the house with Tammy. She was a sexy piece, and Bert began to formulate plans--monetary plans that would involve both his daughter and her.

The next morning, Bert awoke with a half-stiff dick. He got up and walked to the kitchen and saw his daughter standing by the counter preparing coffee. All she had on was a short silk slip. His prick hardened as he looked at her. She was pretty, with curled blond hair, deep brown eyes, peachy complexion and flesh, firm and full-bodied, breasts the size and shape of cantaloups, full creamy legs, and a big soft smooth rump. His cock reared up, rigid and throbbing.

He went up behind her and mashed his stiff aching peter on her ass, grinding it in that big soft butt. He ran his hands up to her breasts and rubbed and squeezed the big jugs.

"My dick's as hard as a rock," he rasped, hunching it on her rump.

"Oh Daddy, umm, ohh," she breathed out huskily.

He pulled her ass down and entered her pussy from behind. He groaned with lust as his hard throbbing prick plunged into her warm damp snug quim. "Oh yeah, goddamn, sweet fucking cunt," he hissed as he jammed his cock up her quiff.

He screwed her fully and soundly, cramming his entire peter in her pussy, frigging her with long strong solid full strokes.

"Ohh, oh Daddy, ahh," she panted with passion and hunched back at him. "Oh, you've got the longest, thickest prick. Ah, ride me, Daddy, ride me."

He squeezed her tits good and hard as he rapped his dick in her quim.

"Jesus Christ, this is heaven!" she cried. "Oh Daddy, you can ride me. I'll carry you. Oh, you can stay here, Daddy, I'll carry you!"

He rammed his big cock in her, screwing her fast and hard.

"Goddamn, sweet motherfucking prick fucking me!" she cried. "Ahh, I want it every day. Oh Daddy, fuck me every day--just like this!"

"Oh yeah," he huffed, "gonna fuck you every day, baby, gonna pump the meat to you every day."

He humped it in her, pounding his peter like a jackhammer in her pussy.

"Here it comes, baby," he grunted. "Here it comes in your cunt."

He jammed his dick to the hilt up her quiff and let her have it. He spewed a thick glob of sperm in her core.

"Oh god, Jesus fucking Mary, yes!" she cried. "Cum in me, Daddy, give me all you've got, squirt cum in your daughter's cunt!"

He obliged her. He spurted a half-dozen gobs of semen in her marrow, filling her pussy up with thick creamy cum....

Bert knew it was just a matter of time till he would fuck Ginger. His daughter's housemate knew the score; she knew he was screwing Tammy; she'd even seen them fucking once.

Bert's cock jerked at the thought of that luscious redhead. She had a heart-shaped baby face, shimmering red hair falling in wispy waves past her shoulders, emerald eyes, creamy flesh, and a curvy voluptuous body. His peter shot up, stiff as a board, pulsating and aching at the thought of that delicious young pussy.

I'm gonna fuck you, Bert thought, stroking his prick. Gonna fuck you good.

The time came soon enough.

Tammy had gone out, leaving Ginger and Bert in the house. All Ginger had on was a short filmy robe. She mixed a drink and sprawled on the sofa. Bert knew the time had come. His dick was rock-hard and throbbing, and that luscious cunt was sprawled on the couch. Yes, now was the time.

He didn't say a word. He strode to her, grabbed her legs and drew them back and went down on his knees before her. Her quim was wide-open to him. It was like a golden-red peach ripe to eat. He rubbed his whole face on it; then he snaked out his tongue. He slid and rubbed it on her clit, licking the nub with his tongue as he sucked it with his lips.

She lurched up, mashing and grinding her quiff on his face. She clasped his head and began gasping and panting.

He dug his tongue into her pussy, jabbing and flicking and twirling it.

"Ooh, ahh, umm, ahh," she crooned and rotated her butt. "Ah, what a tongue! God, it's as big as a cock. Oh, you're fucking me--you're fucking me with your tongue!"

He mashed and squeezed her big soft ass as he jammed his tongue in her cunt.

She reached down and clutched his crotch and rubbed his peter. He gasped with the sensation and pulled her down off the couch onto his lap. He hunched up and drove his hard prick into her quim. He didn't hesitate. He plunged it up her quiff in one continuous stroke. Her pussy was hot, moist and snug. He crammed it good, rapping his dick hard and fast up her cunt.

"Oh god, what a cock!" she panted and hunched. "Ah, you're a giant! Oh darling, I've never been fucked so good. Ooh, ahh, you've got the cock I've been searching for."

He went down on her titties, sucking the nubs and flicking the nipples with his tongue.

"Oh, ah, suck, bite my tits!" she gasped. "Bite me, fuck me, ram it in me good. Rape me! Rape me hard!"

He frigged her fast and furiously, pounding his meat in her quim.

"Jesus Christ, what I wouldn't give to be fucked like this every day!" she cried.

"Gonna give it to you every day, baby." he hissed. "Gonna give you the prick every day."

She climaxed twice before he shot his load in her. As he pumped cum in her quiff, she climaxed a third time. "Oh, ah, keep cuming!" she gasped. "Fill me up with fuck. Give me all your cum."

He poured it in her, pissing a stream of semen deep in her pussy.

They shared an afterfuck. She swirled her cunt on his peter, and he felt it growing stiff again.

He pulled his dick out of her quim and guided it to her mouth. "Suck it," he said. He clutched the back of her head and pushed his cock against her lips.

"Oh yeah," he huffed at the sensation of his prick sliding between her lips and into her warm wet mouth. "Suck my dick, baby, suck it down to my balls."

He fucked the luscious redhead's mouth, pumping his peter to the hilt, down to her throat. She sucked his cock avidly, bobbing her head, working her lips, tongue, palate, gums all over it.

He gave a great cry of lust and heaved every inch of his prick in her mouth, down to her gullet, and let it go. He spurted a glob of sperm down her throat. She gulped and swallowed and sucked it down.

"Gonna feed you a diet of cum, baby," he panted. "Gonna squirt cum in your mouth and pussy every day."

Bert knew he had his daughter and Ginger. He knew he could fuck them every day and night. But he wanted more--much more. He wanted to live off them; he wanted to make money from them--lots of money. And he knew how he could do it. He would whore them out. But he knew he would need some help. He would need to "numb" them down. He needed to obtain some numbing agents.

It didn't take him long to obtain what he needed. He was savvy; he knew where to go to get the agents.

He obtained quantities of stimulants and aphrodisiacal agents, and began giving them to his daughter and Ginger. At first he mixed them in drinks till the two women were stoned enough; then he had them to snort a powder form of the agents. The result was that his daughter and Ginger stayed bombed--and horny....

Bert watched as his first customer fucked Tammy. The man pumped his dick in her quim, frigging her good. Tammy was glassy-eyed and wore a stoned smile as the man humped her quiff. Bert also wore a smile. The man who was scewing his daughter had paid a goodly sum to him.

Tammy had her arms and legs wrapped around the man and was hunching her cunt to meet his thrusts. Her head was thrown back and she was gasping and panting.

Bert's prick grew stiff watching his daughter being frigged, watching the man's peter plunge in and out of her pussy. By the time the man shot his load in Tammy, Bert's cock was rigid and throbbing.

The man rolled off Tammy, and Bert took over. He threw his daughter's legs over his shoulders, clutched her big soft ass and stuffed his rock-hard dick up her cunt.

"Fuck!" he hissed. "Fuck, daughter, fuck!"

"Oh yes! Oh Daddy, give it to me! Fuck me! Fuck me, Daddy, fuck me!"

He screwed his young pretty daughter fast and hard, pumping his meat in her, pounding his prick in her quim.

"Oh yeah, hot fucking cum in you, baby!" he huffed. He grunted and growled as he emptied his balls in her, spewing a glob of semen in her pussy.

"Oh god, Jesus Christ--now!" she cried. "I'm cuming now! Cuming so fucking hot, so fucking good!"

Bert pulled his peter out. "She's hot as hell," he said to the man. "Fuck her again."

The man mounted Tammy and frigged her again. She bucked and humped and gasped as he hunched his dick in her, screwing her with lusty jabs.

"Oh, ah, I can't get enough," she panted. "Can't get enough cock. Oh god, keep fucking me, don't ever stop--I want to fuck forever. I want a prick fucking me every day, every night, every minute. I want a prick stuffed in me all the time."

The man poured it in her, spurting cum up her cunt.

As soon as the man rolled off, Bert grabbed his daughter, turned her over, pulled her up on her knees and pushed his peter between her rumpmounds. "Ah yes, up your ass, baby," he hissed. "Up your sweet-fucking ass."

He pushed and heaved his dick, digging it up his daughter's big soft butt. "Goddamn, you're tight as hell," he huffed. "You've got the tightest ass I've ever fucked."

"Oh, oh god, oh Daddy," she gasped as he stuffed his big hard prick up her rump.

"Screwing your ass, baby," he grunted. "Oh yeah--screwing that sweet tight ass. Goddamn, I'm gonna have you fucked every day. Gonna have cocks fucking your cunt, your mouth, your ass, every day."

"Oh, ah, I want it, Daddy. Oh, Jesus Christ, I want cock! I want it every day."

"You're gonna get it, baby," he said. "Every day--and every night." He gave a mighty heave and rammed every inch of his cock up his daughter's ass....

Bert stroked his dick in satisfaction as he watched the three men fuck his daughter and Ginger. The men had given him a nice sum, and Bert was pleased as punch. He knew he had a gold mine in his daughter and Ginger, and he intended to mine them for all they were worth. They're going to make me rich, he thought. How lucky can you get. Two hot young pretty women who'll do anything I want.

He looked at the three man screwing Ginger and his daughter. One man was pumping his peter in Ginger's quim as another slid his prick in her mouth. She had a glazed look in her eyes.

Tammy was on her hands and knees and a man was humping her from behind. She had a glassy-eyed, stoned look.

Bert went to his daughter and guided his cock to her mouth. He pushed it forward and grunted with the sensation as it slid between her soft warm lips. He clutched her head and began fucking her mouth.

Ah, it doesn't get any better than this, he thought as he pumped his dick in his daughter's mouth. It sure as hell beats working for a living.

Professor Mom

g_goyal2000 on Incest Stories

"Beep, beep, beep." The damn alarm clock screams to wake me up for my first day back at college. I wasn't looking forward to going back for my second semester. I had extremely hard classes scheduled. I had to take my highest math class, my highest science course, and my highest English course, all in one semester. By the time I was out of the shower, my Mom was heading out. My Mom was an English professor at my college. She taught an advanced English course, which I thankfully wasn't required to take.

My Mother was an incredible woman. She was 35 years old, but didn't look a day over 29. She had me when she was 16, but had somehow managed to graduate from high school, get into c

Read More
ollege, and get a doctorate in literature and philosophy. Even with working a hard job and having to put up with a 19 year old son, My Mom had no gray hairs or wrinkles. She even managed to find time to get to the gym and keep her awesome figure (5'5", 120 lbs, medium breasts which were still perky and not sagging, and a cute bubble butt, sleek mid section, and shoulder length, light brown hair). My Mom was the best looking 35 year old I've ever seen.

An hour after my Mom had left, I made my way to school. I got through my first two classes that day and had one left, English. I had never looked at my schedule for the professor's name. If I had, I wouldn't have been surprised when my Mom walked into the class room.

" Afternoon class, my name is professor Lucas, this is English 102, section 39..." She continued with her introduction. As she spoke, I wondered how the hell she wound up teaching this class, she was supposed to be teaching a much higher English class. Fortunately for me, she had changed back to her maiden name when she divorced my dad so we had different last names, and no one had caught on to the fact that I was her son. I wasn't happy at all that I was in her class. Besides the fact she was my Mom, professor Lucas was one of the toughest professors on campus.

After class was out and all the other students had left, I went up to my Mom and asked her how she had wound up teaching this class. She told me that one of the professors had moved and they needed someone to take over this class for him. She then told me that she wouldn't tell anybody I was her son. She didn't want anyone to think she was favoring me if I happened to be getting a good grade in the class.

The first couple of weeks weren't that bad, but she did give a ton of homework, and she always made me participate in the class discussions. During classes I'd always hear some of the guys talking about her, saying, "Hey, look at that ass, don't you want to fuck her?".

At first I was sickened by those comments, but it wasn't long before I found myself thinking those same thoughts, and having visions of her naked. It was easy to have those thoughts. Because of my schedules of school and work, I couldn't go out on any dates and I hadn't bedded anybody in almost a year. Soon those thoughts of her naked turned into full-on, X-rated visions. I found myself actually wanting to fuck my own mother. I didn't actually think it would happen, but it did.

It happened one day at school. My Mom had asked my that morning to stay after class and help her rearrange the room. I agreed to, not having any thoughts or hopes at the time of fucking her. I got through that day and stayed after to help her. We moved the desks all around and moved some cabinets. I went to the opposite side of the room to move a table back toward the wall. I saw a roll of duct tape laying on the floor next to the table. I picked it up and set it on the table, and walked around behind the table to pull it toward the wall. I started pulling the table toward me when I stopped to look at my Mom. She was on the far side of the room with her back turned to me. She was bending over a desk trying to move it. I stood there admiring her ass and her legs. She was wearing somewhat tight blue jeans and a gray pullover sweater. I had visions of tearing them off of her when I got an idea.

I grabbed the roll of duct tape in front of me and crouched down behind the table. I took the roll and began taping around a support bar under the table. I then made a long strip with the tape running from the cross bar. "What are you doing?" My Mom surprised me.

"Nothing." I said, looking up at her. She was leaning over the table to see what I was doing. I noticed she had her hands on the table in front of her. I slowly reached my hand up for hers. I took hold of them and said, " Here, feel this."

Her hands followed mine to the edge of the table. Then in a quick move I grabbed her hands with my left hand, pulled her toward me, causing her to fall onto the table, then I taped her wrists together with my right hand. "What ere you doing?" She asked as if I were playing a joke. I didn't answer, I just walked around behind her. She was bent over the table and couldn't move that well. Her hands were restrained and her feet barely touched the floor. I stood right behind her, reached under her and undid her jeans.

"No. Please don't?" She begged. I slowly pulled her jeans down to her ankles, took off her shoes and sock, and pulled her jeans off. I took out my pocket knife and cut away her sweater, which was the only thing she wore besides her bra. Now she lay bent over the table wearing only her black bra and panties. I then cut away her bra.

"Honey don't do this." She pleaded. I didn't listen to her. I slowly pulled her panties down past her ass. I stared lovingly at it for a second before sliding her panties all the way down her silky legs and tossed them aside. Feeling desperate at this moment, my Mom started kicking her legs, trying to fight me away. She was sobbing now still asking me to stop, but I was just starting. I crouched down behind her and took hold of her legs. She was still trying to fight me off, but I had a tight grip. I leaned into her and ran my tongue over her love triangle. She tried fighting even more. I then began flicking my tongue over her pussy lips, first slow then fast.

Her sobs of tears soon became soft moans of pleasure. She still tried to kick me off of her. I searched around the slit of her entrance with my tongue, up and down. I then inserted my tongue into her. She let out a loud moan. Her legs stopped kicking. As my tongue searched inside of her she gave up fighting. At this point she was to far gone to care that I was her son. As I tongue fucked her, moaned in pleasure. I was sure someone could hear her.

I then went for the kill, I slid my tongue out of her and searched around until I found her clit. I licked around it, flicked it with my tongue, and then covered it with my lips and began to suck. Her moans turned to screams. Her legs shuddered as I sucked her clit. Her body was writhing in pleasure and soon she came. Her body slowly settled down after I stopped sucking. I stood up to look at my Mom. She lay prone on the table. Over her heavy breaths she said, "Fuck me."

"What was that?" I replied.

"Fuck me Erik. Finish what you started," she demanded.

I quickly removed my shoes and socks. I threw my shirt across the room, pulled my jeans off, and removed my boxers. I stood behind my Mom, took hold of my cock and began rubbing it along the entrance to her pussy. The in one trust, I slid into my Mother. With that one simple move, our relationship changed from Mother and Son to lovers. I buried my dick into her balls deep. She let out a load moan.

"Come on fuck me. Fuck me until I can't walk anymore." She screamed.

I did as I was told. I fucked my Mother's pussy real slow and then a little faster, and then slow again. I kept changing the pace and it was driving her crazy. She felt so good. Her cunt was very hot and wet. Each time I drove in and out of her, she became hotter. Her pussy was so hot it felt like it could burn my man-pole. I pulled my cock out until just the head remained in, then I drove it into her as hard as I could. Then I slowly pulled it back out, this time I completely removed it. I stood there and watched her reaction. Her body was still bucking.

"Fucking put it back in me, I want you to fuck me harder, I want to feel you cum in me." She demanded.

I did as she requested and shoved it back into her. I fucked her as fast and as hard as I could. I felt her pussy muscles clinch my dick and she began to shudder as she came. I followed right behind her, driving my cock into her one last time as I came in my Mom. I leaned over onto her and we stayed like that for a moment without saying a word. We stuck to each other from the sweat and I could fell her taking deep breaths. I reached for my knife and went to cut her free only to realize that she had broken through the tape from her orgasm.

"Please leave." She said in a half whisper. "Just hand me my raincoat from that cabinet and go."

I did just that, got dressed and left. I left her there, laying bent over a table that was covered in sweat, completely naked. That night when my Mom got home, she went straight to her room. She said nothing to me and she was gone before I got up the next morning. I didn't see her the entire day until I had to go to class. At first it didn't look like she'd show. Finally she walked in ten minutes late, wearing a black dress that showed the shape of her body very well.

The entire class was just a discussion. For the first time she totally ignored me. She didn't call on me once. Things were not looking good. After class was over I heard her ask, "Erik may I speak to you for a minute?".

I stayed and waited for everybody to leave. After all the other students were gone, my Mom pulled up a chair near her desk. "Have a seat, I'll be right back."

She walked out of the room and I took a seat in the chair. I sat there and waited for a few minutes before she walked back into the room and took a seat on her desk directly in front of me. She just sat there for a minute looking at me. I was feeling pretty nervous at this point.

"Mom..", I tried to say but she cut me off.

"No, don't say anything." She said, "I know you're thinking that I'm going to give you the speech about how what we did was wrong and that it will never happen again.", she paused. She stood up, walked over behind her desk, opened a drawer and stuck her hand in it.

"But I'm not going to." She withdrew her hand from the drawer and showed me what she was holding. It was the roll of duct tape. She walked over to me, crouched down, pulled the pant legs up on my jeans and taped my right ankle to the right leg of the chair and my left ankle to the left leg. Now I was restrained. My Mom then undid my jeans and pulled them down to my ankles along with my boxer shorts. She pulled my shirt off and stood up. She then began to strip. She kicked off her heals and pulled her shoulder straps off and let her dress fall to the floor. She wore no underwear. She stood there completely naked before me. She walked up and slowly straddled me in the chair. Her wet, warm womanhood pressed against my manhood.

"Welcome to sex ed one-on-one, this is the hands on training section, I am your professor, you may call me Dr. Lucas." She began. "Would you like to start this lab?"

"Yes." I replied.

"Would you like to fuck me?"

"YES."

"Good!"

She then slid off of me and crouched down before me. She took my prick in her hand and put the tip in her mouth. She circled her tongue around the tip, then she out the head back in her mouth, but this time followed through and went all the way down the shaft. She slowly bobbed her head up and down. She kept this up using her hand and tongue. She could tell I couldn't take much more of this.

She stood up, took hold of my cock, and as she straddled me, she put the head up to her pussy lips. She rubbed it in then sat down onto it. We both moaned as my prick easily slipped into her. She slowly rocked up and down on my dick. She was now in control and she loved it. She was getting her pay back and she'd take full advantage of it. She fucked me faster and faster. I couldn't take much more, but just when I was about to come she stopped for a second, waited then slowly started again.

She fucked my slow, but hard, grinding her hips into mine. I took hold of her breasts and took turns sucking each one. I played with each nipple, flicking my tongue over each one and then sucking on them. She took hold of my hands and guided them down her body to her ass. My hands greedily grabbed each cheek. My mouth still played with her breasts as she fucked me in the chair. She picked up the pace again. Sweat poured off her body. She looked so beautiful with the sweat gleaming on her body. I leaned back in the chair, my hands still holding her lovely ass as she fucked me as fast as she could go. I was coming, but then she stopped again. She continued this three or four more times. Slowly fucking me, then picking up the pace, and stopping before I came. This payback was hell, but at the same time it was heaven. She stopped one last time.

"Are you ready? I know I am." She said.

"Yes I'm ready." I responded.

"Then let's come together."

She didn't bother starting slow. She went straight for the kill. She fucked me with all that she had left in her. Soon, I felt her pussy muscles tighten as she leaned back to get more leverage. My hands harnessed her in as she picked up the pace to an unbelievable speed. It wasn't long before we were both coming. I came in my Mother as she had her orgasm and then collapsed onto me. We held each other for a few hours in that chair before going home where we fucked again, this time all night long.